home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1994-01-01 | 561.4 KB | 12,113 lines | [TEXT/MSWD] |
- ******The Project Gutenberg Etext of Anne of Green Gables******
- ******This file should be named anne11.txt or anne11.zip*******
-
-
- Scanned by: Charles Keller
- ________________________________________
-
- Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, anne11.txt.
- VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, anne10a.txt.
-
- This choice was made by popular demand for a seasonal literature
- release, and several other books are being considered, including
- the rest of the Green Gables series in the Public Domain and the
- works of Willa Cather.
-
- Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
-
- We produce about one million dollars for each hour we work. One
- hundred hours is a conservative estimate for how long it we take
- to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
- searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
- projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
- per text is nominally estimated at one dollar, then we produce a
- million dollars per hour; next year we will have to do four text
- files per month, thus upping our productivity to two million/hr.
- The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
- Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
- This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers.
-
- We need your donations more than ever!
-
- All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
- tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
- Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
- to IBC, too)
-
- For these and other matters, please mail to:
-
- David Turner, Project Gutenberg
- Illinois Benedictine College
- 5700 College Road
- Lisle, IL 60532-0900
-
- Email requests to:
- Internet: chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
- Compuserve: chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
- Attmail: internet!chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
- MCImail: (David Turner)
- ADDRESS TYPE: MCI / EMS: INTERNET / MBX:chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu
-
- We would prefer to send you this information by email
- (Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
-
- ******
- If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please:
-
- FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
- ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
- login: anonymous
- password: your@login
- cd etext/etext91
- or cd etext92 [for new books] [now also cd etext/etext92]
- or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
- dir [to see files]
- get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
- GET INDEX and AAINDEX
- for a list of books
- and
- GET NEW GUT for general information
- and
- MGET GUT* for newsletters.
-
- **Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
- (Three Pages)
-
- ****START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START****
-
- Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
- They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
- your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
- someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
- fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
- disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
- you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
-
- *BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
-
- By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext,
- you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept this
- "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive a
- refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by sending
- a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person you got
- it from. If you received this etext on a physical medium (such
- as a disk), you must return it with your request.
-
- ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
-
- This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
- etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
- Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association (the
- "Project"). Among other things, this means that no one owns a
- United States copyright on or for this work, so the Project (and
- you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
- permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special
- rules, set forth below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute
- this etext under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
-
- To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable efforts
- to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain works.
- Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any medium they
- may be on may contain "Defects". Among other things, Defects
- may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data,
- transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual property
- infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other etext medium,
- a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be
- read by your equipment.
-
- DISCLAIMER
-
- But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
- [1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this etext
- from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all liability to
- you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees, and
- [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR UNDER STRICT LIABILI-
- TY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT, INCLUDING BUT NOT
- LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL
- DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
- DAMAGES.
-
- If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
- receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you
- paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that time to
- the person you received it from. If you received it on a
- physical medium, you must return it with your note, and such
- person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement copy.
- If you received it electronically, such person may choose to
- alternatively give you a second opportunity to receive it elec-
- tronically.
-
- THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
- WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
- TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
- LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
- PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
-
- Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
- the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
- above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
- may have other legal rights.
-
- INDEMNITY
-
- You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
- officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
- and expense, including legal fees, that arise from any
- distribution of this etext for which you are responsible, and
- from [1] any alteration, modification or addition to the etext
- for which you are responsible, or [2] any Defect.
-
- DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
-
- You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
- disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this "Small
- Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg, or:
-
- [1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this re-
- quires that you do not remove, alter or modify the etext or
- this "small print!" statement. You may however, if you
- wish, distribute this etext in machine readable binary,
- compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form, including any
- form resulting from conversion by word processing or hyper-
- text software, but only so long as *EITHER*:
-
- [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable. We
- consider an etext *not* clearly readable if it
- contains characters other than those intended by the
- author of the work, although tilde (~), asterisk (*)
- and underline (_) characters may be used to convey
- punctuation intended by the author, and additional
- characters may be used to indicate hypertext links.
-
- [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at no
- expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent form
- by the program that displays the etext (as is the
- case, for instance, with most word processors).
-
- [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at no
- additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the etext
- in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC or
- other equivalent proprietary form).
-
- [2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
- "Small Print!" statement.
-
- [3] Pay a trademark license fee of 20% (twenty percent) of the
- net profits you derive from distributing this etext under
- the trademark, determined in accordance with generally
- accepted accounting practices. The license fee:
-
- [*] Is required only if you derive such profits. In
- distributing under our trademark, you incur no
- obligation to charge money or earn profits for your
- distribution.
-
- [*] Shall be paid to "Project Gutenberg Association /
- Illinois Benedictine College" (or to such other person
- as the Project Gutenberg Association may direct)
- within the 60 days following each date you prepare (or
- were legally required to prepare) your year-end tax
- return with respect to your income for that year.
-
- WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
-
- The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
- scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
- free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
- you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
- Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
-
- WRITE TO US! We can be reached at:
-
- Project Gutenberg Director of Communications (PGDIRCOM)
-
- Internet: pgdircom@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu
- Bitnet: pgdircom@uiucvmd
- CompuServe: >internet:pgdircom@.vmd.cso.uiuc.edu
- Attmail: internet!vmd.cso.uiuc.edu!pgdircom
-
- Drafted by CHARLES B. KRAMER, Attorney
- CompuServe: 72600,2026
- Internet: 72600.2026@compuserve.com
- Tel: (212) 254-5093
- *END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.07.02.92*END*
-
-
-
-
- ANNE OF GREEN GABLES
-
- Lucy Maud Montgomery
-
-
-
- Table of Contents
-
- CHAPTER I Mrs. Rachel Lynde Is Surprised
- CHAPTER II Matthew Cuthbert Is Surprised
- CHAPTER III Marilla Cuthbert Is Surprised
- CHAPTER IV Morning at Green Gables
- CHAPTER V Anne's History
- CHAPTER VI Marilla Makes Up Her Mind
- CHAPTER VII Anne Says Her Prayers
- CHAPTER VIII Anne's Bringing-Up Is Begun
- CHAPTER IX Mrs. Rachel Lynde Is Properly Horrified
- CHAPTER X Anne's Apology
- CHAPTER XI Anne's Impressions of Sunday School
- CHAPTER XII A Solemn Vow and Promise
- CHAPTER XIII The Delights of Anticipation
- CHAPTER XIV Anne's Confession
- CHAPTER XV A Tempest in the School Teapot
- CHAPTER XVI Diana Is Invited to Tea with Tragic Results
- CHAPTER XVII A New Interest in Life
- CHAPTER XVIII Anne to the Rescue
- CHAPTER XIX A Concert a Catastrophe and a Confession
- CHAPTER XX A Good Imagination Gone Wrong
- CHAPTER XXI A New Departure in Flavorings
- CHAPTER XXII Anne is Invited Out to Tea
- CHAPTER XXIII Anne Comes to Grief in an Affair of Honor
- CHAPTER XXIV Miss Stacy and Her Pupils Get Up a Concert
- CHAPTER XXV Matthew Insists on Puffed Sleeves
- CHAPTER XXVI The Story Club Is Formed
- CHAPTER XXVII Vanity and Vexation of Spirit
- CHAPTER XXVIII An Unfortunate Lily Maid
- CHAPTER XXIX An Epoch in Anne's Life
- CHAPTER XXX The Queens Class Is Organized
- CHAPTER XXXI Where the Brook and River Meet
- CHAPTER XXXII The Pass List Is Out
- CHAPTER XXXIII The Hotel Concert
- CHAPTER XXXIV A Queen's Girl
- CHAPTER XXXV The Winter at Queen's
- CHAPTER XXXVI The Glory and the Dream
- CHAPTER XXXVII The Reaper Whose Name Is Death
- CHAPTER XXXVIII The Bend in the road
-
-
-
- Anne of Green Gables
-
-
- CHAPTER I
-
- Mrs. Rachel Lynde is Surprised
-
-
- Mrs. Rachel Lynde lived just where the Avonlea main
- road dipped down into a little hollow, fringed with alders
- and ladies' eardrops and traversed by a brook that had its
- source away back in the woods of the old Cuthbert place;
- it was reputed to be an intricate, headlong brook in its
- earlier course through those woods, with dark secrets of
- pool and cascade; but by the time it reached Lynde's
- Hollow it was a quiet, well-conducted little stream, for not
- even a brook could run past Mrs. Rachel Lynde's door
- without due regard for decency and decorum; it probably
- was conscious that Mrs. Rachel was sitting at her window,
- keeping a sharp eye on everything that passed, from brooks
- and children up, and that if she noticed anything odd or
- out of place she would never rest until she had ferreted
- out the whys and wherefores thereof.
-
- There are plenty of people in Avonlea and out of it,
- who can attend closely to their neighbor's business by dint
- of neglecting their own; but Mrs. Rachel Lynde was one of
- those capable creatures who can manage their own concerns
- and those of other folks into the bargain. She was a
- notable housewife; her work was always done and well done;
- she "ran" the Sewing Circle, helped run the Sunday-school,
- and was the strongest prop of the Church Aid Society and
- Foreign Missions Auxiliary. Yet with all this Mrs. Rachel
- found abundant time to sit for hours at her kitchen window,
- knitting "cotton warp" quilts--she had knitted sixteen of
- them, as Avonlea housekeepers were wont to tell in awed
- voices--and keeping a sharp eye on the main road that
- crossed the hollow and wound up the steep red hill beyond.
- Since Avonlea occupied a little triangular peninsula jutting
- out into the Gulf of St. Lawrence with water on two sides of
- it, anybody who went out of it or into it had to pass over
- that hill road and so run the unseen gauntlet of Mrs. Rachel's
- all-seeing eye.
-
- She was sitting there one afternoon in early June. The
- sun was coming in at the window warm and bright; the orchard
- on the slope below the house was in a bridal flush of pinky-
- white bloom, hummed over by a myriad of bees. Thomas Lynde--
- a meek little man whom Avonlea people called "Rachel
- Lynde's husband"--was sowing his late turnip seed on the
- hill field beyond the barn; and Matthew Cuthbert ought to
- have been sowing his on the big red brook field away over by
- Green Gables. Mrs. Rachel knew that he ought because she
- had heard him tell Peter Morrison the evening before in
- William J. Blair's store over at Carmody that he meant to
- sow his turnip seed the next afternoon. Peter had asked him, of
- course, for Matthew Cuthbert had never been known to
- volunteer information about anything in his whole life.
-
- And yet here was Matthew Cuthbert, at half-past three
- on the afternoon of a busy day, placidly driving over the
- hollow and up the hill; moreover, he wore a white collar and
- his best suit of clothes, which was plain proof that he was
- going out of Avonlea; and he had the buggy and the sorrel mare,
- which betokened that he was going a considerable distance.
- Now, where was Matthew Cuthbert going and why was he going there?
-
- Had it been any other man in Avonlea, Mrs. Rachel,
- deftly putting this and that together, might have given a
- pretty good guess as to both questions. But Matthew so
- rarely went from home that it must be something pressing and
- unusual which was taking him; he was the shyest man alive
- and hated to have to go among strangers or to any place
- where he might have to talk. Matthew, dressed up with a
- white collar and driving in a buggy, was something that
- didn't happen often. Mrs. Rachel, ponder as she might,
- could make nothing of it and her afternoon's enjoyment was spoiled.
-
- "I'll just step over to Green Gables after tea and find
- out from Marilla where he's gone and why," the worthy woman
- finally concluded. "He doesn't generally go to town this
- time of year and he NEVER visits; if he'd run out of turnip
- seed he wouldn't dress up and take the buggy to go for more;
- he wasn't driving fast enough to be going for a doctor. Yet
- something must have happened since last night to start him
- off. I'm clean puzzled, that's what, and I won't know a
- minute's peace of mind or conscience until I know what has
- taken Matthew Cuthbert out of Avonlea today."
-
- Accordingly after tea Mrs. Rachel set out; she had not
- far to go; the big, rambling, orchard-embowered house where
- the Cuthberts lived was a scant quarter of a mile up the
- road from Lynde's Hollow. To be sure, the long lane made it
- a good deal further. Matthew Cuthbert's father, as shy and
- silent as his son after him, had got as far away as he
- possibly could from his fellow men without actually
- retreating into the woods when he founded his homestead.
- Green Gables was built at the furthest edge of his cleared
- land and there it was to this day, barely visible from the
- main road along which all the other Avonlea houses were so
- sociably situated. Mrs. Rachel Lynde did not call living in
- such a place LIVING at all.
-
- "It's just STAYING, that's what," she said as she
- stepped along the deep-rutted, grassy lane bordered with
- wild rose bushes. "It's no wonder Matthew and Marilla are
- both a little odd, living away back here by themselves.
- Trees aren't much company, though dear knows if they were
- there'd be enough of them. I'd ruther look at people.
- To be sure, they seem contented enough; but then, I suppose,
- they're used to it. A body can get used to anything, even to
- being hanged, as the Irishman said."
-
- With this Mrs. Rachel stepped out of the lane into the
- backyard of Green Gables. Very green and neat and precise
- was that yard, set about on one side with great patriarchal
- willows and the other with prim Lombardies. Not a stray
- stick nor stone was to be seen, for Mrs. Rachel would have
- seen it if there had been. Privately she was of the opinion
- that Marilla Cuthbert swept that yard over as often as she
- swept her house. One could have eaten a meal off the ground
- without overbrimming the proverbial peck of dirt.
-
- Mrs. Rachel rapped smartly at the kitchen door and
- stepped in when bidden to do so. The kitchen at Green
- Gables was a cheerful apartment--or would have been cheerful
- if it had not been so painfully clean as to give it
- something of the appearance of an unused parlor. Its
- windows looked east and west; through the west one, looking
- out on the back yard, came a flood of mellow June sunlight;
- but the east one, whence you got a glimpse of the bloom
- white cherry-trees in the left orchard and nodding, slender
- birches down in the hollow by the brook, was greened over by
- a tangle of vines. Here sat Marilla Cuthbert, when she sat
- at all, always slightly distrustful of sunshine, which
- seemed to her too dancing and irresponsible a thing for a
- world which was meant to be taken seriously; and here she sat
- now, knitting, and the table behind her was laid for supper.
-
- Mrs. Rachel, before she had fairly closed the door, had
- taken a mental note of everything that was on that table.
- There were three plates laid, so that Marilla must be
- expecting some one home with Matthew to tea; but the dishes
- were everyday dishes and there was only crab-apple preserves
- and one kind of cake, so that the expected company could not
- be any particular company. Yet what of Matthew's white collar
- and the sorrel mare? Mrs. Rachel was getting fairly dizzy with
- this unusual mystery about quiet, unmysterious Green Gables.
-
- "Good evening, Rachel," Marilla said briskly. "This is
- a real fine evening, isn't it" Won't you sit down? How are
- all your folks?"
-
- Something that for lack of any other name might be
- called friendship existed and always had existed between
- Marilla Cuthbert and Mrs. Rachel, in spite of--or perhaps
- because of--their dissimilarity.
-
- Marilla was a tall, thin woman, with angles and without
- curves; her dark hair showed some gray streaks and was
- always twisted up in a hard little knot behind with two wire
- hairpins stuck aggressively through it. She looked like a
- woman of narrow experience and rigid conscience, which she
- was; but there was a saving something about her mouth which,
- if it had been ever so slightly developed, might have been
- considered indicative of a sense of humor.
-
- "We're all pretty well," said Mrs. Rachel. "I was kind
- of afraid YOU weren't, though, when I saw Matthew starting
- off today. I thought maybe he was going to the doctor's."
-
- Marilla's lips twitched understandingly. She had
- expected Mrs. Rachel up; she had known that the sight of
- Matthew jaunting off so unaccountably would be too much for
- her neighbor's curiosity.
-
- "Oh, no, I'm quite well although I had a bad headache
- yesterday," she said. "Matthew went to Bright River. We're
- getting a little boy from an orphan asylum in Nova Scotia
- and he's coming on the train tonight."
-
- If Marilla had said that Matthew had gone to Bright River to
- meet a kangaroo from Australia Mrs. Rachel could not have been
- more astonished. She was actually stricken dumb for five
- seconds. It was unsupposable that Marilla was making fun
- of her, but Mrs. Rachel was almost forced to suppose it.
-
- "Are you in earnest, Marilla?" she demanded when voice
- returned to her.
-
- "Yes, of course," said Marilla, as if getting boys from
- orphan asylums in Nova Scotia were part of the usual spring
- work on any well-regulated Avonlea farm instead of being an
- unheard of innovation.
-
- Mrs. Rachel felt that she had received a severe mental jolt.
- She thought in exclamation points. A boy! Marilla and
- Matthew Cuthbert of all people adopting a boy! From an
- orphan asylum! Well, the world was certainly turning upside
- down! She would be surprised at nothing after this! Nothing!
-
- "What on earth put such a notion into your head?" she demanded
- disapprovingly.
-
- This had been done without here advice being asked, and
- must perforce be disapproved.
-
- "Well, we've been thinking about it for some time--all
- winter in fact," returned Marilla. "Mrs. Alexander Spencer
- was up here one day before Christmas and she said she was
- going to get a little girl from the asylum over in Hopeton
- in the spring. Her cousin lives there and Mrs. Spencer has
- visited here and knows all about it. So Matthew and I have
- talked it over off and on ever since. We thought we'd get a
- boy. Matthew is getting up in years, you know--he's sixty--
- and he isn't so spry as he once was. His heart troubles him
- a good deal. And you know how desperate hard it's got to be
- to get hired help. There's never anybody to be had but
- those stupid, half-grown little French boys; and as soon as
- you do get one broke into your ways and taught something
- he's up and off to the lobster canneries or the States. At
- first Matthew suggested getting a Home boy. But I said `no'
- flat to that. `They may be all right--I'm not saying
- they're not--but no London street Arabs for me,' I said.
- `Give me a native born at least. There'll be a risk, no
- matter who we get. But I'll feel easier in my mind and
- sleep sounder at nights if we get a born Canadian.' So in
- the end we decided to ask Mrs. Spencer to pick us out one
- when she went over to get her little girl. We heard last
- week she was going, so we sent her word by Richard Spencer's
- folks at Carmody to bring us a smart, likely boy of about
- ten or eleven. We decided that would be the best age--old
- enough to be of some use in doing chores right off and young
- enough to be trained up proper. We mean to give him a good
- home and schooling. We had a telegram from Mrs. Alexander
- Spencer today--the mail-man brought it from the station--
- saying they were coming on the five-thirty train tonight.
- So Matthew went to Bright River to meet him. Mrs. Spencer
- will drop him off there. Of course she goes on to White
- Sands station herself"
-
- Mrs. Rachel prided herself on always speaking her mind;
- she proceeded to speak it now, having adjusted her mental
- attitude to this amazing piece of news.
-
- "Well, Marilla, I'll just tell you plain that I think
- you're doing a mighty foolish thing--a risky thing, that's
- what. You don't know what you're getting. You're bringing
- a strange child into your house and home and you don't know
- a single thing about him nor what his disposition is like
- nor what sort of parents he had nor how he's likely to turn
- out. Why, it was only last week I read in the paper how a
- man and his wife up west of the Island took a boy out of an
- orphan asylum and he set fire to the house at night--set it
- ON PURPOSE, Marilla--and nearly burnt them to a crisp in
- their beds. And I know another case where an adopted boy
- used to suck the eggs--they couldn't break him of it. If
- you had asked my advice in the matter--which you didn't do,
- Marilla--I'd have said for mercy's sake not to think of such
- a thing, that's what."
-
- This Job's comforting seemed neither to offend nor to alarm
- Marilla. She knitted steadily on.
-
- "I don't deny there's something in what you say, Rachel.
- I've had some qualms myself. But Matthew was terrible set
- on it. I could see that, so I gave in. It's so seldom
- Matthew sets his mind on anything that when he does I always
- feel it's my duty to give in. And as for the risk, there's
- risks in pretty near everything a body does in this world.
- There's risks in people's having children of their own if it
- comes to that--they don't always turn out well. And then
- Nova Scotia is right close to the Island. It isn't as if we
- were getting him from England or the States. He can't be
- much different from ourselves."
-
- "Well, I hope it will turn out all right," said Mrs.
- Rachel in a tone that plainly indicated her painful doubts.
- "Only don't say I didn't warn you if he burns Green Gables
- down or puts strychnine in the well--I heard of a case over
- in New Brunswick where an orphan asylum child did that and
- the whole family died in fearful agonies. Only, it was a
- girl in that instance."
-
- "Well, we're not getting a girl," said Marilla, as if
- poisoning wells were a purely feminine accomplishment and
- not to be dreaded in the case of a boy. "I'd never dream of
- taking a girl to bring up. I wonder at Mrs. Alexander
- Spencer for doing it. But there, SHE wouldn't shrink from
- adopting a whole orphan asylum if she took it into her head."
-
- Mrs. Rachel would have liked to stay until Matthew came home
- with his imported orphan. But reflecting that it would be a
- good two hours at least before his arrival she concluded to
- go up the road to Robert Bell's and tell the news. It would
- certainly make a sensation second to none, and Mrs. Rachel
- dearly loved to make a sensation. So she took herself away,
- somewhat to Marilla's relief, for the latter felt her doubts
- and fears reviving under the influence of Mrs. Rachel's pessimism.
-
- "Well, of all things that ever were or will be!"
- ejaculated Mrs. Rachel when she was safely out in the lane.
- "It does really seem as if I must be dreaming. Well, I'm
- sorry for that poor young one and no mistake. Matthew and
- Marilla don't know anything about children and they'll
- expect him to be wiser and steadier that his own
- grandfather, if so be's he ever had a grandfather, which is
- doubtful. It seems uncanny to think of a child at Green
- Gables somehow; there's never been one there, for Matthew
- and Marilla were grown up when the new house was built--if
- they ever WERE children, which is hard to believe when one
- looks at them. I wouldn't be in that orphan's shoes for
- anything. My, but I pity him, that's what."
-
- So said Mrs. Rachel to the wild rose bushes out of the
- fulness of her heart; but if she could have seen the child
- who was waiting patiently at the Bright River station at
- that very moment her pity would have been still deeper and
- more profound.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II
-
- Matthew Cuthbert is surprised
-
-
- Matthew Cuthbert and the sorrel mare jogged comfortably
- over the eight miles to Bright River. It was a pretty road,
- running along between snug farmsteads, with now and again a
- bit of balsamy fir wood to drive through or a hollow where
- wild plums hung out their filmy bloom. The air was sweet
- with the breath of many apple orchards and the meadows
- sloped away in the distance to horizon mists of pearl and
- purple; while
-
- "The little birds sang as if it were
- The one day of summer in all the year."
-
- Matthew enjoyed the drive after his own fashion, except
- during the moments when he met women and had to nod to them--
- for in Prince Edward island you are supposed to nod to all
- and sundry you meet on the road whether you know them or not.
-
- Matthew dreaded all women except Marilla and Mrs.
- Rachel; he had an uncomfortable feeling that the mysterious
- creatures were secretly laughing at him. He may have been
- quite right in thinking so, for he was an odd-looking
- personage, with an ungainly figure and long iron-gray hair
- that touched his stooping shoulders, and a full, soft brown
- beard which he had worn ever since he was twenty. In fact,
- he had looked at twenty very much as he looked at sixty,
- lacking a little of the grayness.
-
- When he reached Bright River there was no sign of any
- train; he thought he was too early, so he tied his horse in
- the yard of the small Bright River hotel and went over to
- the station house. The long platform was almost deserted;
- the only living creature in sight being a girl who was
- sitting on a pile of shingles at the extreme end. Matthew,
- barely noting that it WAS a girl, sidled past her as quickly
- as possible without looking at her. Had he looked he could
- hardly have failed to notice the tense rigidity and
- expectation of her attitude and expression. She was sitting
- there waiting for something or somebody and, since sitting
- and waiting was the only thing to do just then, she sat and
- waited with all her might and main.
-
- Matthew encountered the stationmaster locking up the
- ticket office preparatory to going home for supper, and
- asked him if the five-thirty train would soon be along.
-
- "The five-thirty train has been in and gone half an
- hour ago," answered that brisk official. "But there was a
- passenger dropped off for you--a little girl. She's sitting
- out there on the shingles. I asked her to go into the
- ladies' waiting room, but she informed me gravely that she
- preferred to stay outside. `There was more scope for
- imagination,' she said. She's a case, I should say."
-
- "I'm not expecting a girl," said Matthew blankly. "It's a boy
- I've come for. He should be here. Mrs. Alexander Spencer was
- to bring him over from Nova Scotia for me."
-
- The stationmaster whistled.
-
- "Guess there's some mistake," he said. "Mrs. Spencer
- came off the train with that girl and gave her into my
- charge. Said you and your sister were adopting her from an
- orphan asylum and that you would be along for her presently.
- That's all I know about it--and I haven't got any more
- orphans concealed hereabouts."
-
- "I don't understand," said Matthew helplessly, wishing that
- Marilla was at hand to cope with the situation.
-
- "Well, you'd better question the girl," said the station-
- master carelessly. "I dare say she'll be able to explain--
- she's got a tongue of her own, that's certain. Maybe they
- were out of boys of the brand you wanted."
-
- He walked jauntily away, being hungry, and the unfortunate
- Matthew was left to do that which was harder for him than
- bearding a lion in its den--walk up to a girl--a strange
- girl--an orphan girl--and demand of her why she wasn't a boy.
- Matthew groaned in spirit as he turned about and shuffled
- gently down the platform towards her.
-
- She had been watching him ever since he had passed her and
- she had her eyes on him now. Matthew was not looking at her
- and would not have seen what she was really like if he had
- been, but an ordinary observer would have seen this:
- A child of about eleven, garbed in a very short, very tight,
- very ugly dress of yellowish-gray wincey. She wore a faded
- brown sailor hat and beneath the hat, extending down her
- back, were two braids of very thick, decidedly red hair.
- Her face was small, white and thin, also much freckled; her
- mouth was large and so were her eyes, which looked green in
- some lights and moods and gray in others.
-
- So far, the ordinary observer; an extraordinary observer
- might have seen that the chin was very pointed and
- pronounced; that the big eyes were full of spirit and
- vivacity; that the mouth was sweet-lipped and expressive;
- that the forehead was broad and full; in short, our
- discerning extraordinary observer might have concluded that
- no commonplace soul inhabited the body of this stray woman-
- child of whom shy Matthew Cuthbert was so ludicrously afraid.
-
- Matthew, however, was spared the ordeal of speaking first,
- for as soon as she concluded that he was coming to her she
- stood up, grasping with one thin brown hand the handle of a
- shabby, old-fashioned carpet-bag; the other she held out to him.
-
- "I suppose you are Mr. Matthew Cuthbert of Green Gables?"
- she said in a peculiarly clear, sweet voice. "I'm very
- glad to see you. I was beginning to be afraid you
- weren't coming for me and I was imagining all the things
- that might have happened to prevent you. I had made up my
- mind that if you didn't come for me to-night I'd go down the
- track to that big wild cherry-tree at the bend, and climb up
- into it to stay all night. I wouldn't be a bit afraid, and
- it would be lovely to sleep in a wild cherry-tree all white
- with bloom in the moonshine, don't you think? You could
- imagine you were dwelling in marble halls, couldn't you?
- And I was quite sure you would come for me in the morning,
- if you didn't to-night."
-
- Matthew had taken the scrawny little hand awkwardly in his;
- then and there he decided what to do. He could not tell
- this child with the glowing eyes that there had been a
- mistake; he would take her home and let Marilla do that.
- She couldn't be left at Bright River anyhow, no matter what
- mistake had been made, so all questions and explanations might
- as well be deferred until he was safely back at Green Gables.
-
- "I'm sorry I was late," he said shyly. "Come along.
- The horse is over in the yard. Give me your bag."
-
- "Oh, I can carry it," the child responded cheerfully. "It
- isn't heavy. I've got all my worldly goods in it, but it
- isn't heavy. And if it isn't carried in just a certain way
- the handle pulls out--so I'd better keep it because I know
- the exact knack of it. It's an extremely old carpet-bag.
- Oh, I'm very glad you've come, even if it would have been
- nice to sleep in a wild cherry-tree. We've got to drive a
- long piece, haven't we? Mrs. Spencer said it was eight
- miles. I'm glad because I love driving. Oh, it seems so
- wonderful that I'm going to live with you and belong to you.
- I've never belonged to anybody--not really. But the asylum
- was the worst. I've only been in it four months, but that
- was enough. I don't suppose you ever were an orphan in an
- asylum, so you can't possibly understand what it is like.
- It's worse than anything you could imagine. Mrs. Spencer
- said it was wicked of me to talk like that, but I didn't
- mean to be wicked. It's so easy to be wicked without
- knowing it, isn't it? They were good, you know--the asylum
- people. But there is so little scope for the imagination in
- an asylum--only just in the other orphans. It was pretty
- interesting to imagine things about them--to imagine that
- perhaps the girl who sat next to you was really the daughter
- of a belted earl, who had been stolen away from her parents
- in her infancy by a cruel nurse who died before she could
- confess. I used to lie awake at nights and imagine things
- like that, because I didn't have time in the day. I guess
- that's why I'm so thin--I AM dreadful thin, ain't I? There
- isn't a pick on my bones. I do love to imagine I'm nice and
- plump, with dimples in my elbows."
-
- With this Matthew's companion stopped talking, partly
- because she was out of breath and partly because they had
- reached the buggy. Not another word did she say until they
- had left the village and were driving down a steep little
- hill, the road part of which had been cut so deeply into the
- soft soil, that the banks, fringed with blooming wild
- cherry-trees and slim white birches, were several feet
- above their heads.
-
- The child put out her hand and broke off a branch of
- wild plum that brushed against the side of the buggy.
-
- "Isn't that beautiful? What did that tree, leaning out from
- the bank, all white and lacy, make you think of?" she asked.
-
- "Well now, I dunno," said Matthew.
-
- "Why, a bride, of course--a bride all in white with a
- lovely misty veil. I've never seen one, but I can imagine
- what she would look like. I don't ever expect to be a bride
- myself. I'm so homely nobody will ever want to marry me--
- unless it might be a foreign missionary. I suppose a
- foreign missionary mightn't be very particular. But I do
- hope that some day I shall have a white dress. That is my
- highest ideal of earthly bliss. I just love pretty clothes.
- And I've never had a pretty dress in my life that I can
- remember--but of course it's all the more to look forward
- to, isn't it? And then I can imagine that I'm dressed
- gorgeously. This morning when I left the asylum I felt so
- ashamed because I had to wear this horrid old wincey dress.
- All the orphans had to wear them, you know. A merchant in
- Hopeton last winter donated three hundred yards of wincey to
- the asylum. Some people said it was because he couldn't
- sell it, but I'd rather believe that it was out of the
- kindness of his heart, wouldn't you? When we got on the
- train I felt as if everybody must be looking at me and
- pitying me. But I just went to work and imagined that I had
- on the most beautiful pale blue silk dress--because when you
- ARE imagining you might as well imagine something worth
- while--and a big hat all flowers and nodding plumes, and a
- gold watch, and kid gloves and boots. I felt cheered up
- right away and I enjoyed my trip to the Island with all my
- might. I wasn't a bit sick coming over in the boat.
- Neither was Mrs. Spencer although she generally is. She
- said she hadn't time to get sick, watching to see that I
- didn't fall overboard. She said she never saw the beat of
- me for prowling about. But if it kept her from being
- seasick it's a mercy I did prowl, isn't it? And I wanted to
- see everything that was to be seen on that boat, because I
- didn't know whether I'd ever have another opportunity. Oh,
- there are a lot more cherry-trees all in bloom! This Island
- is the bloomiest place. I just love it already, and I'm so
- glad I'm going to live here. I've always heard that Prince
- Edward Island was the prettiest place in the world, and I
- used to imagine I was living here, but I never really
- expected I would. It's delightful when your imaginations
- come true, isn't it? But those red roads are so funny.
- When we got into the train at Charlottetown and the red
- roads began to flash past I asked Mrs. Spencer what made
- them red and she said she didn't know and for pity's sake
- not to ask her any more questions. She said I must have
- asked her a thousand already. I suppose I had, too, but how
- you going to find out about things if you don't ask
- questions? And what DOES make the roads red?"
-
- "Well now, I dunno," said Matthew.
-
- "Well, that is one of the things to find out sometime.
- Isn't it splendid to think of all the things there are to
- find out about? It just makes me feel glad to be alive--
- it's such an interesting world. It wouldn't be half so
- interesting if we know all about everything, would it?
- There'd be no scope for imagination then, would there? But
- am I talking too much? People are always telling me I do.
- Would you rather I didn't talk? If you say so I'll stop. I
- can STOP when I make up my mind to it, although it's difficult."
-
- Matthew, much to his own surprise, was enjoying himself.
- Like most quiet folks he liked talkative people when they
- were willing to do the talking themselves and did not expect
- him to keep up his end of it. But he had never expected to
- enjoy the society of a little girl. Women were bad enough
- in all conscience, but little girls were worse. He detested
- the way they had of sidling past him timidly, with sidewise
- glances, as if they expected him to gobble them up at a
- mouthful if they ventured to say a word. That was the
- Avonlea type of well-bred little girl. But this freckled
- witch was very different, and although he found it rather
- difficult for his slower intelligence to keep up with her
- brisk mental processes he thought that he "kind of liked her
- chatter." So he said as shyly as usual:
-
- "Oh, you can talk as much as you like. I don't mind."
-
- "Oh, I'm so glad. I know you and I are going to get along
- together fine. It's such a relief to talk when one wants to
- and not be told that children should be seen and not heard.
- I've had that said to me a million times if I have once.
- And people laugh at me because I use big words. But if you
- have big ideas you have to use big words to express them,
- haven't you?"
-
- "Well now, that seems reasonable," said Matthew.
-
- "Mrs. Spencer said that my tongue must be hung in the
- middle. But it isn't--it's firmly fastened at one end.
- Mrs. Spencer said your place was named Green Gables. I
- asked her all about it. And she said there were trees all
- around it. I was gladder than ever. I just love trees.
- And there weren't any at all about the asylum, only a few
- poor weeny-teeny things out in front with little whitewashed
- cagey things about them. They just looked like orphans
- themselves, those trees did. It used to make me want to cry
- to look at them. I used to say to them, `Oh, you POOR
- little things! If you were out in a great big woods with
- other trees all around you and little mosses and Junebells
- growing over your roots and a brook not far away and birds
- singing in you branches, you could grow, couldn't you? But
- you can't where you are. I know just exactly how you feel,
- little trees.' I felt sorry to leave them behind this morning.
- You do get so attached to things like that, don't you?
- Is there a brook anywhere near Green Gables? I forgot to ask
- Mrs. Spencer that."
-
- "Well now, yes, there's one right below the house."
-
- "Fancy. It's always been one of my dreams to live near a
- brook. I never expected I would, though. Dreams don't
- often come true, do they? Wouldn't it be nice if they did?
- But just now I feel pretty nearly perfectly happy. I can't
- feel exactly perfectly happy because--well, what color would
- you call this?"
-
- She twitched one of her long glossy braids over her thin
- shoulder and held it up before Matthew's eyes. Matthew was
- not used to deciding on the tints of ladies' tresses, but in
- this case there couldn't be much doubt.
-
- "It's red, ain't it?" he said.
-
- The girl let the braid drop back with a sigh that seemed to
- come from her very toes and to exhale forth all the sorrows
- of the ages.
-
- "Yes, it's red," she said resignedly. "Now you see why I
- can't be perfectly happy. Nobody could who has red hair. I
- don't mind the other things so much--the freckles and the
- green eyes and my skinniness. I can imagine them away. I
- can imagine that I have a beautiful rose-leaf complexion and
- lovely starry violet eyes. But I CANNOT imagine that red
- hair away. I do my best. I think to myself, `Now my hair
- is a glorious black, black as the raven's wing.' But all
- the time I KNOW it is just plain red and it breaks my heart.
- It will be my lifelong sorrow. I read of a girl once in a
- novel who had a lifelong sorrow but it wasn't red hair.
- Her hair was pure gold rippling back from her alabaster brow.
- What is an alabaster brow? I never could find out.
- Can you tell me?"
-
- "Well now, I'm afraid I can't," said Matthew, who was
- getting a little dizzy. He felt as he had once felt in his
- rash youth when another boy had enticed him on the merry-go-
- round at a picnic.
-
- "Well, whatever it was it must have been something nice
- because she was divinely beautiful. Have you ever imagined
- what it must feel like to be divinely beautiful?"
-
- "Well now, no, I haven't," confessed Matthew ingenuously.
-
- "I have, often. Which would you rather be if you had the
- choice--divinely beautiful or dazzlingly clever or
- angelically good?"
-
- "Well now, I--I don't know exactly."
-
- "Neither do I. I can never decide. But it doesn't make
- much real difference for it isn't likely I'll ever be
- either. It's certain I'll never be angelically good.
- Mrs. Spencer says--oh, Mr. Cuthbert! Oh, Mr. Cuthbert!!
- Oh, Mr. Cuthbert!!!"
-
- That was not what Mrs. Spencer had said; neither had
- the child tumbled out of the buggy nor had Matthew done
- anything astonishing. They had simply rounded a curve in
- the road and found themselves in the "Avenue."
-
- The "Avenue," so called by the Newbridge people, was a
- stretch of road four or five hundred yards long, completely
- arched over with huge, wide-spreading apple-trees, planted
- years ago by an eccentric old farmer. Overhead was one long
- canopy of snowy fragrant bloom. Below the boughs the air
- was full of a purple twilight and far ahead a glimpse of
- painted sunset sky shone like a great rose window at the end
- of a cathedral aisle.
-
- Its beauty seemed to strike the child dumb. She leaned back
- in the buggy, her thin hands clasped before her, her face
- lifted rapturously to the white splendor above. Even when
- they had passed out and were driving down the long slope to
- Newbridge she never moved or spoke. Still with rapt face
- she gazed afar into the sunset west, with eyes that saw
- visions trooping splendidly across that glowing background.
- Through Newbridge, a bustling little village where dogs
- barked at them and small boys hooted and curious faces
- peered from the windows, they drove, still in silence. When
- three more miles had dropped away behind them the child had
- not spoken. She could keep silence, it was evident, as
- energetically as she could talk.
-
- "I guess you're feeling pretty tired and hungry,"
- Matthew ventured to say at last, accounting for her long
- visitation of dumbness with the only reason he could think
- of. "But we haven't very far to go now--only another mile."
-
- She came out of her reverie with a deep sigh and looked at him with
- the dreamy gaze of a soul that had been wondering afar, star-led.
-
- "Oh, Mr. Cuthbert," she whispered, "that place we came
- through--that white place--what was it?"
-
- "Well now, you must mean the Avenue," said Matthew after a few
- moments' profound reflection. "It is a kind of pretty place."
-
- "Pretty? Oh, PRETTY doesn't seem the right word to use.
- Nor beautiful, either. They don't go far enough. Oh, it
- was wonderful--wonderful. It's the first thing I ever saw
- that couldn't be improved upon by imagination. It just
- satisfies me here"--she put one hand on her breast--"it made
- a queer funny ache and yet it was a pleasant ache. Did you
- ever have an ache like that, Mr. Cuthbert?"
-
- "Well now, I just can't recollect that I ever had."
-
- "I have it lots of time--whenever I see anything royally
- beautiful. But they shouldn't call that lovely place the
- Avenue. There is no meaning in a name like that. They
- should call it--let me see--the White Way of Delight. Isn't
- that a nice imaginative name? When I don't like the name of
- a place or a person I always imagine a new one and always
- think of them so. There was a girl at the asylum whose name
- was Hepzibah Jenkins, but I always imagined her as Rosalia
- DeVere. Other people may call that place the Avenue, but I
- shall always call it the White Way of Delight. Have we
- really only another mile to go before we get home? I'm glad
- and I'm sorry. I'm sorry because this drive has been so
- pleasant and I'm always sorry when pleasant things end.
- Something still pleasanter may come after, but you can never
- be sure. And it's so often the case that it isn't
- pleasanter. That has been my experience anyhow. But I'm
- glad to think of getting home. You see, I've never had a
- real home since I can remember. It gives me that pleasant
- ache again just to think of coming to a really truly home.
- Oh, isn't that pretty!"
-
- They had driven over the crest of a hill. Below them was a
- pond, looking almost like a river so long and winding was
- it. A bridge spanned it midway and from there to its lower
- end, where an amber-hued belt of sand-hills shut it in from
- the dark blue gulf beyond, the water was a glory of many
- shifting hues--the most spiritual shadings of crocus and
- rose and ethereal green, with other elusive tintings for
- which no name has ever been found. Above the bridge the
- pond ran up into fringing groves of fir and maple and lay
- all darkly translucent in their wavering shadows. Here and
- there a wild plum leaned out from the bank like a white-clad
- girl tip-toeing to her own reflection. From the marsh at
- the head of the pond came the clear, mournfully-sweet chorus
- of the frogs. There was a little gray house peering around
- a white apple orchard on a slope beyond and, although it was
- not yet quite dark, a light was shining from one of its windows.
-
- "That's Barry's pond," said Matthew.
-
- "Oh, I don't like that name, either. I shall call it--let
- me see--the Lake of Shining Waters. Yes, that is the right
- name for it. I know because of the thrill. When I hit on a
- name that suits exactly it gives me a thrill. Do things
- ever give you a thrill?"
-
- Matthew ruminated.
-
- "Well now, yes. It always kind of gives me a thrill to see
- them ugly white grubs that spade up in the cucumber beds.
- I hate the look of them."
-
- "Oh, I don't think that can be exactly the same kind of a
- thrill. Do you think it can? There doesn't seem to be much
- connection between grubs and lakes of shining waters, does
- there? But why do other people call it Barry's pond?"
-
- "I reckon because Mr. Barry lives up there in that house.
- Orchard Slope's the name of his place. If it wasn't for
- that big bush behind it you could see Green Gables from
- here. But we have to go over the bridge and round by the
- road, so it's near half a mile further."
-
- "Has Mr. Barry any little girls? Well, not so very little
- either--about my size."
-
- "He's got one about eleven. Her name is Diana."
-
- "Oh!" with a long indrawing of breath. "What a perfectly
- lovely name!"
-
- "Well now, I dunno. There's something dreadful heathenish
- about it, seems to me. I'd ruther Jane or Mary or some
- sensible name like that. But when Diana was born there was
- a schoolmaster boarding there and they gave him the naming
- of her and he called her Diana."
-
- "I wish there had been a schoolmaster like that around when
- I was born, then. Oh, here we are at the bridge. I'm going
- to shut my eyes tight. I'm always afraid going over
- bridges. I can't help imagining that perhaps just as we
- get to the middle, they'll crumple up like a jack-knife and
- nip us. So I shut my eyes. But I always have to open them
- for all when I think we're getting near the middle.
- Because, you see, if the bridge DID crumple up I'd want to
- SEE it crumple. What a jolly rumble it makes! I always
- like the rumble part of it. Isn't it splendid there are so
- many things to like in this world? There we're over. Now
- I'll look back. Good night, dear Lake of Shining Waters. I
- always say good night to the things I love, just as I would
- to people I think they like it. That water looks as if it
- was smiling at me."
-
- When they had driven up the further hill and around a
- corner Matthew said:
-
- "We're pretty near home now. That's Green Gables over--"
-
- "Oh, don't tell me," she interrupted breathlessly, catching
- at his partially raised arm and shutting her eyes that she
- might not see his gesture. "Let me guess. I'm sure I'll
- guess right."
-
- She opened her eyes and looked about her. They were on the
- crest of a hill. The sun had set some time since, but the
- landscape was still clear in the mellow afterlight. To the
- west a dark church spire rose up against a marigold sky.
- Below was a little valley and beyond a long, gently-rising
- slope with snug farmsteads scattered along it. From one to
- another the child's eyes darted, eager and wistful. At last
- they lingered on one away to the left, far back from the
- road, dimly white with blossoming trees in the twilight of
- the surrounding woods. Over it, in the stainless southwest
- sky, a great crystal-white star was shining like a lamp of
- guidance and promise.
-
- "That's it, isn't it?" she said, pointing.
-
- Matthew slapped the reins on the sorrel's back delightedly.
-
- "Well now, you've guessed it! But I reckon Mrs. Spencer
- described it so's you could tell."
-
- "No, she didn't--really she didn't. All she said might just
- as well have been about most of those other places. I
- hadn't any real idea what it looked like. But just as soon
- as I saw it I felt it was home. Oh, it seems as if I must
- be in a dream. Do you know, my arm must be black and blue
- from the elbow up, for I've pinched myself so many times
- today. Every little while a horrible sickening feeling
- would come over me and I'd be so afraid it was all a dream.
- Then I'd pinch myself to see if it was real--until suddenly
- I remembered that even supposing it was only a dream I'd
- better go on dreaming as long as I could; so I stopped
- pinching. But it IS real and we're nearly home."
-
- With a sigh of rapture she relapsed into silence. Matthew
- stirred uneasily. He felt glad that it would be Marilla and
- not he who would have to tell this waif of the world that
- the home she longed for was not to be hers after all. They
- drove over Lynde's Hollow, where it was already quite dark,
- but not so dark that Mrs. Rachel could not see them from her
- window vantage, and up the hill and into the long lane of
- Green Gables. By the time they arrived at the house Matthew
- was shrinking from the approaching revelation with an energy
- he did not understand. It was not of Marilla or himself he
- was thinking of the trouble this mistake was probably going
- to make for them, but of the child's disappointment. When
- he thought of that rapt light being quenched in her eyes he
- had an uncomfortable feeling that he was going to assist at
- murdering something--much the same feeling that came over
- him when he had to kill a lamb or calf or any other innocent
- little creature.
-
- The yard was quite dark as they turned into it and the
- poplar leaves were rustling silkily all round it.
-
- "Listen to the trees talking in their sleep," she whispered, as
- he lifted her to the ground. "What nice dreams they must have!"
-
- Then, holding tightly to the carpet-bag which contained "all
- her worldly goods," she followed him into the house.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III
-
- Marilla Cuthbert is Surprised
-
-
- Marilla came briskly forward as Matthew opened the door.
- But when her eyes fell of the odd little figure in the
- stiff, ugly dress, with the long braids of red hair and the
- eager, luminous eyes, she stopped short in amazement.
-
- "Matthew Cuthbert, who's that?" she ejaculated. "Where is
- the boy?"
-
- "There wasn't any boy," said Matthew wretchedly. "There was
- only HER."
-
- He nodded at the child, remembering that he had never even
- asked her name.
-
- "No boy! But there MUST have been a boy," insisted Marilla.
- "We sent word to Mrs. Spencer to bring a boy."
-
- "Well, she didn't. She brought HER. I asked the station-
- master. And I had to bring her home. She couldn't be left
- there, no matter where the mistake had come in."
-
- "Well, this is a pretty piece of business!" ejaculated Marilla.
-
- During this dialogue the child had remained silent, her eyes
- roving from one to the other, all the animation fading out
- of her face. Suddenly she seemed to grasp the full meaning
- of what had been said. Dropping her precious carpet-bag she
- sprang forward a step and clasped her hands.
-
- "You don't want me!" she cried. "You don't want me because
- I'm not a boy! I might have expected it. Nobody ever did
- want me. I might have known it was all too beautiful to last.
- I might have known nobody really did want me. Oh, what shall
- I do? I'm going to burst into tears!"
-
- Burst into tears she did. Sitting down on a chair by the
- table, flinging her arms out upon it, and burying her face
- in them, she proceeded to cry stormily. Marilla and Matthew
- looked at each other deprecatingly across the stove.
- Neither of them knew what to say or do. Finally Marilla
- stepped lamely into the breach.
-
- "Well, well, there's no need to cry so about it."
-
- "Yes, there IS need!" The child raised her head quickly,
- revealing a tear-stained face and trembling lips. "YOU
- would cry, too, if you were an orphan and had come to a
- place you thought was going to be home and found that they
- didn't want you because you weren't a boy. Oh, this is the
- most TRAGICAL thing that ever happened to me!"
-
- Something like a reluctant smile, rather rusty from long
- disuse, mellowed Marilla's grim expression.
-
- "Well, don't cry any more. We're not going to turn you out-
- of-doors to-night. You'll have to stay here until we
- investigate this affair. What's your name?"
-
- The child hesitated for a moment.
-
- "Will you please call me Cordelia?" she said eagerly.
-
- "CALL you Cordelia? Is that your name?"
-
- "No-o-o, it's not exactly my name, but I would love to be
- called Cordelia. It's such a perfectly elegant name."
-
- "I don't know what on earth you mean. If Cordelia isn't
- your name, what is?"
-
- "Anne Shirley," reluctantly faltered forth the owner of that
- name, "but, oh, please do call me Cordelia. It can't matter
- much to you what you call me if I'm only going to be here a
- little while, can it? And Anne is such an unromantic name."
-
- "Unromantic fiddlesticks!" said the unsympathetic Marilla.
- "Anne is a real good plain sensible name. You've no need to
- be ashamed of it."
-
- "Oh, I'm not ashamed of it," explained Anne, "only I like
- Cordelia better. I've always imagined that my name was
- Cordelia--at least, I always have of late years. When I was
- young I used to imagine it was Geraldine, but I like
- Cordelia better now. But if you call me Anne please call me
- Anne spelled with an E."
-
- "What difference does it make how it's spelled?" asked Marilla
- with another rusty smile as she picked up the teapot.
-
- "Oh, it makes SUCH a difference. It LOOKS so much nicer.
- When you hear a name pronounced can't you always see it in
- your mind, just as if it was printed out? I can; and A-n-n
- looks dreadful, but A-n-n-e looks so much more distinguished.
- If you'll only call me Anne spelled with an E I shall try to
- reconcile myself to not being called Cordelia."
-
- "Very well, then, Anne spelled with an E, can you tell us how
- this mistake came to be made? We sent word to Mrs. Spencer
- to bring us a boy. Were there no boys at the asylum?"
-
- "Oh, yes, there was an abundance of them. But Mrs. Spencer
- said DISTINCTLY that you wanted a girl about eleven years
- old. And the matron said she thought I would do. You don't
- know how delighted I was. I couldn't sleep all last night
- for joy. Oh," she added reproachfully, turning to Matthew,
- "why didn't you tell me at the station that you didn't want
- me and leave me there? If I hadn't seen the White Way of
- Delight and the Lake of Shining Waters it wouldn't be so hard."
-
- "What on earth does she mean?" demanded Marilla, staring
- at Matthew.
-
- "She--she's just referring to some conversation we had on
- the road," said Matthew hastily. "I'm going out to put the
- mare in, Marilla. Have tea ready when I come back."
-
- "Did Mrs. Spencer bring anybody over besides you?"
- continued Marilla when Matthew had gone out.
-
- "She brought Lily Jones for herself. Lily is only five years
- old and she is very beautiful and had nut-brown hair. If I was
- very beautiful and had nut-brown hair would you keep me?"
-
- "No. We want a boy to help Matthew on the farm. A girl
- would be of no use to us. Take off your hat. I'll lay it
- and your bag on the hall table."
-
- Anne took off her hat meekly. Matthew came back presently
- and they sat down to supper. But Anne could not eat. In
- vain she nibbled at the bread and butter and pecked at the
- crab-apple preserve out of the little scalloped glass dish
- by her plate. She did not really make any headway at all.
-
- "You're not eating anything," said Marilla sharply, eying
- her as if it were a serious shortcoming. Anne sighed.
-
- "I can't. I'm in the depths of despair. Can you eat when
- you are in the depths of despair?"
-
- "I've never been in the depths of despair, so I can't say,"
- responded Marilla.
-
- "Weren't you? Well, did you ever try to IMAGINE you were in
- the depths of despair?"
-
- "No, I didn't."
-
- "Then I don't think you can understand what it's like. It's
- very uncomfortable feeling indeed. When you try to eat a lump
- comes right up in your throat and you can't swallow anything,
- not even if it was a chocolate caramel. I had one chocolate
- caramel once two years ago and it was simply delicious. I've
- often dreamed since then that I had a lot of chocolate caramels,
- but I always wake up just when I'm going to eat them. I do hope
- you won't be offended because I can't eat. Everything is
- extremely nice, but still I cannot eat."
-
- "I guess she's tired," said Matthew, who hadn't spoken since
- his return from the barn. "Best put her to bed, Marilla."
-
- Marilla had been wondering where Anne should be put to bed.
- She had prepared a couch in the kitchen chamber for the
- desired and expected boy. But, although it was neat and
- clean, it did not seem quite the thing to put a girl there
- somehow. But the spare room was out of the question for
- such a stray waif, so there remained only the east gable
- room. Marilla lighted a candle and told Anne to follow her,
- which Anne spiritlessly did, taking her hat and carpet-bag
- from the hall table as she passed. The hall was fearsomely
- clean; the little gable chamber in which she presently found
- herself seemed still cleaner.
-
- Marilla set the candle on a three-legged, three-cornered
- table and turned down the bedclothes.
-
- "I suppose you have a nightgown?" she questioned.
-
- Anne nodded.
-
- "Yes, I have two. The matron of the asylum made them for
- me. They're fearfully skimpy. There is never enough to go
- around in an asylum, so things are always skimpy--at least
- in a poor asylum like ours. I hate skimpy night-dresses.
- But one can dream just as well in them as in lovely trailing
- ones, with frills around the neck, that's one consolation."
-
- "Well, undress as quick as you can and go to bed. I'll come
- back in a few minutes for the candle. I daren't trust you
- to put it out yourself. You'd likely set the place on fire."
-
- When Marilla had gone Anne looked around her wistfully.
- The whitewashed walls were so painfully bare and staring
- that she thought they must ache over their own bareness.
- The floor was bare, too, except for a round braided mat in
- the middle such as Anne had never seen before. In one corner
- was the bed, a high, old-fashioned one, with four dark, low-
- turned posts. In the other corner was the aforesaid three-
- corner table adorned with a fat, red velvet pin-cushion hard
- enough to turn the point of the most adventurous pin. Above
- it hung a little six-by-eight mirror. Midway between table
- and bed was the window, with an icy white muslin frill over
- it, and opposite it was the wash-stand. The whole apartment
- was of a rigidity not to be described in words, but which
- sent a shiver to the very marrow of Anne's bones. With a
- sob she hastily discarded her garments, put on the skimpy
- nightgown and sprang into bed where she burrowed face
- downward into the pillow and pulled the clothes over her
- head. When Marilla came up for the light various skimpy
- articles of raiment scattered most untidily over the floor
- and a certain tempestuous appearance of the bed were the
- only indications of any presence save her own.
-
- She deliberately picked up Anne's clothes, placed them
- neatly on a prim yellow chair, and then, taking up the
- candle, went over to the bed.
-
- "Good night," she said, a little awkwardly, but not unkindly.
-
- Anne's white face and big eyes appeared over the bedclothes
- with a startling suddenness.
-
- "How can you call it a GOOD night when you know it must be
- the very worst night I've ever had?" she said reproachfully.
-
- Then she dived down into invisibility again.
-
- Marilla went slowly down to the kitchen and proceeded to
- wash the supper dishes. Matthew was smoking--a sure sign of
- perturbation of mind. He seldom smoked, for Marilla set her
- face against it as a filthy habit; but at certain times and
- seasons he felt driven to it and them Marilla winked at the
- practice, realizing that a mere man must have some vent for
- his emotions.
-
- "Well, this is a pretty kettle of fish," she said
- wrathfully. "This is what comes of sending word instead of
- going ourselves. Richard Spencer's folks have twisted that
- message somehow. One of us will have to drive over and see
- Mrs. Spencer tomorrow, that's certain. This girl will have
- to be sent back to the asylum."
-
- "Yes, I suppose so," said Matthew reluctantly.
-
- "You SUPPOSE so! Don't you know it?"
-
- "Well now, she's a real nice little thing, Marilla. It's kind of
- a pity to send her back when she's so set on staying here."
-
- "Matthew Cuthbert, you don't mean to say you think we ought
- to keep her!"
-
- Marilla's astonishment could not have been greater if Matthew had
- expressed a predilection for standing on his head.
-
- "Well, now, no, I suppose not--not exactly," stammered Matthew,
- uncomfortably driven into a corner for his precise meaning.
- "I suppose--we could hardly be expected to keep her."
-
- "I should say not. What good would she be to us?"
-
- "We might be some good to her," said Matthew suddenly and
- unexpectedly.
-
- "Matthew Cuthbert, I believe that child has bewitched you!
- I can see as plain as plain that you want to keep her."
-
- "Well now, she's a real interesting little thing," persisted
- Matthew. "You should have heard her talk coming from the
- station."
-
- "Oh, she can talk fast enough. I saw that at once. It's
- nothing in her favour, either. I don't like children who
- have so much to say. I don't want an orphan girl and if I
- did she isn't the style I'd pick out. There's something I
- don't understand about her. No, she's got to be despatched
- straight-way back to where she came from."
-
- "I could hire a French boy to help me," said Matthew, "and
- she'd be company for you."
-
- "I'm not suffering for company," said Marilla shortly. "And
- I'm not going to keep her."
-
- "Well now, it's just as you say, of course, Marilla," said
- Matthew rising and putting his pipe away. "I'm going to bed."
-
- To bed went Matthew. And to bed, when she had put her
- dishes away, went Marilla, frowning most resolutely. And
- up-stairs, in the east gable, a lonely, heart-hungry,
- friendless child cried herself to sleep.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
- Morning at Green Gables
-
-
- It was broad daylight when Anne awoke and sat up in bed,
- staring confusedly at the window through which a flood of
- cheery sunshine was pouring and outside of which something
- white and feathery waved across glimpses of blue sky.
-
- For a moment she could not remember where she was. First
- came a delightful thrill, as something very pleasant; then a
- horrible remembrance. This was Green Gables and they didn't
- want her because she wasn't a boy!
-
- But it was morning and, yes, it was a cherry-tree in full
- bloom outside of her window. With a bound she was out of
- bed and across the floor. She pushed up the sash--it went
- up stiffly and creakily, as if it hadn't been opened for a
- long time, which was the case; and it stuck so tight that
- nothing was needed to hold it up.
-
- Anne dropped on her knees and gazed out into the June
- morning, her eyes glistening with delight. Oh, wasn't it
- beautiful? Wasn't it a lovely place? Suppose she wasn't
- really going to stay here! She would imagine she was.
- There was scope for imagination here.
-
- A huge cherry-tree grew outside, so close that its boughs
- tapped against the house, and it was so thick-set with
- blossoms that hardly a leaf was to be seen. On both sides
- of the house was a big orchard, one of apple-trees and one
- of cherry-trees, also showered over with blossoms; and their
- grass was all sprinkled with dandelions. In the garden below
- were lilac-trees purple with flowers, and their dizzily
- sweet fragrance drifted up to the window on the morning
- wind.
-
- Below the garden a green field lush with clover sloped down
- to the hollow where the brook ran and where scores of white
- birches grew, upspringing airily out of an undergrowth
- suggestive of delightful possibilities in ferns and mosses
- and woodsy things generally. Beyond it was a hill, green
- and feathery with spruce and fir; there was a gap in it
- where the gray gable end of the little house she had seen
- from the other side of the Lake of Shining Waters was visible.
-
- Off to the left were the big barns and beyond them, away
- down over green, low-sloping fields, was a sparkling blue
- glimpse of sea.
-
- Anne's beauty-loving eyes lingered on it all, taking everything
- greedily in. She had looked on so many unlovely places in her life,
- poor child; but this was as lovely as anything she had ever dreamed.
-
- She knelt there, lost to everything but the loveliness
- around her, until she was startled by a hand on her
- shoulder. Marilla had come in unheard by the small dreamer.
-
- "It's time you were dressed," she said curtly.
-
- Marilla really did not know how to talk to the child, and
- her uncomfortable ignorance made her crisp and curt when she
- did not mean to be.
-
- Anne stood up and drew a long breath.
-
- "Oh, isn't it wonderful?" she said, waving her hand
- comprehensively at the good world outside.
-
- "It's a big tree," said Marilla, "and it blooms great, but
- the fruit don't amount to much never--small and wormy."
-
- "Oh, I don't mean just the tree; of course it's lovely--yes,
- it's RADIANTLY lovely--it blooms as if it meant it--but I
- meant everything, the garden and the orchard and the brook
- and the woods, the whole big dear world. Don't you feel as
- if you just loved the world on a morning like this? And I
- can hear the brook laughing all the way up here. Have you
- ever noticed what cheerful things brooks are? They're
- always laughing. Even in winter-time I've heard them under
- the ice. I'm so glad there's a brook near Green Gables.
- Perhaps you think it doesn't make any difference to me when
- you're not going to keep me, but it does. I shall always
- like to remember that there is a brook at Green Gables even
- if I never see it again. If there wasn't a brook I'd be
- HAUNTED by the uncomfortable feeling that there ought to be
- one. I'm not in the depths of despair this morning. I
- never can be in the morning. Isn't it a splendid thing that
- there are mornings? But I feel very sad. I've just been
- imagining that it was really me you wanted after all and
- that I was to stay here for ever and ever. It was a great
- comfort while it lasted. But the worst of imagining things
- is that the time comes when you have to stop and that hurts."
-
- "You'd better get dressed and come down-stairs and never
- mind your imaginings," said Marilla as soon as she could get
- a word in edgewise. "Breakfast is waiting. Wash your face
- and comb your hair. Leave the window up and turn your bedclothes
- back over the foot of the bed. Be as smart as you can."
-
- Anne could evidently be smart so some purpose for she was
- down-stairs in ten minutes' time, with her clothes neatly
- on, her hair brushed and braided, her face washed, and a
- comfortable consciousness pervading her soul that she had
- fulfilled all Marilla's requirements. As a matter of fact,
- however, she had forgotten to turn back the bedclothes.
-
- "I'm pretty hungry this morning," she announced as she
- slipped into the chair Marilla placed for her. "The world
- doesn't seem such a howling wilderness as it did last night.
- I'm so glad it's a sunshiny morning. But I like rainy
- mornings real well, too. All sorts of mornings are
- interesting, don't you think? You don't know what's going
- to happen through the day, and there's so much scope for
- imagination. But I'm glad it's not rainy today because
- it's easier to be cheerful and bear up under affliction on a
- sunshiny day. I feel that I have a good deal to bear up
- under. It's all very well to read about sorrows and imagine
- yourself living through them heroically, but it's not so
- nice when you really come to have them, is it?"
-
- "For pity's sake hold your tongue," said Marilla. "You talk
- entirely too much for a little girl."
-
- Thereupon Anne held her tongue so obediently and thoroughly
- that her continued silence made Marilla rather nervous, as
- if in the presence of something not exactly natural.
- Matthew also held his tongue,--but this was natural,--so
- that the meal was a very silent one.
-
- As it progressed Anne became more and more abstracted,
- eating mechanically, with her big eyes fixed unswervingly
- and unseeingly on the sky outside the window. This made
- Marilla more nervous than ever; she had an uncomfortable
- feeling that while this odd child's body might be there at
- the table her spirit was far away in some remote airy
- cloudland, borne aloft on the wings of imagination. Who
- would want such a child about the place?
-
- Yet Matthew wished to keep her, of all unaccountable things!
- Marilla felt that he wanted it just as much this morning as
- he had the night before, and that he would go on wanting it.
- That was Matthew's way--take a whim into his head and cling
- to it with the most amazing silent persistency--a
- persistency ten times more potent and effectual in its very
- silence than if he had talked it out.
-
- When the meal was ended Anne came out of her reverie and
- offered to wash the dishes.
-
- "Can you wash dishes right?" asked Marilla distrustfully.
-
- "Pretty well. I'm better at looking after children, though.
- I've had so much experience at that. It's such a pity you
- haven't any here for me to look after."
-
- "I don't feel as if I wanted any more children to look after
- than I've got at present. YOU'RE problem enough in all
- conscience. What's to be done with you I don't know.
- Matthew is a most ridiculous man."
-
- "I think he's lovely," said Anne reproachfully. "He is so
- very sympathetic. He didn't mind how much I talked--he
- seemed to like it. I felt that he was a kindred spirit as
- soon as ever I saw him."
-
- "You're both queer enough, if that's what you mean by
- kindred spirits," said Marilla with a sniff. "Yes, you may
- wash the dishes. Take plenty of hot water, and be sure you
- dry them well. I've got enough to attend to this morning
- for I'll have to drive over to White Sands in the afternoon
- and see Mrs. Spencer. You'll come with me and we'll settle
- what's to be done with you. After you've finished the
- dishes go up-stairs and make your bed."
-
- Anne washed the dishes deftly enough, as Marilla who kept a
- sharp eye on the process, discerned. Later on she made her
- bed less successfully, for she had never learned the art of
- wrestling with a feather tick. But is was done somehow and
- smoothed down; and then Marilla, to get rid of her, told her
- she might go out-of-doors and amuse herself until dinner time.
-
- Anne flew to the door, face alight, eyes glowing. On the
- very threshold she stopped short, wheeled about, came back
- and sat down by the table, light and glow as effectually
- blotted out as if some one had clapped an extinguisher on her.
-
- "What's the matter now?" demanded Marilla.
-
- "I don't dare go out," said Anne, in the tone of a martyr
- relinquishing all earthly joys. "If I can't stay here there
- is no use in my loving Green Gables. And if I go out there
- and get acquainted with all those trees and flowers and the
- orchard and the brook I'll not be able to help loving it.
- It's hard enough now, so I won't make it any harder. I want
- to go out so much--everything seems to be calling to me,
- `Anne, Anne, come out to us. Anne, Anne, we want a
- playmate'--but it's better not. There is no use in loving
- things if you have to be torn from them, is there? And it's
- so hard to keep from loving things, isn't it? That was why
- I was so glad when I thought I was going to live here. I
- thought I'd have so many things to love and nothing to
- hinder me. But that brief dream is over. I am resigned to
- my fate now, so I don't think I'll go out for fear I'll get
- unresigned again. What is the name of that geranium on the
- window-sill, please?"
-
- "That's the apple-scented geranium."
-
- "Oh, I don't mean that sort of a name. I mean just a name
- you gave it yourself. Didn't you give it a name? May I
- give it one then? May I call it--let me see--Bonny would
- do--may I call it Bonny while I'm here? Oh, do let me!"
-
- "Goodness, I don't care. But where on earth is the sense of
- naming a geranium?"
-
- "Oh, I like things to have handles even if they are only
- geraniums. It makes them seem more like people. How do you
- know but that it hurts a geranium's feelings just to be
- called a geranium and nothing else? You wouldn't like to be
- called nothing but a woman all the time. Yes, I shall call
- it Bonny. I named that cherry-tree outside my bedroom
- window this morning. I called it Snow Queen because it was
- so white. Of course, it won't always be in blossom, but one
- can imagine that it is, can't one?"
-
- "I never in all my life say or heard anything to equal her,"
- muttered Marilla, beating a retreat down to the cellar after
- potatoes. "She is kind of interesting as Matthew says. I
- can feel already that I'm wondering what on earth she'll say
- next. She'll be casting a spell over me, too. She's cast
- it over Matthew. That look he gave me when he went out said
- everything he said or hinted last night over again. I wish
- he was like other men and would talk things out. A body
- could answer back then and argue him into reason. But
- what's to be done with a man who just LOOKS?"
-
- Anne had relapsed into reverie, with her chin in her hands
- and her eyes on the sky, when Marilla returned from her
- cellar pilgrimage. There Marilla left her until the early
- dinner was on the table.
-
- "I suppose I can have the mare and buggy this afternoon,
- Matthew?" said Marilla.
-
- Matthew nodded and looked wistfully at Anne. Marilla
- intercepted the look and said grimly:
-
- "I'm going to drive over to White Sands and settle this
- thing. I'll take Anne with me and Mrs. Spencer will
- probably make arrangements to send her back to Nova Scotia
- at once. I'll set your tea out for you and I'll be home in
- time to milk the cows."
-
- Still Matthew said nothing and Marilla had a sense of having
- wasted words and breath. There is nothing more aggravating
- than a man who won't talk back--unless it is a woman who won't.
-
- Matthew hitched the sorrel into the buggy in due time and
- Marilla and Anne set off. Matthew opened the yard gate for
- them and as they drove slowly through, he said, to nobody in
- particular as it seemed:
-
- "Little Jerry Buote from the Creek was here this morning,
- and I told him I guessed I'd hire him for the summer."
-
- Marilla made no reply, but she hit the unlucky sorrel such a
- vicious clip with the whip that the fat mare, unused to such
- treatment, whizzed indignantly down the lane at an alarming
- pace. Marilla looked back once as the buggy bounced along
- and saw that aggravating Matthew leaning over the gate,
- looking wistfully after them.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V
-
- Anne's History
-
-
- "Do you know," said Anne confidentially, "I've made up
- my mind to enjoy this drive. It's been my experience that
- you can nearly always enjoy things if you make up your mind
- firmly that you will. Of course, you must make it up
- FIRMLY. I am not going to think about going back to the
- asylum while we're having our drive. I'm just going to
- think about the drive. Oh, look, there's one little early
- wild rose out! Isn't it lovely? Don't you think it must be
- glad to be a rose? Wouldn't it be nice if roses could talk?
- I'm sure they could tell us such lovely things. And isn't
- pink the most bewitching color in the world? I love it, but
- I can't wear it. Redheaded people can't wear pink, not
- even in imagination. Did you ever know of anybody whose
- hair was red when she was young, but got to be another
- color when she grew up?"
-
- "No, I don't know as I ever did," said Marilla mercilessly,
- "and I shouldn't think it likely to happen in your case either."
-
- Anne sighed.
-
- "Well, that is another hope gone. `My life is a perfect
- graveyard of buried hopes.' That's a sentence I read in a
- book once, and I say it over to comfort myself whenever
- I'm disappointed in anything."
-
- "I don't see where the comforting comes in myself,"
- said Marilla.
-
- "Why, because it sounds so nice and romantic, just as if
- I were a heroine in a book, you know. I am so fond of
- romantic things, and a graveyard full of buried hopes is
- about as romantic a thing as one can imagine isn't it? I'm
- rather glad I have one. Are we going across the Lake of
- Shining Waters today?"
-
- "We're not going over Barry's pond, if that's what you
- mean by your Lake of Shining Waters. We're going by the
- shore road."
-
- "Shore road sounds nice," said Anne dreamily. "Is it as
- nice as it sounds? Just when you said `shore road' I saw it
- in a picture in my mind, as quick as that! And White
- Sands is a pretty name, too; but I don't like it as well as
- Avonlea. Avonlea is a lovely name. It just sounds like
- music. How far is it to White Sands?"
-
- "It's five miles; and as you're evidently bent on talking
- you might as well talk to some purpose by telling me what
- you know about yourself."
-
- "Oh, what I KNOW about myself isn't really worth telling,"
- said Anne eagerly. "If you'll only let me tell you
- what I IMAGINE about myself you'll think it ever so much
- more interesting."
-
- "No, I don't want any of your imaginings. Just you stick
- to bald facts. Begin at the beginning. Where were you
- born and how old are you?"
-
- "I was eleven last March," said Anne, resigning herself
- to bald facts with a little sigh. "And I was born in
- Bolingbroke, Nova Scotia. My father's name was Walter
- Shirley, and he was a teacher in the Bolingbroke High
- School. My mother's name was Bertha Shirley. Aren't
- Walter and Bertha lovely names? I'm so glad my parents
- had nice names. It would be a real disgrace to have a
- father named--well, say Jedediah, wouldn't it?"
-
- "I guess it doesn't matter what a person's name is as
- long as he behaves himself," said Marilla, feeling herself
- called upon to inculcate a good and useful moral.
-
- "Well, I don't know." Anne looked thoughtful. "I read
- in a book once that a rose by any other name would smell
- as sweet, but I've never been able to believe it. I don't
- believe a rose WOULD be as nice if it was called a thistle
- or a skunk cabbage. I suppose my father could have been a
- good man even if he had been called Jedediah; but I'm
- sure it would have been a cross. Well, my mother was a
- teacher in the High school, too, but when she married
- father she gave up teaching, of course. A husband was
- enough responsibility. Mrs. Thomas said that they were a
- pair of babies and as poor as church mice. They went to
- live in a weeny-teeny little yellow house in Bolingbroke.
- I've never seen that house, but I've imagined it thousands
- of times. I think it must have had honeysuckle over the
- parlor window and lilacs in the front yard and lilies of the
- valley just inside the gate. Yes, and muslin curtains in
- all the windows. Muslin curtains give a house such an air.
- I was born in that house. Mrs. Thomas said I was the
- homeliest baby she ever saw, I was so scrawny and tiny
- and nothing but eyes, but that mother thought I was
- perfectly beautiful. I should think a mother would be a
- better judge than a poor woman who came in to scrub,
- wouldn't you? I'm glad she was satisfied with me anyhow,
- I would feel so sad if I thought I was a disappointment to
- her--because she didn't live very long after that, you see.
- She died of fever when I was just three months old. I do
- wish she'd lived long enough for me to remember calling
- her mother. I think it would be so sweet to say `mother,'
- don't you? And father died four days afterwards from
- fever too. That left me an orphan and folks were at their
- wits' end, so Mrs. Thomas said, what to do with me. You
- see, nobody wanted me even then. It seems to be my fate.
- Father and mother had both come from places far away
- and it was well known they hadn't any relatives living.
- Finally Mrs. Thomas said she'd take me, though she was
- poor and had a drunken husband. She brought me up by
- hand. Do you know if there is anything in being brought
- up by hand that ought to make people who are brought up
- that way better than other people? Because whenever I
- was naughty Mrs. Thomas would ask me how I could be
- such a bad girl when she had brought me up by hand--
- reproachful-like.
-
- "Mr. and Mrs. Thomas moved away from Bolingbroke
- to Marysville, and I lived with them until I was eight
- years old. I helped look after the Thomas children--there
- were four of them younger than me--and I can tell you
- they took a lot of looking after. Then Mr. Thomas was
- killed falling under a train and his mother offered to take
- Mrs. Thomas and the children, but she didn't want me.
- Mrs. Thomas was at HER wits' end, so she said, what to do
- with me. Then Mrs. Hammond from up the river came
- down and said she'd take me, seeing I was handy with
- children, and I went up the river to live with her in a
- little clearing among the stumps. It was a very lonesome
- place. I'm sure I could never have lived there if I hadn't
- had an imagination. Mr. Hammond worked a little sawmill
- up there, and Mrs. Hammond had eight children. She had
- twins three times. I like babies in moderation, but twins
- three times in succession is TOO MUCH. I told Mrs.
- Hammond so firmly, when the last pair came. I used to get
- so dreadfully tired carrying them about.
-
- "I lived up river with Mrs. Hammond over two years,
- and then Mr. Hammond died and Mrs. Hammond broke up
- housekeeping. She divided her children among her relatives
- and went to the States. I had to go to the asylum at
- Hopeton, because nobody would take me. They didn't
- want me at the asylum, either; they said they were over-
- crowded as it was. But they had to take me and I was
- there four months until Mrs. Spencer came."
-
- Anne finished up with another sigh, of relief this time.
- Evidently she did not like talking about her experiences in
- a world that had not wanted her.
-
- "Did you ever go to school?" demanded Marilla, turning
- the sorrel mare down the shore road.
-
- "Not a great deal. I went a little the last year I stayed
- with Mrs. Thomas. When I went up river we were so far
- from a school that I couldn't walk it in winter and there
- was a vacation in summer, so I could only go in the spring
- and fall. But of course I went while I was at the asylum.
- I can read pretty well and I know ever so many pieces of
- poetry off by heart--`The Battle of Hohenlinden' and
- `Edinburgh after Flodden,' and `Bingen of the Rhine,' and
- lost of the `Lady of the Lake' and most of `The Seasons' by
- James Thompson. Don't you just love poetry that gives
- you a crinkly feeling up and down your back? There is a
- piece in the Fifth Reader--`The Downfall of Poland'--that
- is just full of thrills. Of course, I wasn't in the Fifth
- Reader--I was only in the Fourth--but the big girls used
- to lend me theirs to read."
-
- "Were those women--Mrs. Thomas and Mrs. Hammond--good to
- you?" asked Marilla, looking at Anne out of the corner
- of her eye.
-
- "O-o-o-h," faltered Anne. Her sensitive little face
- suddenly flushed scarlet and embarrassment sat on her brow.
- "Oh, they MEANT to be--I know they meant to be just as
- good and kind as possible. And when people mean to be
- good to you, you don't mind very much when they're not
- quite--always. They had a good deal to worry them, you
- know. It's very trying to have a drunken husband, you see;
- and it must be very trying to have twins three times in
- succession, don't you think? But I feel sure they meant
- to be good to me."
-
- Marilla asked no more questions. Anne gave herself up
- to a silent rapture over the shore road and Marilla guided
- the sorrel abstractedly while she pondered deeply. Pity
- was suddenly stirring in her heart for the child. What a
- starved, unloved life she had had--a life of drudgery and
- poverty and neglect; for Marilla was shrewd enough to
- read between the lines of Anne's history and divine the
- truth. No wonder she had been so delighted at the prospect
- of a real home. It was a pity she had to be sent back.
- What if she, Marilla, should indulge Matthew's unaccountable
- whim and let her stay? He was set on it; and the child
- seemed a nice, teachable little thing.
-
- "She's got too much to say," thought Marilla, "but she
- might be trained out of that. And there's nothing rude or
- slangy in what she does say. She's ladylike. It's likely
- her people were nice folks."
-
- The shore road was "woodsy and wild and lonesome."
- On the right hand, scrub firs, their spirits quite unbroken
- by long years of tussle with the gulf winds, grew thickly.
- On the left were the steep red sandstone cliffs, so near the
- track in places that a mare of less steadiness than the
- sorrel might have tried the nerves of the people behind
- her. Down at the base of the cliffs were heaps of surf-worn
- rocks or little sandy coves inlaid with pebbles as with
- ocean jewels; beyond lay the sea, shimmering and blue,
- and over it soared the gulls, their pinions flashing silvery
- in the sunlight.
-
- "Isn't the sea wonderful?" said Anne, rousing from a
- long, wide-eyed silence. "Once, when I lived in Marysville,
- Mr. Thomas hired an express wagon and took us all to
- spend the day at the shore ten miles away. I enjoyed
- every moment of that day, even if I had to look after the
- children all the time. I lived it over in happy dreams for
- years. But this shore is nicer than the Marysville shore.
- Aren't those gulls splendid? Would you like to be a gull?
- I think I would--that is, if I couldn't be a human girl.
- Don't you think it would be nice to wake up at sunrise and
- swoop down over the water and away out over that lovely
- blue all day; and then at night to fly back to one's nest?
- Oh, I can just imagine myself doing it. What big house is
- that just ahead, please?"
-
- "That's the White Sands Hotel. Mr. Kirke runs it, but
- the season hasn't begun yet. There are heaps of Americans
- come there for the summer. They think this shore is just
- about right."
-
- "I was afraid it might be Mrs. Spencer's place," said
- Anne mournfully. "I don't want to get there. Somehow, it
- will seem like the end of everything."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
- Marilla Makes Up Her Mind
-
-
- Get there they did, however, in due season. Mrs. Spencer
- lived in a big yellow house at White Sands Cove, and she
- came to the door with surprise and welcome mingled on
- her benevolent face.
-
- "Dear, dear," she exclaimed, "you're the last folks I was
- looking for today, but I'm real glad to see you. You'll put
- your horse in? And how are you, Anne?"
-
- "I'm as well as can be expected, thank you," said Anne
- smilelessly. A blight seemed to have descended on her.
-
- "I suppose we'll stay a little while to rest the mare,"
- said Marilla, "but I promised Matthew I'd be home early.
- The fact is, Mrs. Spencer, there's been a queer mistake
- somewhere, and I've come over to see where it is. We
- send word, Matthew and I, for you to bring us a boy from
- the asylum. We told your brother Robert to tell you we
- wanted a boy ten or eleven years old."
-
- "Marilla Cuthbert, you don't say so!" said Mrs. Spencer
- in distress. "Why, Robert sent word down by his
- daughter Nancy and she said you wanted a girl--didn't
- she Flora Jane?" appealing to her daughter who had come
- out to the steps.
-
- "She certainly did, Miss Cuthbert," corroborated Flora
- Jane earnestly.
-
- I'm dreadful sorry," said Mrs. Spencer. "It's too bad;
- but it certainly wasn't my fault, you see, Miss Cuthbert.
- I did the best I could and I thought I was following your
- instructions. Nancy is a terrible flighty thing. I've
- often had to scold her well for her heedlessness."
-
- "It was our own fault," said Marilla resignedly. "We
- should have come to you ourselves and not left an important
- message to be passed along by word of mouth in that
- fashion. Anyhow, the mistake has been made and the only
- thing to do is to set it right. Can we send the child
- back to the asylum? I suppose they'll take her back,
- won't they?"
-
- "I suppose so," said Mrs. Spencer thoughtfully, "but I
- don't think it will be necessary to send her back. Mrs.
- Peter Blewett was up here yesterday, and she was saying
- to me how much she wished she'd sent by me for a little
- girl to help her. Mrs. Peter has a large family, you know,
- and she finds it hard to get help. Anne will be the very
- girl for you. I call it positively providential."
-
- Marilla did not look as if she thought Providence had
- much to do with the matter. Here was an unexpectedly
- good chance to get this unwelcome orphan off her hands,
- and she did not even feel grateful for it.
-
- She knew Mrs. Peter Blewett only by sight as a small,
- shrewish-faced woman without an ounce of superfluous
- flesh on her bones. But she had heard of her. "A terrible
- worker and driver," Mrs. Peter was said to be; and discharged
- servant girls told fearsome tales of her temper and stinginess,
- and her family of pert, quarrelsome children. Marilla felt a
- qualm of conscience at the thought of handing Anne over to her
- tender mercies.
-
- "Well, I'll go in and we'll talk the matter over," she said.
-
- "And if there isn't Mrs. Peter coming up the lane this
- blessed minute!" exclaimed Mrs. Spencer, bustling her
- guests through the hall into the parlor, where a deadly
- chill struck on them as if the air had been strained so long
- through dark green, closely drawn blinds that it had lost
- every particle of warmth it had ever possessed. "That is
- real lucky, for we can settle the matter right away. Take
- the armchair, Miss Cuthbert. Anne, you sit here on the
- ottoman and don't wiggle. Let me take your hats. Flora
- Jane, go out and put the kettle on. Good afternoon, Mrs.
- Blewett. We were just saying how fortunate it was you
- happened along. Let me introduce you two ladies. Mrs.
- Blewett, Miss Cuthbert. Please excuse me for just a moment.
- I forgot to tell Flora Jane to take the buns out of the oven."
-
- Mrs. Spencer whisked away, after pulling up the blinds.
- Anne sitting mutely on the ottoman, with her hands
- clasped tightly in her lap, stared at Mrs Blewett as one
- fascinated. Was she to be given into the keeping of this
- sharp-faced, sharp-eyed woman? She felt a lump coming up in
- her throat and her eyes smarted painfully. She was beginning
- to be afraid she couldn't keep the tears back when Mrs. Spencer
- returned, flushed and beaming, quite capable of taking any and
- every difficulty, physical, mental or spiritual, into
- consideration and settling it out of hand.
-
- "It seems there's been a mistake about this little girl,
- Mrs. Blewett," she said. "I was under the impression that
- Mr. and Miss Cuthbert wanted a little girl to adopt. I was
- certainly told so. But it seems it was a boy they wanted.
- So if you're still of the same mind you were yesterday, I
- think she'll be just the thing for you."
-
- Mrs. Blewett darted her eyes over Anne from head to foot.
-
- "How old are you and what's your name?" she demanded.
-
- "Anne Shirley," faltered the shrinking child, not daring
- to make any stipulations regarding the spelling thereof,
- "and I'm eleven years old."
-
- "Humph! You don't look as if there was much to you.
- But you're wiry. I don't know but the wiry ones are the
- best after all. Well, if I take you you'll have to be a
- good girl, you know--good and smart and respectful. I'll
- expect you to earn your keep, and no mistake about that.
- Yes, I suppose I might as well take her off your hands, Miss
- Cuthbert. The baby's awful fractious, and I'm clean worn out
- attending to him. If you like I can take her right home now."
-
- Marilla looked at Anne and softened at sight of the
- child's pale face with its look of mute misery--the misery
- of a helpless little creature who finds itself once more
- caught in the trap from which it had escaped. Marilla felt
- an uncomfortable conviction that, if she denied the appeal
- of that look, it would haunt her to her dying day. More-
- over, she did not fancy Mrs. Blewett. To hand a sensitive,
- "highstrung" child over to such a woman! No, she could
- not take the responsibility of doing that!
-
- "Well, I don't know," she said slowly. "I didn't say that
- Matthew and I had absolutely decided that we wouldn't
- keep her. In fact I may say that Matthew is disposed to
- keep her. I just came over to find out how the mistake had
- occurred. I think I'd better take her home again and talk
- it over with Matthew. I feel that I oughtn't to decide on
- anything without consulting him. If we make up our mind
- not to keep her we'll bring or send her over to you
- tomorrow night. If we don't you may know that she is
- going to stay with us. Will that suit you, Mrs. Blewett?"
-
- "I suppose it'll have to," said Mrs. Blewett ungraciously.
-
- During Marilla's speech a sunrise had been dawning on
- Anne's face. First the look of despair faded out; then came
- a faint flush of hope; here eyes grew deep and bright as
- morning stars. The child was quite transfigured; and, a
- moment later, when Mrs. Spencer and Mrs. Blewett went
- out in quest of a recipe the latter had come to borrow she
- sprang up and flew across the room to Marilla.
-
- "Oh, Miss Cuthbert, did you really say that perhaps you would
- let me stay at Green Gables?" she said, in a breathless whisper,
- as if speaking aloud might shatter the glorious possibility.
- "Did you really say it? Or did I only imagine that you did?"
-
- "I think you'd better learn to control that imagination of
- yours, Anne, if you can't distinguish between what is real
- and what isn't," said Marilla crossly. "Yes, you did hear
- me say just that and no more. It isn't decided yet and
- perhaps we will conclude to let Mrs. Blewett take you after
- all. She certainly needs you much more than I do."
-
- "I'd rather go back to the asylum than go to live with her," said
- Anne passionately. "She looks exactly like a--like a gimlet."
-
- Marilla smothered a smile under the conviction that Anne
- must be reproved for such a speech.
-
- "A little girl like you should be ashamed of talking so
- about a lady and a stranger," she said severely. "Go back
- and sit down quietly and hold your tongue and behave as a
- good girl should."
-
- "I'll try to do and be anything you want me, if you'll
- only keep me," said Anne, returning meekly to her ottoman.
-
- When they arrived back at Green Gables that evening
- Matthew met them in the lane. Marilla from afar had noted
- him prowling along it and guessed his motive. She was
- prepared for the relief she read in his face when he saw
- that she had at least brought back Anne back with her. But
- she said nothing, to him, relative to the affair, until they
- were both out in the yard behind the barn milking the
- cows. Then she briefly told him Anne's history and the
- result of the interview with Mrs. Spencer.
-
- "I wouldn't give a dog I liked to that Blewett woman,"
- said Matthew with unusual vim."
-
- "I don't fancy her style myself," admitted Marilla, "but
- it's that or keeping her ourselves, Matthew. And since
- you seem to want her, I suppose I'm willing--or have to
- be. I've been thinking over the idea until I've got kind of
- used to it. It seems a sort of duty. I've never brought up
- a child, especially a girl, and I dare say I'll make a
- terrible mess of it. But I'll do my best. So far as I'm
- concerned, Matthew, she may stay."
-
- Matthew's shy face was a glow of delight.
-
- "Well now, I reckoned you'd come to see it in that light,
- Marilla," he said. "She's such an interesting little thing."
-
- "It'd be more to the point if you could say she was a
- useful little thing," retorted Marilla, "but I'll make it
- my business to see she's trained to be that. And mind,
- Matthew, you're not to go interfering with my methods.
- Perhaps an old maid doesn't know much about bringing up
- a child, but I guess she knows more than an old bachelor.
- So you just leave me to manage her. When I fail it'll be
- time enough to put your oar in."
-
- "There, there, Marilla, you can have your own way," said
- Matthew reassuringly. "Only be as good and kind to her
- as you can without spoiling her. I kind of think she's
- one of the sort you can do anything with if you only get
- her to love you."
-
- Marilla sniffed, to express her contempt for Matthew's
- opinions concerning anything feminine, and walked off to
- the dairy with the pails.
-
- "I won't tell her tonight that she can stay," she reflected,
- as she strained the milk into the creamers. "She'd be so
- excited that she wouldn't sleep a wink. Marilla Cuthbert,
- you're fairly in for it. Did you ever suppose you'd see
- the day when you'd be adopting an orphan girl? It's
- surprising enough; but not so surprising as that Matthew
- should be at the bottom of it, him that always seemed
- to have such a mortal dread of little girls. Anyhow,
- we've decided on the experiment and goodness only knows
- what will come of it."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
- Anne Says Her Prayers
-
-
- When Marilla took Anne up to bed that night she said stiffly:
-
- "Now, Anne, I noticed last night that you threw your
- clothes all about the floor when you took them off. That
- is a very untidy habit, and I can't allow it at all. As
- soon as you take off any article of clothing fold it neatly
- and place it on the chair. I haven't any use at all for
- little girls who aren't neat."
-
- "I was so harrowed up in my mind last night that I didn't
- think about my clothes at all," said Anne. "I'll fold
- them nicely tonight. They always made us do that at the
- asylum. Half the time, though, I'd forget, I'd be in such a
- hurry to get into bed nice and quiet and imagine things."
-
- "You'll have to remember a little better if you stay here,"
- admonished Marilla. "There, that looks something like.
- Say your prayers now and get into bed."
-
- "I never say any prayers," announced Anne.
-
- Marilla looked horrified astonishment.
-
- "Why, Anne, what do you mean? Were you never taught to
- say your prayers? God always wants little girls to say
- their prayers. Don't you know who God is, Anne?"
-
- "`God is a spirit, infinite, eternal and unchangeable, in
- His being, wisdom, power, holiness, justice, goodness,
- and truth,'" responded Anne promptly and glibly.
-
- Marilla looked rather relieved.
-
- "So you do know something then, thank goodness! You're
- not quite a heathen. Where did you learn that?"
-
- "Oh, at the asylum Sunday-school. They made us learn
- the whole catechism. I liked it pretty well. There's
- something splendid about some of the words. `Infinite,
- eternal and unchangeable.' Isn't that grand? It has such a
- roll to it--just like a big organ playing. You couldn't
- quite call it poetry, I suppose, but it sounds a lot like
- it, doesn't it?"
-
- "We're not talking about poetry, Anne--we are talking
- about saying your prayers. Don't you know it's a terrible
- wicked thing not to say your prayers every night? I'm
- afraid you are a very bad little girl."
-
- "You'd find it easier to be bad than good if you had red
- hair," said Anne reproachfully. "People who haven't red
- hair don't know what trouble is. Mrs. Thomas told me that
- God made my hair red ON PURPOSE, and I've never cared about
- Him since. And anyhow I'd always be too tired at night
- to bother saying prayers. People who have to look after
- twins can't be expected to say their prayers. Now, do
- you honestly think they can?"
-
- Marilla decided that Anne's religious training must be
- begun at once. Plainly there was no time to be lost.
-
- "You must say your prayers while you are under my roof, Anne."
-
- "Why, of course, if you want me to," assented Anne cheerfully.
- "I'd do anything to oblige you. But you'll have to tell me what
- to say for this once. After I get into bed I'll imagine out a
- real nice prayer to say always. I believe that it will be quite
- interesting, now that I come to think of it."
-
- "You must kneel down," said Marilla in embarrassment.
-
- Anne knelt at Marilla's knee and looked up gravely.
-
- "Why must people kneel down to pray?" If I really wanted
- to pray I'll tell you what I'd do. I'd go out into a great
- big field all alone or into the deep, deep, woods, and I'd
- look up into the sky--up--up--up--into that lovely blue sky
- that looks as if there was no end to its blueness. And then
- I'd just FEEL a prayer. Well, I'm ready. What am I to say?"
-
- Marilla felt more embarrassed than ever. She had intended
- to teach Anne the childish classic, "Now I lay me down to
- sleep." But she had, as I have told you, the glimmerings
- of a sense of humor--which is simply another name for a
- sense of fitness of things; and it suddenly occurred to her
- that that simple little prayer, sacred to white-robed
- childhood lisping at motherly knees, was entirely unsuited
- to this freckled witch of a girl who knew and cared nothing
- bout God's love, since she had never had it translated to
- her through the medium of human love.
-
- "You're old enough to pray for yourself, Anne," she said
- finally. "Just thank God for your blessings and ask Him
- humbly for the things you want."
-
- "Well, I'll do my best," promised Anne, burying her face
- in Marilla's lap. "Gracious heavenly Father--that's the
- way the ministers say it in church, so I suppose it's all
- right in private prayer, isn't it?" she interjected, lifting
- her head for a moment.
-
- "Gracious heavenly Father, I thank Thee for the White
- Way of Delight and the Lake of Shining Waters and Bonny
- and the Snow Queen. I'm really extremely grateful for
- them. And that's all the blessings I can think of just
- now to thank Thee for. As for the things I want,
- they're so numerous that it would take a great deal of
- time to name them all so I will only mention the two
- most important. Please let me stay at Green Gables;
- and please let me be good-looking when I grow up.
- I remain,
- "Yours respectfully,
- Anne Shirley.
-
- "There, did I do all right?" she asked eagerly, getting up.
- "I could have made it much more flowery if I'd had a little
- more time to think it over."
-
- Poor Marilla was only preserved from complete collapse by
- remembering that it was not irreverence, but simply
- spiritual ignorance on the part of Anne that was responsible
- for this extraordinary petition. She tucked the child up in
- bed, mentally vowing that she should be taught a prayer the
- very next day, and was leaving the room with the light when
- Anne called her back.
-
- "I've just thought of it now. I should have said, `Amen' in
- place of `yours respectfully,' shouldn't I?--the way the
- ministers do. I'd forgotten it, but I felt a prayer should
- be finished off in some way, so I put in the other. Do
- you suppose it will make any difference?"
-
- "I--I don't suppose it will," said Marilla. "Go to sleep
- now like a good child. Good night."
-
- "I can only say good night tonight with a clear conscience,"
- said Anne, cuddling luxuriously down among her pillows.
-
- Marilla retreated to the kitchen, set the candle firmly
- on the table, and glared at Matthew.
-
- "Matthew Cuthbert, it's about time somebody adopted that
- child and taught her something. She's next door to a
- perfect heathen. Will you believe that she never said a
- prayer in her life till tonight? I'll send her to the manse
- tomorrow and borrow the Peep of the Day series, that's what
- I'll do. And she shall go to Sunday-school just as soon as
- I can get some suitable clothes made for her. I foresee
- that I shall have my hands full. Well, well, we can't get
- through this world without our share of trouble. I've had
- a pretty easy life of it so far, but my time has come at
- last and I suppose I'll just have to make the best of it."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
- Anne's Bringing-up Is Begun
-
-
- For reasons best known to herself, Marilla did not tell
- Anne that she was to stay at Green Gables until the next
- afternoon. During the forenoon she kept the child busy
- with various tasks and watched over her with a keen eye
- while she did them. By noon she had concluded that Anne
- was smart and obedient, willing to work and quick to learn;
- her most serious shortcoming seemed to be a tendency to fall
- into daydreams in the middle of a task and forget all about
- it until such time as she was sharply recalled to earth by a
- reprimand or a catastrophe.
-
- When Anne had finished washing the dinner dishes she
- suddenly confronted Marilla with the air and expression of
- one desperately determined to learn the worst. Her thin
- little body trembled from head to foot; her face flushed and
- her eyes dilated until they were almost black; she clasped
- her hands tightly and said in an imploring voice:
-
- "Oh, please, Miss Cuthbert, won't you tell me if you are going to
- send me away or not?" I've tried to be patient all the morning,
- but I really feel that I cannot bear not knowing any longer.
- It's a dreadful feeling. Please tell me."
-
- "You haven't scalded the dishcloth in clean hot water as I
- told you to do," said Marilla immovably. "Just go and do
- it before you ask any more questions, Anne."
-
- Anne went and attended to the dishcloth. Then she returned
- to Marilla and fastened imploring eyes of the latter's face.
- "Well," said Marilla, unable to find any excuse for deferring
- her explanation longer, "I suppose I might as well tell you.
- Matthew and I have decided to keep you--that is, if you will
- try to be a good little girl and show yourself grateful.
- Why, child, whatever is the matter?"
-
- "I'm crying," said Anne in a tone of bewilderment. "I can't
- think why. I'm glad as glad can be. Oh, GLAD doesn't seem
- the right word at all. I was glad about the White Way and
- the cherry blossoms--but this! Oh, it's something more than
- glad. I'm so happy. I'll try to be so good. It will be
- uphill work, I expect, for Mrs. Thomas often told me I was
- desperately wicked. However, I'll do my very best. But can
- you tell me why I'm crying?"
-
- "I suppose it's because you're all excited and worked up,"
- said Marilla disapprovingly. "Sit down on that chair and
- try to calm yourself. I'm afraid you both cry and laugh
- far too easily. Yes, you can stay here and we will try to
- do right by you. You must go to school; but it's only a
- fortnight till vacation so it isn't worth while for you to
- start before it opens again in September."
-
- "What am I to call you?" asked Anne. "Shall I always say
- Miss Cuthbert? Can I call you Aunt Marilla?"
-
- "No; you'll call me just plain Marilla. I'm not used to
- being called Miss Cuthbert and it would make me nervous."
-
- "It sounds awfully disrespectful to just say Marilla,"
- protested Anne.
-
- "I guess there'll be nothing disrespectful in it if you're
- careful to speak respectfully. Everybody, young and old,
- in Avonlea calls me Marilla except the minister. He says
- Miss Cuthbert--when he thinks of it."
-
- "I'd love to call you Aunt Marilla," said Anne wistfully.
- "I've never had an aunt or any relation at all--not even a
- grandmother. It would make me feel as if I really belonged
- to you. Can't I call you Aunt Marilla?"
-
- "No. I'm not your aunt and I don't believe in calling
- people names that don't belong to them."
-
- "But we could imagine you were my aunt."
-
- "I couldn't," said Marilla grimly.
-
- "Do you never imagine things different from what they
- really are?" asked Anne wide-eyed.
-
- "No."
-
- "Oh!" Anne drew a long breath. "Oh, Miss--Marilla,
- how much you miss!"
-
- "I don't believe in imagining things different from what
- they really are," retorted Marilla. "When the Lord puts us
- in certain circumstances He doesn't mean for us to imagine
- them away. And that reminds me. Go into the sitting
- room, Anne--be sure your feet are clean and don't let any
- flies in--and bring me out the illustrated card that's on
- the mantelpiece. The Lord's Prayer is on it and you'll
- devote your spare time this afternoon to learning it off by
- heart. There's to be no more of such praying as I heard
- last night."
-
- "I suppose I was very awkward," said Anne apologetically,
- "but then, you see, I'd never had any practice. You
- couldn't really expect a person to pray very well the first
- time she tried, could you? I thought out a splendid prayer
- after I went to bed, just as I promised you I would. It was
- nearly as long as a minister's and so poetical. But would
- you believe it? I couldn't remember one word when I woke
- up this morning. And I'm afraid I'll never be able to think
- out another one as good. Somehow, things never are so good
- when they're thought out a second time. Have you ever
- noticed that?"
-
- "Here is something for you to notice, Anne. When I tell
- you to do a thing I want you to obey me at once and not
- stand stock-still and discourse about it. Just you go and
- do as I bid you."
-
- Anne promptly departed for the sitting-room across the hall;
- she failed to return; after waiting ten minutes Marilla laid
- down her knitting and marched after her with a grim expression.
- She found Anne standing motionless before a picture hanging on
- the wall between the two windows, with her eyes astar with
- dreams. The white and green light strained through apple trees
- and clustering vines outside fell over the rapt little figure
- with a half-unearthly radiance.
-
- "Anne, whatever are you thinking of?" demanded Marilla sharply.
-
- Anne came back to earth with a start.
-
- "That," she said, pointing to the picture--a rather vivid
- chromo entitled, "Christ Blessing Little Children"--"and I
- was just imagining I was one of them--that I was the little
- girl in the blue dress, standing off by herself in the
- corner as if she didn't belong to anybody, like me. She
- looks lonely and sad, don't you think? I guess she hadn't
- any father or mother of her own. But she wanted to be
- blessed, too, so she just crept shyly up on the outside of
- the crowd, hoping nobody would notice her--except Him. I'm
- sure I know just how she felt. Her heart must have beat and
- her hands must have got cold, like mine did when I asked you
- if I could stay. She was afraid He mightn't notice her.
- But it's likely He did, don't you think? I've been trying
- to imagine it all out--her edging a little nearer all the
- time until she was quite close to Him; and then He would
- look at her and put His hand on her hair and oh, such a
- thrill of joy as would run over her! But I wish the artist
- hadn't painted Him so sorrowful looking. All His pictures
- are like that, if you've noticed. But I don't believe He
- could really have looked so sad or the children would have
- been afraid of Him."
-
- "Anne," said Marilla, wondering why she had not broken
- into this speech long before, "you shouldn't talk that
- way. It's irreverent--positively irreverent."
-
- Anne's eyes marveled.
-
- "Why, I felt just as reverent as could be. I'm sure I
- didn't mean to be irreverent."
-
- "Well I don't suppose you did--but it doesn't sound right
- to talk so familiarly about such things. And another
- thing, Anne, when I send you after something you're to
- bring it at once and not fall into mooning and imagining
- before pictures. Remember that. Take that card and come
- right to the kitchen. Now, sit down in the corner and
- learn that prayer off by heart."
-
- Anne set the card up against the jugful of apple blossoms
- she had brought in to decorate the dinnertable--Marilla
- had eyed that decoration askance, but had said nothing--
- propped her chin on her hands, and fell to studying it
- intently for several silent minutes.
-
- "I like this," she announced at length. "It's beautiful.
- I've heard it before--I heard the superintendent of the
- asylum Sunday school say it over once. But I didn't like it
- then. He had such a cracked voice and he prayed it so
- mournfully. I really felt sure he thought praying was a
- disagreeable duty. This isn't poetry, but it makes me feel
- just the same way poetry does. `Our Father who art in heaven
- hallowed be Thy name.' That is just like a line of music.
- Oh, I'm so glad you thought of making me learn this, Miss--
- Marilla."
-
- "Well, learn it and hold your tongue," said Marilla shortly.
-
- Anne tipped the vase of apple blossoms near enough to bestow
- a soft kiss on a pink-cupped but, and then studied
- diligently for some moments longer.
-
- "Marilla," she demanded presently, "do you think that I
- shall ever have a bosom friend in Avonlea?"
-
- "A--a what kind of friend?"
-
- "A bosom friend--an intimate friend, you know--a really
- kindred spirit to whom I can confide my inmost soul. I've
- dreamed of meeting her all my life. I never really supposed
- I would, but so many of my loveliest dreams have come true
- all at once that perhaps this one will, too. Do you think
- it's possible?"
-
- "Diana Barry lives over at Orchard Slope and she's about
- your age. She's a very nice little girl, and perhaps she
- will be a playmate for you when she comes home. She's
- visiting her aunt over at Carmody just now. You'll have
- to be careful how you behave yourself, though. Mrs. Barry
- is a very particular woman. She won't let Diana play with
- any little girl who isn't nice and good."
-
- Anne looked at Marilla through the apple blossoms, her
- eyes aglow with interest.
-
- "What is Diana like? Her hair isn't red, is it? Oh, I hope
- not. It's bad enough to have red hair myself, but I
- positively couldn't endure it in a bosom friend."
-
- "Diana is a very pretty little girl. She has black eyes
- and hair and rosy cheeks. And she is good and smart, which
- is better than being pretty."
-
- Marilla was as fond of morals as the Duchess in Wonderland,
- and was firmly convinced that one should be tacked on to
- every remark made to a child who was being brought up.
-
- But Anne waved the moral inconsequently aside and seized
- only on the delightful possibilities before it.
-
- "Oh, I'm so glad she's pretty. Next to being beautiful
- oneself--and that's impossible in my case--it would be
- best to have a beautiful bosom friend. When I lived with
- Mrs. Thomas she had a bookcase in her sitting room with
- glass doors. There weren't any books in it; Mrs. Thomas
- kept her best china and her preserves there--when she
- had any preserves to keep. One of the doors was broken.
- Mr. Thomas smashed it one night when he was slightly
- intoxicated. But the other was whole and I used to
- pretend that my reflection in it was another little girl who
- lived in it. I called her Katie Maurice, and we were very
- intimate. I used to talk to her by the hour, especially on
- Sunday, and tell her everything. Katie was the comfort
- and consolation of my life. We used to pretend that the
- bookcase was enchanted and that if I only knew the spell
- I could open the door and step right into the room where
- Katie Maurice lived, instead of into Mrs. Thomas' shelves
- of preserves and china. And then Katie Maurice would have
- taken me by the hand and led me out into a wonderful place,
- all flowers and sunshine and fairies, and we would have
- lived there happy for ever after. When I went to live with
- Mrs. Hammond it just broke my heart to leave Katie Maurice.
- She felt it dreadfully, too, I know she did, for she was
- crying when she kissed me good-bye through the bookcase
- door. There was no bookcase at Mrs. Hammond's. But just up
- the river a little way from the house there was a long
- green little valley, and the loveliest echo lived there.
- It echoed back every word you said, even if you didn't talk
- a bit loud. So I imagined that it was a little girl called
- Violetta and we were great friends and I loved her almost as
- well as I loved Katie Maurice--not quite, but almost, you
- know. The night before I went to the asylum I said
- good-bye to Violetta, and oh, her good-bye came back to me
- in such sad, sad tones. I had become so attached to her
- that I hadn't the heart to imagine a bosom friend at the
- asylum, even if there had been any scope for imagination there."
-
- "I think it's just as well there wasn't," said Marilla drily.
- "I don't approve of such goings-on. You seem to half believe
- your own imaginations. It will be well for you to have a real
- live friend to put such nonsense out of your head. But don't
- let Mrs. Barry hear you talking about your Katie Maurices and
- your Violettas or she'll think you tell stories."
-
- "Oh, I won't. I couldn't talk of them to everybody--their
- memories are too sacred for that. But I thought I'd like to
- have you know about them. Oh, look, here's a big bee just
- tumbled out of an apple blossom. Just think what a lovely
- place to live--in an apple blossom! Fancy going to sleep
- in it when the wind was rocking it. If I wasn't a human
- girl I think I'd like to be a bee and live among the flowers."
-
- "Yesterday you wanted to be a sea gull," sniffed Marilla.
- "I think you are very fickle minded. I told you to learn
- that prayer and not talk. But it seems impossible for you
- to stop talking if you've got anybody that will listen to
- you. So go up to your room and learn it."
-
- "Oh, I know it pretty nearly all now--all but just the
- last line."
-
- "Well, never mind, do as I tell you. Go to your room and
- finish learning it well, and stay there until I call you
- down to help me get tea."
-
- "Can I take the apple blossoms with me for company?"
- pleaded Anne.
-
- "No; you don't want your room cluttered up with flowers.
- You should have left them on the tree in the first place."
-
- "I did feel a little that way, too," said Anne. "I kind of
- felt I shouldn't shorten their lovely lives by picking
- them--I wouldn't want to be picked if I were an apple blossom.
- But the temptation was IRRESISTIBLE. What do you do when
- you meet with an irresistible temptation?"
-
- "Anne, did you hear me tell you to go to your room?"
-
- Anne sighed, retreated to the east gable, and sat down in a
- chair by the window.
-
- "There--I know this prayer. I learned that last sentence
- coming upstairs. Now I'm going to imagine things into this
- room so that they'll always stay imagined. The floor is
- covered with a white velvet carpet with pink roses all over
- it and there are pink silk curtains at the windows. The walls
- are hung with gold and silver brocade tapestry. The
- furniture is mahogany. I never saw any mahogany, but it
- does sound SO luxurious. This is a couch all heaped with
- gorgeous silken cushions, pink and blue and crimson and
- gold, and I am reclining gracefully on it. I can see my
- reflection in that splendid big mirror hanging on the wall.
- I am tall and regal, clad in a gown of trailing white lace,
- with a pearl cross on my breast and pearls in my hair. My
- hair is of midnight darkness and my skin is a clear ivory
- pallor. My name is the Lady Cordelia Fitzgerald. No, it
- isn't--I can't make THAT seem real."
-
- She danced up to the little looking-glass and peered into
- it. Her pointed freckled face and solemn gray eyes peered
- back at her.
-
- "You're only Anne of Green Gables," she said earnestly,
- "and I see you, just as you are looking now, whenever I
- try to imagine I'm the Lady Cordelia. But it's a million
- times nicer to be Anne of Green Gables than Anne of
- nowhere in particular, isn't it?"
-
- She bent forward, kissed her reflection affectionately,
- and betook herself to the open window
-
-
- "Dear Snow Queen, good afternoon. And good afternoon
- dear birches down in the hollow. And good afternoon,
- dear gray house up on the hill. I wonder if Diana is to
- be my bosom friend. I hope she will, and I shall love
- her very much. But I must never quite forget Katie Maurice
- and Violetta. They would feel so hurt if I did and I'd
- hate to hurt anybody's feelings, even a little bookcase
- girl's or a little echo girl's. I must be careful to
- remember them and send them a kiss every day."
-
- Anne blew a couple of airy kisses from her fingertips
- past the cherry blossoms and then, with her chin in her
- hands, drifted luxuriously out on a sea of daydreams.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
- Mrs. Rachel Lynde Is Properly Horrified
-
-
- Anne had been a fortnight at Green Gables before Mrs.
- Lynde arrived to inspect her. Mrs. Rachel, to do her
- justice, was not to blame for this. A severe and unseason
- -able attack of grippe had confined that good lady to her
- house ever since the occasion of her last visit to Green
- Gables. Mrs. Rachel was not often sick and had a well-
- defined contempt for people who were; but grippe, she
- asserted, was like no other illness on earth and could
- only be interpreted as one of the special visitations of
- Providence. As soon as her doctor allowed her to put her
- foot out-of-doors she hurried up to Green Gables, bursting
- with curiosity to see Matthew and Marilla's orphan,
- concerning whom all sorts of stories and suppositions had
- gone abroad in Avonlea.
-
- Anne had made good use of every waking moment of that fortnight.
- Already she was acquainted with every tree and shrub about the
- place. She had discovered that a lane opened out below the apple
- orchard and ran up through a belt of woodland; and she had
- explored it to its furthest end in all its delicious vagaries of
- brook and bridge, fir coppice and wild cherry arch, corners thick
- with fern, and branching byways of maple and mountain ash.
-
- She had made friends with the spring down in the hollow--
- that wonderful deep, clear icy-cold spring; it was set
- about with smooth red sandstones and rimmed in by great
- palm-like clumps of water fern; and beyond it was a log
- bridge over the brook.
-
- That bridge led Anne's dancing feet up over a wooded
- hill beyond, where perpetual twilight reigned under the
- straight, thick-growing firs and spruces; the only flowers
- there were myriads of delicate "June bells," those shyest
- and sweetest of woodland blooms, and a few pale, aerial
- starflowers, like the spirits of last year's blossoms.
- Gossamers glimmered like threads of silver among the trees
- and the fir boughs and tassels seemed to utter friendly speech.
-
- All these raptured voyages of exploration were made in the
- odd half hours which she was allowed for play, and Anne
- talked Matthew and Marilla halfdeaf over her discoveries.
- Not that Matthew complained, to be sure; he listened to
- it all with a wordless smile of enjoyment on his face;
- Marilla permitted the "chatter" until she found herself
- becoming too interested in it, whereupon she always promptly
- quenched Anne by a curt command to hold her tongue.
-
- Anne was out in the orchard when Mrs. Rachel came,
- wandering at her own sweet will through the lush, tremu-
- lous grasses splashed with ruddy evening sunshine; so that
- good lady had an excellent chance to talk her illness fully
- over, describing every ache and pulse beat with such
- evident enjoyment that Marilla thought even grippe must
- bring its compensations. When details were exhausted
- Mrs. Rachel introduced the real reason of her call.
-
- "I've been hearing some surprising things about you and Matthew."
-
- "I don't suppose you are any more surprised than I am myself,"
- said Marilla. "I'm getting over my surprise now."
-
- "It was too bad there was such a mistake," said Mrs.
- Rachel sympathetically. "Couldn't you have sent her back?"
-
- "I suppose we could, but we decided not to. Matthew
- took a fancy to her. And I must say I like her myself--
- although I admit she has her faults. The house seems a
- different place already. She's a real bright little thing."
-
- Marilla said more than she had intended to say when she began,
- for she read disapproval in Mrs. Rachel's expression.
-
- "It's a great responsibility you've taken on yourself,"
- said that lady gloomily, "especially when you've never had
- any experience with children. You don't know much about
- her or her real disposition, I suppose, and there's no
- guessing how a child like that will turn out. But I don't
- want to discourage you I'm sure, Marilla."
-
- "I'm not feeling discouraged," was Marilla's dry response.
- "when I make up my mind to do a thing it stays made up.
- I suppose you'd like to see Anne. I'll call her in."
-
- Anne came running in presently, her face sparkling with
- the delight of her orchard rovings; but, abashed at finding
- the delight herself in the unexpected presence of a stranger,
- she halted confusedly inside the door. She certainly was an
- odd-looking little creature in the short tight wincey dress
- she had worn from the asylum, below which her thin legs
- seemed ungracefully long. Her freckles were more numerous
- and obtrusive than ever; the wind had ruffled her hatless
- hair into over-brilliant disorder; it had never looked
- redder than at that moment.
-
- "Well, they didn't pick you for your looks, that's sure
- and certain," was Mrs. Rachel Lynde's emphatic comment.
- Mrs. Rachel was one of those delightful and popular
- people who pride themselves on speaking their mind without
- fear or favor. "She's terrible skinny and homely, Marilla.
- Come here, child, and let me have a look at you. Lawful
- heart, did any one ever see such freckles? And hair as red
- as carrots! Come here, child, I say."
-
- Anne "came there," but not exactly as Mrs. Rachel
- expected. With one bound she crossed the kitchen floor
- and stood before Mrs. Rachel, her face scarlet with anger,
- her lips quivering, and her whole slender form trembling
- from head to foot.
-
- "I hate you," she cried in a choked voice, stamping her
- foot on the floor. "I hate you--I hate you--I hate you--"
- a louder stamp with each assertion of hatred. "How dare
- you call me skinny and ugly? How dare you say I'm freckled
- and redheaded? You are a rude, impolite, unfeeling woman!"
-
- "Anne!" exclaimed Marilla in consternation.
-
- But Anne continued to face Mrs. Rachel undauntedly,
- head up, eyes blazing, hands clenched, passionate
- indignation exhaling from her like an atmosphere.
-
- "How dare you say such things about me?" she repeated
- vehemently. "How would you like to have such things said
- about you? How would you like to be told that you are fat
- and clumsy and probably hadn't a spark of imagination in
- you? I don't care if I do hurt your feelings by saying so!
- I hope I hurt them. You have hurt mine worse than they
- were ever hurt before even by Mrs. Thomas' intoxicated
- husband. And I'll NEVER forgive you for it, never, never!"
-
- Stamp! Stamp!
-
- "Did anybody ever see such a temper!" exclaimed the horrified
- Mrs. Rachel.
-
- "Anne go to your room and stay there until I come up,"
- said Marilla, recovering her powers of speech with difficulty.
-
- Anne, bursting into tears, rushed to the hall door,
- slammed it until the tins on the porch wall outside rattled
- in sympathy, and fled through the hall and up the stairs
- like a whirlwind. A subdued slam above told that the door
- of the east gable had been shut with equal vehemence.
-
- "Well, I don't envy you your job bringing THAT up,
- Marilla," said Mrs. Rachel with unspeakable solemnity.
-
- Marilla opened her lips to say she knew not what of apology
- or deprecation. What she did say was a surprise to herself
- then and ever afterwards.
-
- "You shouldn't have twitted her about her looks, Rachel."
-
- "Marilla Cuthbert, you don't mean to say that you are
- upholding her in such a terrible display of temper as we've
- just seen?" demanded Mrs. Rachel indignantly.
-
- "No," said Marilla slowly, "I'm not trying to excuse her. She's
- been very naughty and I'll have to give her a talking to about
- it. But we must make allowances for her. She's never been
- taught what is right. And you WERE too hard on her, Rachel."
-
- Marilla could not help tacking on that last sentence,
- although she was again surprised at herself for doing it.
- Mrs. Rachel got up with an air of offended dignity.
-
- "Well, I see that I'll have to be very careful what I say
- after this, Marilla, since the fine feelings of orphans,
- brought from goodness knows where, have to be considered
- before anything else. Oh, no, I'm not vexed--don't worry
- yourself. I'm too sorry for you to leave any room for anger
- in my mind. You'll have your own troubles with that child.
- But if you'll take my advice--which I suppose you won't
- do, although I've brought up ten children and buried
- two--you'll do that `talking to' you mention with a fair-
- sized birch switch. I should think THAT would be the most
- effective language for that kind of a child. Her temper
- matches her hair I guess. Well, good evening, Marilla.
- I hope you'll come down to see me often as usual. But you
- can't expect me to visit here again in a hurry, if I'm
- liable to be flown at and insulted in such a fashion.
- It's something new in MY experience."
-
- Whereat Mrs. Rachel swept out and away--if a fat woman who
- always waddled COULD be said to sweep away--and Marilla with
- a very solemn face betook herself to the east gable.
-
- On the way upstairs she pondered uneasily as to what
- she ought to do. She felt no little dismay over the
- scene that had just been enacted. How unfortunate that
- Anne should have displayed such temper before Mrs. Rachel
- Lynde, of all people! Then Marilla suddenly became aware
- of an uncomfortable and rebuking consciousness that she
- felt more humiliation over this than sorrow over the
- discovery of such a serious defect in Anne's disposition.
- And how was she to punish her? The amiable suggestion of
- the birch switch--to the efficiency of which all of Mrs.
- Rachel's own children could have borne smarting testimony--
- did not appeal to Marilla. She did not believe she could
- whip a child. No, some other method of punishment must
- be found to bring Anne to a proper realization of the
- enormity of her offense.
-
- Marilla found Anne face downward on her bed, crying
- bitterly, quite oblivious of muddy boots on a clean
- counterpane.
-
- "Anne," she said not ungently.
-
- No answer.
-
- "Anne," with greater severity, "get off that bed this
- minute and listen to what I have to say to you."
-
- Anne squirmed off the bed and sat rigidly on a chair
- beside it, her face swollen and tear-stained and her eyes
- fixed stubbornly on the floor.
-
- "This is a nice way for you to behave. Anne! Aren't you
- ashamed of yourself?"
-
- "She hadn't any right to call me ugly and redheaded,"
- retorted Anne, evasive and defiant.
-
- "You hadn't any right to fly into such a fury and talk the
- way you did to her, Anne. I was ashamed of you--
- thoroughly ashamed of you. I wanted you to behave nicely
- to Mrs. Lynde, and instead of that you have disgraced me.
- I'm sure I don't know why you should lose your temper
- like that just because Mrs. Lynde said you were redhaired
- and homely. You say it yourself often enough."
-
- "Oh, but there's such a difference between saying a
- thing yourself and hearing other people say it," wailed
- Anne. "You may know a thing is so, but you can't help
- hoping other people don't quite think it is. I suppose you
- think I have an awful temper, but I couldn't help it.
- When she said those things something just rose right up in
- me and choked me. I HAD to fly out at her."
-
- "Well, you made a fine exhibition of yourself I must say.
- Mrs. Lynde will have a nice story to tell about you
- everywhere--and she'll tell it, too. It was a dreadful thing
- for you to lose your temper like that, Anne."
-
- "Just imagine how you would feel if somebody told you to your
- face that you were skinny and ugly," pleaded Anne tearfully.
-
- An old remembrance suddenly rose up before Marilla.
- She had been a very small child when she had heard one
- aunt say of her to another, "What a pity she is such a dark,
- homely little thing." Marilla was every day of fifty before
- the sting had gone out of that memory.
-
- "I don't say that I think Mrs. Lynde was exactly right in
- saying what she did to you, Anne," she admitted in a softer
- tone. "Rachel is too outspoken. But that is no excuse for
- such behavior on your part. She was a stranger and an
- elderly person and my visitor--all three very good reasons
- why you should have been respectful to her. You were
- rude and saucy and"--Marilla had a saving inspiration of
- punishment--"you must go to her and tell her you are
- very sorry for your bad temper and ask her to forgive you."
-
- "I can never do that," said Anne determinedly and darkly.
- "You can punish me in any way you like, Marilla. You can
- shut me up in a dark, damp dungeon inhabited by snakes
- and toads and feed me only on bread and water and I shall
- not complain. But I cannot ask Mrs. Lynde to forgive me."
-
- "We're not in the habit of shutting people up in dark
- damp dungeons," said Marilla drily, "especially as they're
- rather scarce in Avonlea. But apologize to Mrs. Lynde
- you must and shall and you'll stay here in your room until
- you can tell me you're willing to do it."
-
- "I shall have to stay here forever then," said Anne
- mournfully, "because I can't tell Mrs. Lynde I'm sorry I
- said those things to her. How can I? I'm NOT sorry. I'm
- sorry I've vexed you; but I'm GLAD I told her just what I did.
- It was a great satisfaction. I can't say I'm sorry when I'm
- not, can I? I can't even IMAGINE I'm sorry."
-
- "Perhaps your imagination will be in better working
- order by the morning," said Marilla, rising to depart.
- "You'll have the night to think over your conduct in and
- come to a better frame of mind. You said you would try
- to be a very good girl if we kept you at Green Gables, but
- I must say it hasn't seemed very much like it this evening."
-
- Leaving this Parthian shaft to rankle in Anne's stormy
- bosom, Marilla descended to the kitchen, grievously
- troubled in mind and vexed in soul. She was as angry with
- herself as with Anne, because, whenever she recalled Mrs.
- Rachel's dumbfounded countenance her lips twitched with
- amusement and she felt a most reprehensible desire to laugh.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
-
- Anne's Apology
-
-
- Marilla said nothing to Matthew about the affair that
- evening; but when Anne proved still refractory the next
- morning an explanation had to be made to account for her
- absence from the breakfast table. Marilla told Matthew
- the whole story, taking pains to impress him with a due
- sense of the enormity of Anne's behavior.
-
- "It's a good thing Rachel Lynde got a calling down; she's a
- meddlesome old gossip," was Matthew's consolatory rejoinder.
-
- "Matthew Cuthbert, I'm astonished at you. You know that
- Anne's behavior was dreadful, and yet you take her part!
- I suppose you'll be saying next thing that she oughtn't
- to be punished at all!"
-
- "Well now--no--not exactly," said Matthew uneasily. I
- reckon she ought to be punished a little. But don't be
- too hard on her, Marilla. Recollect she hasn't ever had
- anyone to teach her right. You're--you're going to give
- her something to eat, aren't you?"
-
- "When did you ever hear of me starving people into good
- behavior?" demanded Marilla indignantly. "She'll have
- her meals regular, and I'll carry them up to her myself.
- But she'll stay up there until she's willing to apologize
- to Mrs. Lynde, and that's final, Matthew."
-
- Breakfast, dinner, and supper were very silent meals--for
- Anne still remained obdurate. After each meal Marilla
- carried a well-filled tray to the east gable and brought it
- down later on not noticeably depleted. Matthew eyed its last
- descent with a troubled eye. Had Anne eaten anything at all?
-
- When Marilla went out that evening to bring the cows
- from the back pasture, Matthew, who had been hanging
- about the barns and watching, slipped into the house with
- the air of a burglar and crept upstairs. As a general thing
- Matthew gravitated between the kitchen and the little
- bedroom off the hall where he slept; once in a while he
- ventured uncomfortably into the parlor or sitting room when
- the minister came to tea. But he had never been upstairs
- in his own house since the spring he helped Marilla paper
- the spare bedroom, and that was four years ago.
-
- He tiptoed along the hall and stood for several minutes
- outside the door of the east gable before he summoned
- courage to tap on it with his fingers and then open the
- door to peep in.
-
- Anne was sitting on the yellow chair by the window
- gazing mournfully out into the garden. Very small and
- unhappy she looked, and Matthew's heart smote him.
- He softly closed the door and tiptoed over to her.
-
- "Anne," he whispered, as if afraid of being overheard,
- "how are you making it, Anne?"
-
- Anne smiled wanly.
-
- "Pretty well. I imagine a good deal, and that helps to
- pass the time. Of course, it's rather lonesome. But then,
- I may as well get used to that."
-
- Anne smiled again, bravely facing the long years of
- solitary imprisonment before her.
-
- Matthew recollected that he must say what he had come
- to say without loss of time, lest Marilla return prematurely.
- "Well now, Anne, don't you think you'd better do it and
- have it over with?" he whispered. "It'll have to be done
- sooner or later, you know, for Marilla's a dreadful deter-
- mined woman--dreadful determined, Anne. Do it right off,
- I say, and have it over."
-
- "Do you mean apologize to Mrs. Lynde?"
-
- "Yes--apologize--that's the very word," said Matthew eagerly.
- "Just smooth it over so to speak. That's what I was trying
- to get at."
-
- "I suppose I could do it to oblige you," said Anne
- thoughtfully. "It would be true enough to say I am sorry,
- because I AM sorry now. I wasn't a bit sorry last night.
- I was mad clear through, and I stayed mad all night. I know
- I did because I woke up three times and I was just furious
- every time. But this morning it was over. I wasn't in a
- temper anymore--and it left a dreadful sort of goneness,
- too. I felt so ashamed of myself. But I just couldn't think
- of going and telling Mrs. Lynde so. It would be so humili-
- ating. I made up my mind I'd stay shut up here forever
- rather than do that. But still--I'd do anything for you--if
- you really want me to--"
-
- "Well now, of course I do. It's terrible lonesome
- downstairs without you. Just go and smooth things over--
- that's a good girl."
-
- "Very well," said Anne resignedly. "I'll tell Marilla as
- soon as she comes in I've repented."
-
- "That's right--that's right, Anne. But don't tell Marilla I
- said anything about it. She might think I was putting my oar
- in and I promised not to do that."
-
- "Wild horses won't drag the secret from me," promised Anne
- solemnly. "How would wild horses drag a secret from a
- person anyhow?"
-
- But Matthew was gone, scared at his own success. He fled
- hastily to the remotest corner of the horse pasture lest
- Marilla should suspect what he had been up to. Marilla herself,
- upon her return to the house, was agreeably surprised to hear a
- plaintive voice calling, "Marilla" over the banisters.
-
- "Well?" she said, going into the hall.
-
- "I'm sorry I lost my temper and said rude things, and
- I'm willing to go and tell Mrs. Lynde so."
-
- "Very well." Marilla's crispness gave no sign of her
- relief. She had been wondering what under the canopy she
- should do if Anne did not give in. "I'll take you down
- after milking."
-
- Accordingly, after milking, behold Marilla and Anne
- walking down the lane, the former erect and triumphant,
- the latter drooping and dejected. But halfway down Anne's
- dejection vanished as if by enchantment. She lifted her
- head and stepped lightly along, her eyes fixed on the
- sunset sky and an air of subdued exhilaration about her.
- Marilla beheld the change disapprovingly. This was no
- meek penitent such as it behooved her to take into the
- presence of the offended Mrs. Lynde.
-
- "What are you thinking of, Anne?" she asked sharply.
-
- "I'm imagining out what I must say to Mrs. Lynde,"
- answered Anne dreamily.
-
- This was satisfactory--or should have been so. But Marilla
- could not rid herself of the notion that something in her
- scheme of punishment was going askew. Anne had no business
- to look so rapt and radiant.
-
- Rapt and radiant Anne continued until they were in the
- very presence of Mrs. Lynde, who was sitting knitting by
- her kitchen window. Then the radiance vanished. Mournful
- penitence appeared on every feature. Before a word was
- spoken Anne suddenly went down on her knees before the
- astonished Mrs. Rachel and held out her hands beseechingly.
-
- "Oh, Mrs. Lynde, I am so extremely sorry," she said
- with a quiver in her voice. "I could never express all
- my sorrow, no, not if I used up a whole dictionary. You
- must just imagine it. I behaved terribly to you--and
- I've disgraced the dear friends, Matthew and Marilla, who
- have let me stay at Green Gables although I'm not a boy.
- I'm a dreadfully wicked and ungrateful girl, and I deserve
- to be punished and cast out by respectable people forever.
- It was very wicked of me to fly into a temper because you
- told me the truth. It WAS the truth; every word you said
- was true. My hair is red and I'm freckled and skinny and
- ugly. What I said to you was true, too, but I shouldn't
- have said it. Oh, Mrs. Lynde, please, please, forgive me.
- If you refuse it will be a lifelong sorrow on a poor little
- orphan girl would you, even if she had a dreadful temper?
- Oh, I am sure you wouldn't. Please say you forgive me,
- Mrs. Lynde."
-
- Anne clasped her hands together, bowed her head, and
- waited for the word of judgment.
-
- There was no mistaking her sincerity--it breathed in
- every tone of her voice. Both Marilla and Mrs. Lynde
- recognized its unmistakable ring. But the former under-
- stood in dismay that Anne was actually enjoying her valley
- of humiliation--was reveling in the thoroughness of her
- abasement. Where was the wholesome punishment upon
- which she, Marilla, had plumed herself? Anne had turned
- it into a species of positive pleasure.
-
- Good Mrs. Lynde, not being overburdened with perception,
- did not see this. She only perceived that Anne had
- made a very thorough apology and all resentment vanished
- from her kindly, if somewhat officious, heart.
-
- "There, there, get up, child," she said heartily. "Of course
- I forgive you. I guess I was a little too hard on you,
- anyway. But I'm such an outspoken person. You just mustn't
- mind me, that's what. It can't be denied your hair is
- terrible red; but I knew a girl once--went to school with
- her, in fact--whose hair was every mite as red as yours
- when she was young, but when she grew up it darkened
- to a real handsome auburn. I wouldn't be a mite surprised
- if yours did, too--not a mite."
-
- "Oh, Mrs. Lynde!" Anne drew a long breath as she rose
- to her feet. "You have given me a hope. I shall always feel
- that you are a benefactor. Oh, I could endure anything if I
- only thought my hair would be a handsome auburn when I
- grew up. It would be so much easier to be good if one's
- hair was a handsome auburn, don't you think? And now
- may I go out into your garden and sit on that bench under
- the apple-trees while you and Marilla are talking? There is
- so much more scope for imagination out there."
-
- "Laws, yes, run along, child. And you can pick a bouquet
- of them white June lilies over in the corner if you like."
-
- As the door closed behind Anne Mrs. Lynde got briskly
- up to light a lamp.
-
- "She's a real odd little thing. Take this chair, Marilla;
- it's easier than the one you've got; I just keep that for the
- hired boy to sit on. Yes, she certainly is an odd child,
- but there is something kind of taking about her after all.
- I don't feel so surprised at you and Matthew keeping her as
- I did--nor so sorry for you, either. She may turn out all
- right. Of course, she has a queer way of expressing herself--
- a little too--well, too kind of forcible, you know; but
- she'll likely get over that now that she's come to live among
- civilized folks. And then, her temper's pretty quick, I
- guess; but there's one comfort, a child that has a quick
- temper, just blaze up and cool down, ain't never likely to
- be sly or deceitful. Preserve me from a sly child, that's
- what. On the whole, Marilla, I kind of like her."
-
- When Marilla went home Anne came out of the fragrant twilight
- of the orchard with a sheaf of white narcissi in her hands.
-
- "I apologized pretty well, didn't I?" she said proudly as
- they went down the lane. "I thought since I had to do it
- I might as well do it thoroughly."
-
- "You did it thoroughly, all right enough," was Marilla's
- comment. Marilla was dismayed at finding herself inclined
- to laugh over the recollection. She had also an uneasy
- feeling that she ought to scold Anne for apologizing so well;
- but then, that was ridiculous! She compromised with her
- conscience by saying severely:
-
- "I hope you won't have occasion to make many more such
- apologies. I hope you'll try to control your temper now, Anne."
-
- "That wouldn't be so hard if people wouldn't twit me about
- my looks," said Anne with a sigh. "I don't get cross about
- other things; but I'm SO tired of being twitted about my hair
- and it just makes me boil right over. Do you suppose
- my hair will really be a handsome auburn when I grow up?"
-
- "You shouldn't think so much about your looks, Anne. I'm
- afraid you are a very vain little girl."
-
- "How can I be vain when I know I'm homely?" protested
- Anne. "I love pretty things; and I hate to look in
- the glass and see something that isn't pretty. It makes me
- feel so sorrowful--just as I feel when I look at any ugly
- thing. I pity it because it isn't beautiful."
-
- "Handsome is as handsome does," quoted Marilla.
- "I've had that said to me before, but I have my doubts
- about it," remarked skeptical Anne, sniffing at her narcissi.
- "Oh, aren't these flowers sweet! It was lovely of Mrs.
- Lynde to give them to me. I have no hard feelings against
- Mrs. Lynde now. It gives you a lovely, comfortable feeling
- to apologize and be forgiven, doesn't it? Aren't the stars
- bright tonight? If you could live in a star, which one would
- you pick? I'd like that lovely clear big one away over there
- above that dark hill."
-
- "Anne, do hold your tongue." said Marilla, thoroughly
- worn out trying to follow the gyrations of Anne's thoughts.
-
- Anne said no more until they turned into their own lane.
- A little gypsy wind came down it to meet them, laden
- with the spicy perfume of young dew-wet ferns. Far up
- in the shadows a cheerful light gleamed out through the
- trees from the kitchen at Green Gables. Anne suddenly
- came close to Marilla and slipped her hand into the older
- woman's hard palm.
-
- "It's lovely to be going home and know it's home," she said.
- "I love Green Gables already, and I never loved any place before.
- No place ever seemed like home. Oh, Marilla, I'm so happy.
- I could pray right now and not find it a bit hard."
-
- Something warm and pleasant welled up in Marilla's heart
- at touch of that thin little hand in her own--a throb
- of the maternity she had missed, perhaps. Its very
- unaccustomedness and sweetness disturbed her. She
- hastened to restore her sensations to their normal
- calm by inculcating a moral.
-
- "If you'll be a good girl you'll always be happy, Anne.
- And you should never find it hard to say your prayers."
-
- "Saying one's prayers isn't exactly the same thing as praying,"
- said Anne meditatively. "But I'm going to imagine that I'm
- the wind that is blowing up there in those tree tops. When I
- get tired of the trees I'll imagine I'm gently waving down here
- in the ferns--and then I'll fly over to Mrs. Lynde's garden and
- set the flowers dancing--and then I'll go with one great swoop
- over the clover field--and then I'll blow over the Lake of
- Shining Waters and ripple it all up into little sparkling waves.
- Oh, there's so much scope for imagination in a wind! So I'll not
- talk any more just now, Marilla."
-
- "Thanks be to goodness for that," breathed Marilla in
- devout relief.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
- Anne's Impressions of Sunday-School
-
-
- "Well, how do you like them?" said Marilla.
-
- Anne was standing in the gable room, looking solemnly
- at three new dresses spread out on the bed. One was of
- snuffy colored gingham which Marilla had been tempted to
- buy from a peddler the preceding summer because it looked
- so serviceable; one was of black-and-white checkered
- sateen which she had picked up at a bargain counter in the
- winter; and one was a stiff print of an ugly blue shade
- which she had purchased that week at a Carmody store.
-
- She had made them up herself, and they were all made
- alike--plain skirts fulled tightly to plain waists, with
- sleeves as plain as waist and skirt and tight as sleeves
- could be.
-
- "I'll imagine that I like them," said Anne soberly.
-
- "I don't want you to imagine it," said Marilla, offended.
- "Oh, I can see you don't like the dresses! What is the
- matter with them? Aren't they neat and clean and new?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Then why don't you like them?"
-
- "They're--they're not--pretty," said Anne reluctantly.
-
- "Pretty!" Marilla sniffed. "I didn't trouble my head about
- getting pretty dresses for you. I don't believe in pampering
- vanity, Anne, I'll tell you that right off. Those dresses
- are good, sensible, serviceable dresses, without any frills
- or furbelows about them, and they're all you'll get this
- summer. The brown gingham and the blue print will do
- you for school when you begin to go. The sateen is for
- church and Sunday school. I'll expect you to keep them
- neat and clean and not to tear them. I should think you'd
- be grateful to get most anything after those skimpy wincey
- things you've been wearing."
-
- "Oh, I AM grateful," protested Anne. "But I'd be ever
- so much gratefuller if--if you'd made just one of them
- with puffed sleeves. Puffed sleeves are so fashionable now.
- It would give me such a thrill, Marilla, just to wear a dress
- with puffed sleeves."
-
- "Well, you'll have to do without your thrill. I hadn't any
- material to waste on puffed sleeves. I think they are
- ridiculous-looking things anyhow. I prefer the plain,
- sensible ones."
-
- "But I'd rather look ridiculous when everybody else does than
- plain and sensible all by myself," persisted Anne mournfully.
-
- "Trust you for that! Well, hang those dresses carefully
- up in your closet, and then sit down and learn the Sunday
- school lesson. I got a quarterly from Mr. Bell for you and
- you'll go to Sunday school tomorrow," said Marilla, disap-
- pearing downstairs in high dudgeon.
-
- Anne clasped her hands and looked at the dresses.
-
- "I did hope there would be a white one with puffed
- sleeves," she whispered disconsolately. "I prayed for one,
- but I didn't much expect it on that account. I didn't
- suppose God would have time to bother about a little
- orphan girl's dress. I knew I'd just have to depend on
- Marilla for it. Well, fortunately I can imagine that one
- of them is of snow-white muslin with lovely lace frills and
- three-puffed sleeves."
-
- The next morning warnings of a sick headache prevented
- Marilla from going to Sunday-school with Anne.
-
- "You'll have to go down and call for Mrs. Lynde, Anne."
- she said. "She'll see that you get into the right class.
- Now, mind you behave yourself properly. Stay to preaching
- afterwards and ask Mrs. Lynde to show you our pew. Here's
- a cent for collection. Don't stare at people and don't fidget.
- I shall expect you to tell me the text when you come home."
-
- Anne started off irreproachable, arrayed in the stiff black-
- and-white sateen, which, while decent as regards length
- and certainly not open to the charge of skimpiness, contrived
- to emphasize every corner and angle of her thin figure.
- Her hat was a little, flat, glossy, new sailor, the
- extreme plainness of which had likewise much disappointed
- Anne, who had permitted herself secret visions of ribbon
- and flowers. The latter, however, were supplied before
- Anne reached the main road, for being confronted halfway
- down the lane with a golden frenzy of wind-stirred buttercups
- and a glory of wild roses, Anne promptly and liberally
- garlanded her hat with a heavy wreath of them. Whatever
- other people might have thought of the result it satisfied
- Anne, and she tripped gaily down the road, holding her ruddy
- head with its decoration of pink and yellow very proudly.
-
- When she had reached Mrs. Lynde's house she found that
- lady gone. Nothing daunted, Anne proceeded onward to the
- church alone. In the porch she found a crowd of little
- girls, all more or less gaily attired in whites and blues
- and pinks, and all staring with curious eyes at this stranger
- in their midst, with her extraordinary head adornment. Avonlea
- little girls had already heard queer stories about Anne.
- Mrs. Lynde said she had an awful temper; Jerry Buote, the
- hired boy at Green Gables, said she talked all the time
- to herself or to the trees and flowers like a crazy girl.
- They looked at her and whispered to each other behind their
- quarterlies. Nobody made any friendly advances, then or later on
- when the opening exercises were over and Anne found herself in
- Miss Rogerson's class.
-
- Miss Rogerson was a middle-aged lady who had taught a
- Sunday-school class for twenty years. Her method of teaching
- was to ask the printed questions from the quarterly and
- look sternly over its edge at the particular little girl
- she thought ought to answer the question. She looked very
- often at Anne, and Anne, thanks to Marilla's drilling,
- answered promptly; but it may be questioned if she understood
- very much about either question or answer.
-
- She did not think she liked Miss Rogerson, and she felt
- very miserable; every other little girl in the class had
- puffed sleeves. Anne felt that life was really not worth
- living without puffed sleeves.
-
- "Well, how did you like Sunday school?" Marilla wanted
- to know when Anne came home. Her wreath having faded,
- Anne had discarded it in the lane, so Marilla was spared
- the knowledge of that for a time.
-
- "I didn't like it a bit. It was horrid."
-
- "Anne Shirley!" said Marilla rebukingly.
-
- Anne sat down on the rocker with a long sigh, kissed one of
- Bonny's leaves, and waved her hand to a blossoming fuchsia.
-
- "They might have been lonesome while I was away," she
- explained. "And now about the Sunday school. I behaved
- well, just as you told me. Mrs. Lynde was gone, but I
- went right on myself. I went into the church, with a
- lot of other little girls, and I sat in the corner of a pew
- by the window while the opening exercises went on. Mr. Bell
- made an awfully long prayer. I would have been dreadfully
- tired before he got through if I hadn't been sitting by
- that window. But it looked right out on the Lake of
- Shining Waters, so I just gazed at that and imagined all
- sorts of splendid things."
-
- "You shouldn't have done anything of the sort. You should
- have listened to Mr. Bell."
-
- "But he wasn't talking to me," protested Anne. "He was
- talking to God and he didn't seem to be very much inter-
- ested in it, either. I think he thought God was too far off
- though. There was long row of white birches hanging over
- the lake and the sunshine fell down through them, 'way, 'way
- down, deep into the water. Oh, Marilla, it was like a
- beautiful dream! It gave me a thrill and I just said,
- `Thank you for it, God,' two or three times."
-
- "Not out loud, I hope," said Marilla anxiously.
-
- "Oh, no, just under my breath. Well, Mr. Bell did get through
- at last and they told me to go into the classroom with Miss
- Rogerson's class. There were nine other girls in it.
- They all had puffed sleeves. I tried to imagine mine
- were puffed, too, but I couldn't. Why couldn't I? It was
- as easy as could be to imagine they were puffed when I was
- alone in the east gable, but it was awfully hard there
- among the others who had really truly puffs."
-
- "You shouldn't have been thinking about your sleeves in
- Sunday school. You should have been attending to the lesson.
- I hope you knew it."
-
- "Oh, yes; and I answered a lot of questions. Miss Rogerson
- asked ever so many. I don't think it was fair for her
- to do all the asking. There were lots I wanted to ask her,
- but I didn't like to because I didn't think she was a kindred
- spirit. Then all the other little girls recited a paraphrase.
- She asked me if I knew any. I told her I didn't, but I could
- recite, `The Dog at His Master's Grave' if she liked.
- That's in the Third Royal Reader. It isn't a really truly
- religious piece of poetry, but it's so sad and melancholy
- that it might as well be. She said it wouldn't do and she
- told me to learn the nineteenth paraphrase for next Sunday.
- I read it over in church afterwards and it's splendid. There
- are two lines in particular that just thrill me.
-
- "`Quick as the slaughtered squadrons fell
- In Midian's evil day.'
-
- I don't know what `squadrons' means nor `Midian,' either,
- but it sounds SO tragical. I can hardly wait until next
- Sunday to recite it. I'll practice it all the week. After
- Sunday school I asked Miss Rogerson--because Mrs. Lynde was
- too far away--to show me your pew. I sat just as still as
- I could and the text was Revelations, third chapter, second
- and third verses. It was a very long text. If I was a
- minister I'd pick the short, snappy ones. The sermon was
- awfully long, too. I suppose the minister had to match it
- to the text. I didn't think he was a bit interesting. The
- trouble with him seems to be that he hasn't enough imagination.
- I didn't listen to him very much. I just let my thoughts
- run and I thought of the most surprising things."
-
- Marilla felt helplessly that all this should be sternly
- reproved, but she was hampered by the undeniable fact
- that some of the things Anne had said, especially about the
- minister's sermons and Mr. Bell's prayers, were what she
- herself had really thought deep down in her heart for
- years, but had never given expression to. It almost seemed
- to her that those secret, unuttered, critical thoughts
- had suddenly taken visible and accusing shape and form in
- the person of this outspoken morsel of neglected humanity.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
- A Solemn Vow and Promise
-
-
- It was not until the next Friday that Marilla heard the
- story of the flower-wreathed hat. She came home from
- Mrs. Lynde's and called Anne to account.
-
- "Anne, Mrs. Rachel says you went to church last Sunday
- with your hat rigged out ridiculous with roses and
- buttercups. What on earth put you up to such a caper?
- A pretty-looking object you must have been!"
-
- "Oh. I know pink and yellow aren't becoming to me," began Anne.
-
- "Becoming fiddlesticks! It was putting flowers on your
- hat at all, no matter what color they were, that was
- ridiculous. You are the most aggravating child!"
-
- "I don't see why it's any more ridiculous to wear flowers
- on your hat than on your dress," protested Anne. "Lots of
- little girls there had bouquets pinned on their dresses.
- What's the difference?"
-
- Marilla was not to be drawn from the safe concrete into
- dubious paths of the abstract.
-
- "Don't answer me back like that, Anne. It was very silly
- of you to do such a thing. Never let me catch you at such a
- trick again. Mrs. Rachel says she thought she would sink
- through the floor when she come in all rigged out like
- that. She couldn't get near enough to tell you to take
- them off till it was too late. She says people talked about
- it something dreadful. Of course they would think I had no
- better sense than to let you go decked out like that."
-
- "Oh, I'm so sorry," said Anne, tears welling into her eyes.
- "I never thought you'd mind. The roses and buttercups
- were so sweet and pretty I thought they'd look lovely
- on my hat. Lots of the little girls had artificial flowers
- on their hats. I'm afraid I'm going to be a dreadful trial
- to you. Maybe you'd better send me back to the asylum.
- That would be terrible; I don't think I could endure it;
- most likely I would go into consumption; I'm so thin as it is,
- you see. But that would be better than being a trial to you."
-
- "Nonsense," said Marilla, vexed at herself for having
- made the child cry. "I don't want to send you back to the
- asylum, I'm sure. All I want is that you should behave like
- other little girls and not make yourself ridiculous. Don't
- cry any more. I've got some news for you. Diana Barry came
- home this afternoon. I'm going up to see if I can borrow a
- skirt pattern from Mrs. Barry, and if you like you can
- come with me and get acquainted with Diana."
-
- Anne rose to her feet, with clasped hands, the tears still
- glistening on her cheeks; the dish towel she had been
- hemming slipped unheeded to the floor.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, I'm frightened--now that it has come I'm
- actually frightened. What if she shouldn't like me! It
- would be the most tragical disappointment of my life."
-
- "Now, don't get into a fluster. And I do wish you wouldn't
- use such long words. It sounds so funny in a little girl.
- I guess Diana'll like you well enough. It's her mother
- you've got to reckon with. If she doesn't like you it won't
- matter how much Diana does. If she has heard about your
- outburst to Mrs. Lynde and going to church with buttercups
- round your hat I don't know what she'll think of you. You
- must be polite and well behaved, and don't make any of your
- startling speeches. For pity's sake, if the child isn't
- actually trembling!"
-
- Anne WAS trembling. Her face was pale and tense.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, you'd be excited, too, if you were going to
- meet a little girl you hoped to be your bosom friend and
- whose mother mightn't like you," she said as she hastened
- to get her hat.
-
- They went over to Orchard Slope by the short cut across
- the brook and up the firry hill grove. Mrs. Barry came
- to the kitchen door in answer to Marilla's knock. She
- was a tall black-eyed, black-haired woman, with a very
- resolute mouth. She had the reputation of being very
- strict with her children.
-
- "How do you do, Marilla?" she said cordially. "Come in.
- And this is the little girl you have adopted, I suppose?"
-
- "Yes, this is Anne Shirley," said Marilla.
-
- "Spelled with an E," gasped Anne, who, tremulous and
- excited as she was, was determined there should be no
- misunderstanding on that important point.
-
- Mrs. Barry, not hearing or not comprehending, merely
- shook hands and said kindly:
-
- "How are you?"
-
- "I am well in body although considerable rumpled up in
- spirit, thank you ma'am," said Anne gravely. Then aside
- to Marilla in an audible whisper, "There wasn't anything
- startling in that, was there, Marilla?"
-
- Diana was sitting on the sofa, reading a book which she
- dropped when the callers entered. She was a very pretty
- little girl, with her mother's black eyes and hair, and
- rosy cheeks, and the merry expression which was her
- inheritance from her father.
-
- "This is my little girl Diana," said Mrs. Barry. "Diana,
- you might take Anne out into the garden and show her
- your flowers. It will be better for you than straining your
- eyes over that book. She reads entirely too much--" this
- to Marilla as the little girls went out--"and I can't prevent
- her, for her father aids and abets her. She's always poring
- over a book. I'm glad she has the prospect of a playmate--
- perhaps it will take her more out-of-doors."
-
- Outside in the garden, which was full of mellow sunset
- light streaming through the dark old firs to the west of it,
- stood Anne and Diana, gazing bashfully at each other over
- a clump of gorgeous tiger lilies.
-
- The Barry garden was a bowery wilderness of flowers
- which would have delighted Anne's heart at any time less
- fraught with destiny. It was encircled by huge old willows
- and tall firs, beneath which flourished flowers that loved
- the shade. Prim, right-angled paths neatly bordered with
- clamshells, intersected it like moist red ribbons and in the
- beds between old-fashioned flowers ran riot. There were
- rosy bleeding-hearts and great splendid crimson peonies;
- white, fragrant narcissi and thorny, sweet Scotch roses;
- pink and blue and white columbines and lilac-tinted Bouncing
- Bets; clumps of southernwood and ribbon grass and mint;
- purple Adam-and-Eve, daffodils, and masses of sweet clover
- white with its delicate, fragrant, feathery sprays;
- scarlet lightning that shot its fiery lances over prim white
- musk-flowers; a garden it was where sunshine lingered and
- bees hummed, and winds, beguiled into loitering, purred
- and rustled.
-
- "Oh, Diana," said Anne at last, clasping her hands and
- speaking almost in a whisper, "oh, do you think you can
- like me a little--enough to be my bosom friend?"
-
- Diana laughed. Diana always laughed before she spoke.
-
- "Why, I guess so," she said frankly. "I'm awfully glad you've
- come to live at Green Gables. It will be jolly to have somebody
- to play with. There isn't any other girl who lives near enough
- to play with, and I've no sisters big enough."
-
- "Will you swear to be my friend forever and ever?" demanded
- Anne eagerly.
-
- Diana looked shocked.
-
- "Why it's dreadfully wicked to swear," she said rebukingly.
-
- "Oh no, not my kind of swearing. There are two kinds, you know."
-
- "I never heard of but one kind," said Diana doubtfully.
-
- "There really is another. Oh, it isn't wicked at all. It
- just means vowing and promising solemnly."
-
- "Well, I don't mind doing that," agreed Diana, relieved.
- "How do you do it?"
-
- "We must join hands--so," said Anne gravely. "It ought
- to be over running water. We'll just imagine this path is
- running water. I'll repeat the oath first. I solemnly swear
- to be faithful to my bosom friend, Diana Barry, as long as the
- sun and moon shall endure. Now you say it and put my name in."
-
- Diana repeated the "oath" with a laugh fore and aft. Then
- she said:
-
- "You're a queer girl, Anne. I heard before that you were
- queer. But I believe I'm going to like you real well."
-
- When Marilla and Anne went home Diana went with them as
- for as the log bridge. The two little girls walked with
- their arms about each other. At the brook they parted with
- many promises to spend the next afternoon together.
-
- "Well, did you find Diana a kindred spirit?" asked Marilla
- as they went up through the garden of Green Gables.
-
- "Oh yes," sighed Anne, blissfully unconscious of any
- sarcasm on Marilla's part. "Oh Marilla, I'm the happiest
- girl on Prince Edward Island this very moment. I assure
- you I'll say my prayers with a right good-will tonight.
- Diana and I are going to build a playhouse in Mr. William
- Bell's birch grove tomorrow. Can I have those broken
- pieces of china that are out in the woodshed? Diana's
- birthday is in February and mine is in March. Don't you
- think that is a very strange coincidence? Diana is
- going to lend me a book to read. She says it's perfectly
- splendid and tremendously exciting. She's going to show me
- a place back in the woods where rice lilies grow. Don't
- you think Diana has got very soulful eyes? I wish I had
- soulful eyes. Diana is going to teach me to sing a song
- called `Nelly in the Hazel Dell.' She's going to give me
- a picture to put up in my room; it's a perfectly beautiful
- picture, she says--a lovely lady in a pale blue silk dress.
- A sewing-machine agent gave it to her. I wish I had something
- to give Diana. I'm an inch taller than Diana, but she is ever
- so much fatter; she says she'd like to be thin because it's so
- much more graceful, but I'm afraid she only said it to soothe my
- feelings. We're going to the shore some day to gather shells.
- We have agreed to call the spring down by the log bridge the
- Dryad's Bubble. Isn't that a perfectly elegant name? I read a
- story once about a spring called that. A dryad is sort of a
- grown-up fairy, I think."
-
- "Well, all I hope is you won't talk Diana to death," said
- Marilla. "But remember this in all your planning, Anne.
- You're not going to play all the time nor most of it. You'll
- have your work to do and it'll have to be done first."
-
- Anne's cup of happiness was full, and Matthew caused it
- to overflow. He had just got home from a trip to the store
- at Carmody, and he sheepishly produced a small parcel
- from his pocket and handed it to Anne, with a deprecatory
- look at Marilla.
-
- "I heard you say you liked chocolate sweeties, so I got
- you some," he said.
-
- "Humph," sniffed Marilla. "It'll ruin her teeth and stomach.
- There, there, child, don't look so dismal. You can eat
- those, since Matthew has gone and got them. He'd better
- have brought you peppermints. They're wholesomer. Don't
- sicken yourself eating all them at once now."
-
- "Oh, no, indeed, I won't," said Anne eagerly. "I'll just
- eat one tonight, Marilla. And I can give Diana half of
- them, can't I? The other half will taste twice as sweet to
- me if I give some to her. It's delightful to think I have
- something to give her."
-
- "I will say it for the child," said Marilla when Anne had
- gone to her gable, "she isn't stingy. I'm glad, for of all
- faults I detest stinginess in a child. Dear me, it's only
- three weeks since she came, and it seems as if she'd been
- here always. I can't imagine the place without her. Now,
- don't be looking I told-you-so, Matthew. That's bad enough
- in a woman, but it isn't to be endured in a man. I'm
- perfectly willing to own up that I'm glad I consented to keep
- the child and that I'm getting fond of her, but don't you
- rub it in, Matthew Cuthbert."
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
- The Delights of Anticipation
-
-
- "It's time Anne was in to do her sewing," said Marilla, glancing
- at the clock and then out into the yellow August afternoon where
- everything drowsed in the heat. "She stayed playing with Diana
- more than half an hour more'n I gave her leave to; and now she's
- perched out there on the woodpile talking to Matthew, nineteen to
- the dozen, when she knows perfectly well she ought to be at her
- work. And of course he's listening to her like a perfect ninny.
- I never saw such an infatuated man. The more she talks and the
- odder the things she says, the more he's delighted evidently.
- Anne Shirley, you come right in here this minute, do you hear me!"
-
- A series of staccato taps on the west window brought Anne flying
- in from the yard, eyes shining, cheeks faintly flushed with pink,
- unbraided hair streaming behind her in a torrent of brightness.
-
- "Oh, Marilla," she exclaimed breathlessly, "there's going to be a
- Sunday-school picnic next week--in Mr. Harmon Andrews's field,
- right near the lake of Shining Waters. And Mrs. Superintendent
- Bell and Mrs. Rachel Lynde are going to make ice cream--think of
- it, Marilla--ICE CREAM! And, oh, Marilla, can I go to it?"
-
- "Just look at the clock, if you please, Anne. What time did I
- tell you to come in?"
-
- "Two o'clock--but isn't it splendid about the picnic, Marilla?
- Please can I go? Oh, I've never been to a picnic--I've dreamed of
- picnics, but I've never--"
-
- "Yes, I told you to come at two o'clock. And it's a quarter to
- three. I'd like to know why you didn't obey me, Anne."
-
- "Why, I meant to, Marilla, as much as could be. But you have no
- idea how fascinating Idlewild is. And then, of course, I had to
- tell Matthew about the picnic. Matthew is such a sympathetic
- listener. Please can I go?"
-
- "You'll have to learn to resist the fascination of Idlewhatever-
- you-call-it. When I tell you to come in at a certain time I
- mean that time and not half an hour later. And you needn't
- stop to discourse with sympathetic listeners on your way, either.
- As for the picnic, of course you can go. You're a Sunday-school
- scholar, and it's not likely I'd refuse to let you go when all
- the other little girls are going."
-
- "But--but," faltered Anne, "Diana says that everybody must take a
- basket of things to eat. I can't cook, as you know, Marilla,
- and--and--I don't mind going to a picnic without puffed sleeves
- so much, but I'd feel terribly humiliated if I had to go without
- a basket. It's been preying on my mind ever since Diana told me."
-
- "Well, it needn't prey any longer. I'll bake you a basket."
-
- "Oh, you dear good Marilla. Oh, you are so kind to me. Oh, I'm
- so much obliged to you."
-
- Getting through with her "ohs" Anne cast herself into Marilla's
- arms and rapturously kissed her sallow cheek. It was the first
- time in her whole life that childish lips had voluntarily touched
- Marilla's face. Again that sudden sensation of startling
- sweetness thrilled her. She was secretly vastly pleased at
- Anne's impulsive caress, which was probably the reason why she
- said brusquely:
-
- "There, there, never mind your kissing nonsense. I'd sooner see
- you doing strictly as you're told. As for cooking, I mean to
- begin giving you lessons in that some of these days. But you're
- so featherbrained, Anne, I've been waiting to see if you'd sober
- down a little and learn to be steady before I begin. You've got
- to keep your wits about you in cooking and not stop in the middle
- of things to let your thoughts rove all over creation. Now, get
- out your patchwork and have your square done before teatime."
-
- "I do NOT like patchwork," said Anne dolefully, hunting out her
- workbasket and sitting down before a little heap of red and white
- diamonds with a sigh. "I think some kinds of sewing would be
- nice; but there's no scope for imagination in patchwork. It's
- just one little seam after another and you never seem to be
- getting anywhere. But of course I'd rather be Anne of Green
- Gables sewing patchwork than Anne of any other place with nothing
- to do but play. I wish time went as quick sewing patches as it
- does when I'm playing with Diana, though. Oh, we do have such
- elegant times, Marilla. I have to furnish most of the
- imagination, but I'm well able to do that. Diana is simply
- perfect in every other way. You know that little piece of land
- across the brook that runs up between our farm and Mr. Barry's.
- It belongs to Mr. William Bell, and right in the corner there is
- a little ring of white birch trees--the most romantic spot,
- Marilla. Diana and I have our playhouse there. We call it
- Idlewild. Isn't that a poetical name? I assure you it took me
- some time to think it out. I stayed awake nearly a whole night
- before I invented it. Then, just as I was dropping off to sleep,
- it came like an inspiration. Diana was ENRAPTURED when she heard
- it. We have got our house fixed up elegantly. You must come and
- see it, Marilla--won't you? We have great big stones, all
- covered with moss, for seats, and boards from tree to tree for
- shelves. And we have all our dishes on them. Of course, they're
- all broken but it's the easiest thing in the world to imagine
- that they are whole. There's a piece of a plate with a spray of
- red and yellow ivy on it that is especially beautiful. We keep
- it in the parlor and we have the fairy glass there, too. The
- fairy glass is as lovely as a dream. Diana found it out in the
- woods behind their chicken house. It's all full of
- rainbows--just little young rainbows that haven't grown big
- yet--and Diana's mother told her it was broken off a hanging lamp
- they once had. But it's nice to imagine the fairies lost it one
- night when they had a ball, so we call it the fairy glass.
- Matthew is going to make us a table. Oh, we have named that
- little round pool over in Mr. Barry's field Willowmere. I got
- that name out of the book Diana lent me. That was a thrilling
- book, Marilla. The heroine had five lovers. I'd be satisfied
- with one, wouldn't you? She was very handsome and she went
- through great tribulations. She could faint as easy as anything.
- I'd love to be able to faint, wouldn't you, Marilla? It's so
- romantic. But I'm really very healthy for all I'm so thin.
- I believe I'm getting fatter, though. Don't you think I am?
- I look at my elbows every morning when I get up to see if any
- dimples are coming. Diana is having a new dress made with elbow
- sleeves. She is going to wear it to the picnic. Oh, I do hope
- it will be fine next Wednesday. I don't feel that I could endure
- the disappointment if anything happened to prevent me from
- getting to the picnic. I suppose I'd live through it, but I'm
- certain it would be a lifelong sorrow. It wouldn't matter if I
- got to a hundred picnics in after years; they wouldn't make up
- for missing this one. They're going to have boats on the Lake of
- Shining Waters--and ice cream, as I told you. I have never
- tasted ice cream. Diana tried to explain what it was like, but I
- guess ice cream is one of those things that are beyond imagination."
-
- "Anne, you have talked even on for ten minutes by the clock,"
- said Marilla. "Now, just for curiosity's sake, see if you can
- hold your tongue for the same length of time."
-
- Anne held her tongue as desired. But for the rest of the week
- she talked picnic and thought picnic and dreamed picnic. On
- Saturday it rained and she worked herself up into such a frantic
- state lest it should keep on raining until and over Wednesday
- that Marilla made her sew an extra patchwork square by way of
- steadying her nerves.
-
- On Sunday Anne confided to Marilla on the way home from church
- that she grew actually cold all over with excitement when the
- minister announced the picnic from the pulpit.
-
- "Such a thrill as went up and down my back, Marilla! I don't
- think I'd ever really believed until then that there was honestly
- going to be a picnic. I couldn't help fearing I'd only imagined it.
- But when a minister says a thing in the pulpit you just have to
- believe it."
-
- "You set your heart too much on things, Anne," said Marilla, with
- a sigh. "I'm afraid there'll be a great many disappointments in
- store for you through life."
-
- "Oh, Marilla, looking forward to things is half the pleasure of
- them," exclaimed Anne. "You mayn't get the things themselves;
- but nothing can prevent you from having the fun of looking
- forward to them. Mrs. Lynde says, `Blessed are they who expect
- nothing for they shall not be disappointed.' But I think it would
- be worse to expect nothing than to be disappointed."
-
- Marilla wore her amethyst brooch to church that day as usual.
- Marilla always wore her amethyst brooch to church. She would
- have thought it rather sacrilegious to leave it off--as bad as
- forgetting her Bible or her collection dime. That amethyst
- brooch was Marilla's most treasured possession. A seafaring
- uncle had given it to her mother who in turn had bequeathed it to
- Marilla. It was an old-fashioned oval, containing a braid of her
- mother's hair, surrounded by a border of very fine amethysts.
- Marilla knew too little about precious stones to realize how fine
- the amethysts actually were; but she thought them very beautiful
- and was always pleasantly conscious of their violet shimmer at
- her throat, above her good brown satin dress, even although she
- could not see it.
-
- Anne had been smitten with delighted admiration when she first
- saw that brooch.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, it's a perfectly elegant brooch. I don't know how
- you can pay attention to the sermon or the prayers when you have
- it on. I couldn't, I know. I think amethysts are just sweet.
- They are what I used to think diamonds were like. Long ago,
- before I had ever seen a diamond, I read about them and I tried
- to imagine what they would be like. I thought they would be
- lovely glimmering purple stones. When I saw a real diamond in a
- lady's ring one day I was so disappointed I cried. Of course, it
- was very lovely but it wasn't my idea of a diamond. Will you let
- me hold the brooch for one minute, Marilla? Do you think
- amethysts can be the souls of good violets?"
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV
-
- Anne's Confession
-
-
- ON the Monday evening before the picnic Marilla came down from
- her room with a troubled face.
-
- "Anne," she said to that small personage, who was shelling peas
- by the spotless table and singing, "Nelly of the Hazel Dell" with
- a vigor and expression that did credit to Diana's teaching, "did
- you see anything of my amethyst brooch? I thought I stuck it in
- my pincushion when I came home from church yesterday evening, but
- I can't find it anywhere."
-
- "I--I saw it this afternoon when you were away at the Aid
- Society," said Anne, a little slowly. "I was passing your door
- when I saw it on the cushion, so I went in to look at it."
-
- "Did you touch it?" said Marilla sternly.
-
- "Y-e-e-s," admitted Anne, "I took it up and I pinned it on my
- breast just to see how it would look."
-
- "You had no business to do anything of the sort. It's very wrong
- in a little girl to meddle. You shouldn't have gone into my room
- in the first place and you shouldn't have touched a brooch that
- didn't belong to you in the second. Where did you put it?"
-
- "Oh, I put it back on the bureau. I hadn't it on a minute.
- Truly, I didn't mean to meddle, Marilla. I didn't think about
- its being wrong to go in and try on the brooch; but I see now
- that it was and I'll never do it again. That's one good thing
- about me. I never do the same naughty thing twice."
-
- "You didn't put it back," said Marilla. "That brooch isn't
- anywhere on the bureau. You've taken it out or something, Anne."
-
- "I did put it back," said Anne quickly--pertly, Marilla thought.
- "I don't just remember whether I stuck it on the pincushion or laid
- it in the china tray. But I'm perfectly certain I put it back."
-
- "I'll go and have another look," said Marilla, determining to be
- just. "If you put that brooch back it's there still. If it
- isn't I'll know you didn't, that's all!"
-
- Marilla went to her room and made a thorough search, not only
- over the bureau but in every other place she thought the brooch
- might possibly be. It was not to be found and she returned to
- the kitchen.
-
- "Anne, the brooch is gone. By your own admission you were the
- last person to handle it. Now, what have you done with it?
- Tell me the truth at once. Did you take it out and lose it?"
-
- "No, I didn't," said Anne solemnly, meeting Marilla's angry gaze
- squarely. "I never took the brooch out of your room and that is
- the truth, if I was to be led to the block for it--although I'm
- not very certain what a block is. So there, Marilla."
-
- Anne's "so there" was only intended to emphasize her assertion,
- but Marilla took it as a display of defiance.
-
- "I believe you are telling me a falsehood, Anne," she said
- sharply. "I know you are. There now, don't say anything more
- unless you are prepared to tell the whole truth. Go to your room
- and stay there until you are ready to confess."
-
- "Will I take the peas with me?" said Anne meekly.
-
- "No, I'll finish shelling them myself. Do as I bid you."
-
- When Anne had gone Marilla went about her evening tasks in a very
- disturbed state of mind. She was worried about her valuable
- brooch. What if Anne had lost it? And how wicked of the child
- to deny having taken it, when anybody could see she must have!
- With such an innocent face, too!
-
- "I don't know what I wouldn't sooner have had happen," thought
- Marilla, as she nervously shelled the peas. "Of course, I don't
- suppose she meant to steal it or anything like that. She's just
- taken it to play with or help along that imagination of hers.
- She must have taken it, that's clear, for there hasn't been a
- soul in that room since she was in it, by her own story, until I
- went up tonight. And the brooch is gone, there's nothing surer.
- I suppose she has lost it and is afraid to own up for fear she'll
- be punished. It's a dreadful thing to think she tells falsehoods.
- It's a far worse thing than her fit of temper. It's a fearful
- responsibility to have a child in your house you can't trust.
- Slyness and untruthfulness--that's what she has displayed.
- I declare I feel worse about that than about the brooch. If
- she'd only have told the truth about it I wouldn't mind so much."
-
- Marilla went to her room at intervals all through the evening and
- searched for the brooch, without finding it. A bedtime visit to
- the east gable produced no result. Anne persisted in denying
- that she knew anything about the brooch but Marilla was only the
- more firmly convinced that she did.
-
- She told Matthew the story the next morning. Matthew was
- confounded and puzzled; he could not so quickly lose faith in
- Anne but he had to admit that circumstances were against her.
-
- "You're sure it hasn't fell down behind the bureau?" was the only
- suggestion he could offer.
-
- "I've moved the bureau and I've taken out the drawers and I've
- looked in every crack and cranny" was Marilla's positive answer.
- "The brooch is gone and that child has taken it and lied about it.
- That's the plain, ugly truth, Matthew Cuthbert, and we might as
- well look it in the face."
-
- "Well now, what are you going to do about it?" Matthew asked
- forlornly, feeling secretly thankful that Marilla and not he had
- to deal with the situation. He felt no desire to put his oar in
- this time.
-
- "She'll stay in her room until she confesses," said Marilla
- grimly, remembering the success of this method in the former
- case. "Then we'll see. Perhaps we'll be able to find the brooch
- if she'll only tell where she took it; but in any case she'll
- have to be severely punished, Matthew."
-
- "Well now, you'll have to punish her," said Matthew, reaching for
- his hat. "I've nothing to do with it, remember. You warned me
- off yourself."
-
- Marilla felt deserted by everyone. She could not even go to Mrs.
- Lynde for advice. She went up to the east gable with a very
- serious face and left it with a face more serious still. Anne
- steadfastly refused to confess. She persisted in asserting that
- she had not taken the brooch. The child had evidently been
- crying and Marilla felt a pang of pity which she sternly
- repressed. By night she was, as she expressed it, "beat out."
-
- "You'll stay in this room until you confess, Anne. You can make
- up your mind to that," she said firmly.
-
- "But the picnic is tomorrow, Marilla," cried Anne. "You won't
- keep me from going to that, will you? You'll just let me out for
- the afternoon, won't you? Then I'll stay here as long as you
- like AFTERWARDS cheerfully. But I MUST go to the picnic."
-
- "You'll not go to picnics nor anywhere else until you've
- confessed, Anne."
-
- "Oh, Marilla," gasped Anne.
-
- But Marilla had gone out and shut the door.
-
- Wednesday morning dawned as bright and fair as if expressly made
- to order for the picnic. Birds sang around Green Gables; the
- Madonna lilies in the garden sent out whiffs of perfume that
- entered in on viewless winds at every door and window, and
- wandered through halls and rooms like spirits of benediction.
- The birches in the hollow waved joyful hands as if watching for
- Anne's usual morning greeting from the east gable. But Anne was
- not at her window. When Marilla took her breakfast up to her she
- found the child sitting primly on her bed, pale and resolute,
- with tight-shut lips and gleaming eyes.
-
- "Marilla, I'm ready to confess."
-
- "Ah!" Marilla laid down her tray. Once again her method had
- succeeded; but her success was very bitter to her. "Let me hear
- what you have to say then, Anne."
-
- "I took the amethyst brooch," said Anne, as if repeating a lesson
- she had learned. "I took it just as you said. I didn't mean to
- take it when I went in. But it did look so beautiful, Marilla,
- when I pinned it on my breast that I was overcome by an
- irresistible temptation. I imagined how perfectly thrilling it
- would be to take it to Idlewild and play I was the Lady Cordelia
- Fitzgerald. It would be so much easier to imagine I was the Lady
- Cordelia if I had a real amethyst brooch on. Diana and I make
- necklaces of roseberries but what are roseberries compared to
- amethysts? So I took the brooch. I thought I could put it back
- before you came home. I went all the way around by the road to
- lengthen out the time. When I was going over the bridge across
- the Lake of Shining Waters I took the brooch off to have another
- look at it. Oh, how it did shine in the sunlight! And then, when
- I was leaning over the bridge, it just slipped through my
- fingers--so--and went down--down--down, all purplysparkling, and
- sank forevermore beneath the Lake of Shining Waters. And that's
- the best I can do at confessing, Marilla."
-
- Marilla felt hot anger surge up into her heart again. This child
- had taken and lost her treasured amethyst brooch and now sat
- there calmly reciting the details thereof without the least
- apparent compunction or repentance.
-
- "Anne, this is terrible," she said, trying to speak calmly.
- "You are the very wickedest girl I ever heard of"
-
- "Yes, I suppose I am," agreed Anne tranquilly. "And I know I'll
- have to be punished. It'll be your duty to punish me, Marilla.
- Won't you please get it over right off because I'd like to go to
- the picnic with nothing on my mind."
-
- "Picnic, indeed! You'll go to no picnic today, Anne Shirley.
- That shall be your punishment. And it isn't half severe enough
- either for what you've done!"
-
- "Not go to the picnic!" Anne sprang to her feet and clutched
- Marilla's hand. "But you PROMISED me I might! Oh, Marilla, I
- must go to the picnic. That was why I confessed. Punish me any
- way you like but that. Oh, Marilla, please, please, let me go to
- the picnic. Think of the ice cream! For anything you know I may
- never have a chance to taste ice cream again."
-
- Marilla disengaged Anne's clinging hands stonily.
-
- "You needn't plead, Anne. You are not going to the picnic and
- that's final. No, not a word."
-
- Anne realized that Marilla was not to be moved. She clasped her
- hands together, gave a piercing shriek, and then flung herself
- face downward on the bed, crying and writhing in an utter
- abandonment of disappointment and despair.
-
- "For the land's sake!" gasped Marilla, hastening from the room.
- "I believe the child is crazy. No child in her senses would
- behave as she does. If she isn't she's utterly bad. Oh dear,
- I'm afraid Rachel was right from the first. But I've put my hand
- to the plow and I won't look back."
-
- That was a dismal morning. Marilla worked fiercely and scrubbed
- the porch floor and the dairy shelves when she could find nothing
- else to do. Neither the shelves nor the porch needed it--but
- Marilla did. Then she went out and raked the yard.
-
- When dinner was ready she went to the stairs and called Anne. A
- tear-stained face appeared, looking tragically over the banisters.
-
- "Come down to your dinner, Anne."
-
- "I don't want any dinner, Marilla," said Anne, sobbingly. "I
- couldn't eat anything. My heart is broken. You'll feel remorse
- of conscience someday, I expect, for breaking it, Marilla, but I
- forgive you. Remember when the time comes that I forgive you.
- But please don't ask me to eat anything, especially boiled pork
- and greens. Boiled pork and greens are so unromantic when one is
- in affliction."
-
- Exasperated, Marilla returned to the kitchen and poured out her
- tale of woe to Matthew, who, between his sense of justice and his
- unlawful sympathy with Anne, was a miserable man.
-
- "Well now, she shouldn't have taken the brooch, Marilla, or told
- stories about it," he admitted, mournfuly surveying his plateful
- of unromantic pork and greens as if he, like Anne, thought it a
- food unsuited to crises of feeling, "but she's such a little
- thing--such an interesting little thing. Don't you think it's pretty
- rough not to let her go to the picnic when she's so set on it?"
-
- "Matthew Cuthbert, I'm amazed at you. I think I've let her off
- entirely too easy. And she doesn't appear to realize how wicked
- she's been at all--that's what worries me most. If she'd really
- felt sorry it wouldn't be so bad. And you don't seem to realize
- it, neither; you're making excuses for her all the time to
- yourself--I can see that."
-
- "Well now, she's such a little thing," feebly reiterated Matthew.
- "And there should be allowances made, Marilla. You know she's
- never had any bringing up."
-
- "Well, she's having it now" retorted Marilla.
-
- The retort silenced Matthew if it did not convince him. That
- dinner was a very dismal meal. The only cheerful thing about it
- was Jerry Buote, the hired boy, and Marilla resented his
- cheerfulness as a personal insult.
-
- When her dishes were washed and her bread sponge set and her hens
- fed Marilla remembered that she had noticed a small rent in her
- best black lace shawl when she had taken it off on Monday
- afternoon on returning from the Ladies' Aid.
-
- She would go and mend it. The shawl was in a box in her trunk.
- As Marilla lifted it out, the sunlight, falling through the vines
- that clustered thickly about the window, struck upon something
- caught in the shawl--something that glittered and sparkled in facets
- of violet light. Marilla snatched at it with a gasp. It was the
- amethyst brooch, hanging to a thread of the lace by its catch!
-
- "Dear life and heart," said Marilla blankly, "what does this
- mean? Here's my brooch safe and sound that I thought was at the
- bottom of Barry's pond. Whatever did that girl mean by saying
- she took it and lost it? I declare I believe Green Gables is
- bewitched. I remember now that when I took off my shawl Monday
- afternoon I laid it on the bureau for a minute. I suppose the
- brooch got caught in it somehow. Well!"
-
- Marilla betook herself to the east gable, brooch in hand. Anne
- had cried herself out and was sitting dejectedly by the window.
-
- "Anne Shirley," said Marilla solemnly, "I've just found my brooch
- hanging to my black lace shawl. Now I want to know what that
- rigmarole you told me this morning meant."
-
- "Why, you said you'd keep me here until I confessed," returned
- Anne wearily, "and so I decided to confess because I was bound to
- get to the picnic. I thought out a confession last night after I
- went to bed and made it as interesting as I could. And I said it
- over and over so that I wouldn't forget it. But you wouldn't let
- me go to the picnic after all, so all my trouble was wasted."
-
- Marilla had to laugh in spite of herself. But her conscience
- pricked her.
-
- "Anne, you do beat all! But I was wrong--I see that now.
- I shouldn't have doubted your word when I'd never known you to
- tell a story. Of course, it wasn't right for you to confess to a
- thing you hadn't done--it was very wrong to do so. But I drove you
- to it. So if you'll forgive me, Anne, I'll forgive you and we'll
- start square again. And now get yourself ready for the picnic."
-
- Anne flew up like a rocket.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, isn't it too late?"
-
- "No, it's only two o'clock. They won't be more than well
- gathered yet and it'll be an hour before they have tea. Wash
- your face and comb your hair and put on your gingham. I'll fill
- a basket for you. There's plenty of stuff baked in the house.
- And I'll get Jerry to hitch up the sorrel and drive you down to
- the picnic ground."
-
- "Oh, Marilla," exclaimed Anne, flying to the washstand. "Five
- minutes ago I was so miserable I was wishing I'd never been born
- and now I wouldn't change places with an angel!"
-
- That night a thoroughly happy, completely tired-out Anne returned
- to Green Gables in a state of beatification impossible to describe.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, I've had a perfectly scrumptious time. Scrumptious
- is a new word I learned today. I heard Mary Alice Bell use it.
- Isn't it very expressive? Everything was lovely. We had a
- splendid tea and then Mr. Harmon Andrews took us all for a row
- on the Lake of Shining Waters--six of us at a time. And Jane
- Andrews nearly fell overboard. She was leaning out to pick water
- lilies and if Mr. Andrews hadn't caught her by her sash just
- in the nick of time she'd fallen in and prob'ly been drowned.
- I wish it had been me. It would have been such a romantic
- experience to have been nearly drowned. It would be such a
- thrilling tale to tell. And we had the ice cream. Words fail me
- to describe that ice cream. Marilla, I assure you it was sublime."
-
- That evening Marilla told the whole story to Matthew over her
- stocking basket.
-
- "I'm willing to own up that I made a mistake," she concluded
- candidly, "but I've learned a lesson. I have to laugh when I
- think of Anne's `confession,' although I suppose I shouldn't for
- it really was a falsehood. But it doesn't seem as bad as the
- other would have been, somehow, and anyhow I'm responsible for
- it. That child is hard to understand in some respects. But I
- believe she'll turn out all right yet. And there's one thing
- certain, no house will ever be dull that she's in."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV
-
- A Tempest in the School Teapot
-
-
- "What a splendid day!" said Anne, drawing a long breath. "Isn't
- it good just to be alive on a day like this? I pity the people
- who aren't born yet for missing it. They may have good days, of
- course, but they can never have this one. And it's splendider
- still to have such a lovely way to go to school by, isn't it?"
-
- "It's a lot nicer than going round by the road; that is so dusty
- and hot," said Diana practically, peeping into her dinner basket
- and mentally calculating if the three juicy, toothsome, raspberry
- tarts reposing there were divided among ten girls how many bites
- each girl would have.
-
- The little girls of Avonlea school always pooled their lunches,
- and to eat three raspberry tarts all alone or even to share them
- only with one's best chum would have forever and ever branded as
- "awful mean" the girl who did it. And yet, when the tarts were
- divided among ten girls you just got enough to tantalize you.
-
- The way Anne and Diana went to school WAS a pretty one. Anne
- thought those walks to and from school with Diana couldn't be
- improved upon even by imagination. Going around by the main road
- would have been so unromantic; but to go by Lover's Lane and
- Willowmere and Violet Vale and the Birch Path was romantic, if
- ever anything was.
-
- Lover's Lane opened out below the orchard at Green Gables and
- stretched far up into the woods to the end of the Cuthbert farm.
- It was the way by which the cows were taken to the back pasture
- and the wood hauled home in winter. Anne had named it Lover's
- Lane before she had been a month at Green Gables.
-
- "Not that lovers ever really walk there," she explained to Marilla,
- "but Diana and I are reading a perfectly magnificent book and there's
- a Lover's Lane in it. So we want to have one, too. And it's a very
- pretty name, don't you think? So romantic! We can't imagine the
- lovers into it, you know. I like that lane because you can think
- out loud there without people calling you crazy."
-
- Anne, starting out alone in the morning, went down Lover's Lane
- as far as the brook. Here Diana met her, and the two little
- girls went on up the lane under the leafy arch of maples--"maples
- are such sociable trees," said Anne; "they're always rustling and
- whispering to you"--until they came to a rustic bridge. Then
- they left the lane and walked through Mr. Barry's back field and
- past Willowmere. Beyond Willowmere came Violet Vale--a little
- green dimple in the shadow of Mr. Andrew Bell's big woods. "Of
- course there are no violets there now," Anne told Marilla, "but
- Diana says there are millions of them in spring. Oh, Marilla,
- can't you just imagine you see them? It actually takes away my
- breath. I named it Violet Vale. Diana says she never saw the
- beat of me for hitting on fancy names for places. It's nice to
- be clever at something, isn't it? But Diana named the Birch
- Path. She wanted to, so I let her; but I'm sure I could have
- found something more poetical than plain Birch Path. Anybody can
- think of a name like that. But the Birch Path is one of the
- prettiest places in the world, Marilla."
-
- It was. Other people besides Anne thought so when they stumbled
- on it. It was a little narrow, twisting path, winding down over
- a long hill straight through Mr. Bell's woods, where the light
- came down sifted through so many emerald screens that it was as
- flawless as the heart of a diamond. It was fringed in all its
- length with slim young birches, white stemmed and lissom boughed;
- ferns and starflowers and wild lilies-of-the-valley and scarlet
- tufts of pigeonberries grew thickly along it; and always there
- was a delightful spiciness in the air and music of bird calls and
- the murmur and laugh of wood winds in the trees overhead. Now
- and then you might see a rabbit skipping across the road if you
- were quiet--which, with Anne and Diana, happened about once in a
- blue moon. Down in the valley the path came out to the main road
- and then it was just up the spruce hill to the school.
-
- The Avonlea school was a whitewashed building, low in the eaves
- and wide in the windows, furnished inside with comfortable
- substantial old-fashioned desks that opened and shut, and were
- carved all over their lids with the initials and hieroglyphics of
- three generations of school children. The schoolhouse was set
- back from the road and behind it was a dusky fir wood and a brook
- where all the children put their bottles of milk in the morning
- to keep cool and sweet until dinner hour.
-
- Marilla had seen Anne start off to school on the first day of
- September with many secret misgivings. Anne was such an odd girl.
- How would she get on with the other children? And how on earth
- would she ever manage to hold her tongue during school hours?
-
- Things went better than Marilla feared, however. Anne came home
- that evening in high spirits.
-
- "I think I'm going to like school here," she announced. "I don't
- think much of the master, through. He's all the time curling his
- mustache and making eyes at Prissy Andrews. Prissy is grown up,
- you know. She's sixteen and she's studying for the entrance
- examination into Queen's Academy at Charlottetown next year.
- Tillie Boulter says the master is DEAD GONE on her. She's got a
- beautiful complexion and curly brown hair and she does it up so
- elegantly. She sits in the long seat at the back and he sits
- there, too, most of the time--to explain her lessons, he says.
- But Ruby Gillis says she saw him writing something on her slate
- and when Prissy read it she blushed as red as a beet and giggled;
- and Ruby Gillis says she doesn't believe it had anything to do
- with the lesson."
-
- "Anne Shirley, don't let me hear you talking about your teacher
- in that way again," said Marilla sharply. "You don't go to school
- to criticize the master. I guess he can teach YOU something,
- and it's your business to learn. And I want you to understand
- right off that you are not to come home telling tales about him.
- That is something I won't encourage. I hope you were a good girl."
-
- "Indeed I was," said Anne comfortably. "It wasn't so hard as you
- might imagine, either. I sit with Diana. Our seat is right by
- the window and we can look down to the Lake of Shining Waters.
- There are a lot of nice girls in school and we had scrumptious
- fun playing at dinnertime. It's so nice to have a lot of little
- girls to play with. But of course I like Diana best and always
- will. I ADORE Diana. I'm dreadfully far behind the others.
- They're all in the fifth book and I'm only in the fourth. I feel
- that it's kind of a disgrace. But there's not one of them has
- such an imagination as I have and I soon found that out. We had
- reading and geography and Canadian history and dictation today.
- Mr. Phillips said my spelling was disgraceful and he held up my
- slate so that everybody could see it, all marked over. I felt so
- mortified, Marilla; he might have been politer to a stranger, I
- think. Ruby Gillis gave me an apple and Sophia Sloane lent me a
- lovely pink card with `May I see you home?' on it. I'm to give
- it back to her tomorrow. And Tillie Boulter let me wear her bead
- ring all the afternoon. Can I have some of those pearl beads off
- the old pincushion in the garret to make myself a ring? And oh,
- Marilla, Jane Andrews told me that Minnie MacPherson told her
- that she heard Prissy Andrews tell Sara Gillis that I had a very
- pretty nose. Marilla, that is the first compliment I have ever
- had in my life and you can't imagine what a strange feeling it
- gave me. Marilla, have I really a pretty nose? I know you'll
- tell me the truth."
-
- "Your nose is well enough," said Marilla shortly. Secretly she
- thought Anne's nose was a remarkable pretty one; but she had no
- intention of telling her so.
-
- That was three weeks ago and all had gone smoothly so far. And now,
- this crisp September morning, Anne and Diana were tripping blithely
- down the Birch Path, two of the happiest little girls in Avonlea.
-
- "I guess Gilbert Blythe will be in school today," said Diana.
- "He's been visiting his cousins over in New Brunswick all summer
- and he only came home Saturday night. He's AW'FLY handsome, Anne.
- And he teases the girls something terrible. He just torments our
- lives out."
-
- Diana's voice indicated that she rather liked having her life
- tormented out than not.
-
- "Gilbert Blythe?" said Anne. "Isn't his name that's written up on
- the porch wall with Julia Bell's and a big `Take Notice' over them?"
-
- "Yes," said Diana, tossing her head, "but I'm sure he doesn't
- like Julia Bell so very much. I've heard him say he studied the
- multiplication table by her freckles."
-
- "Oh, don't speak about freckles to me," implored Anne. "It isn't
- delicate when I've got so many. But I do think that writing
- take-notices up on the wall about the boys and girls is the
- silliest ever. I should just like to see anybody dare to write
- my name up with a boy's. Not, of course," she hastened to add,
- "that anybody would."
-
- Anne sighed. She didn't want her name written up. But it was a
- little humiliating to know that there was no danger of it.
-
- "Nonsense," said Diana, whose black eyes and glossy tresses had
- played such havoc with the hearts of Avonlea schoolboys that her
- name figured on the porch walls in half a dozen take-notices.
- "It's only meant as a joke. And don't you be too sure your name
- won't ever be written up. Charlie Sloane is DEAD GONE on you.
- He told his mother--his MOTHER, mind you--that you were the
- smartest girl in school. That's better than being good looking."
-
- "No, it isn't," said Anne, feminine to the core. "I'd rather be
- pretty than clever. And I hate Charlie Sloane, I can't bear a boy
- with goggle eyes. If anyone wrote my name up with his I'd never GET
- over it, Diana Barry. But it IS nice to keep head of your class."
-
- "You'll have Gilbert in your class after this," said Diana, "and
- he's used to being head of his class, I can tell you. He's only
- in the fourth book although he's nearly fourteen. Four years ago
- his father was sick and had to go out to Alberta for his health
- and Gilbert went with him. They were there three years and Gil
- didn't go to school hardly any until they came back. You won't
- find it so easy to keep head after this, Anne."
-
- "I'm glad," said Anne quickly. "I couldn't really feel proud of
- keeping head of little boys and girls of just nine or ten. I got
- up yesterday spelling `ebullition.' Josie Pye was head and, mind
- you, she peeped in her book. Mr. Phillips didn't see her--he
- was looking at Prissy Andrews--but I did. I just swept her a
- look of freezing scorn and she got as red as a beet and spelled
- it wrong after all."
-
- "Those Pye girls are cheats all round," said Diana indignantly,
- as they climbed the fence of the main road. "Gertie Pye actually
- went and put her milk bottle in my place in the brook yesterday.
- Did you ever? I don't speak to her now."
-
- When Mr. Phillips was in the back of the room hearing Prissy
- Andrews's Latin, Diana whispered to Anne,
-
- "That's Gilbert Blythe sitting right across the aisle from you,
- Anne. Just look at him and see if you don't think he's handsome."
-
- Anne looked accordingly. She had a good chance to do so, for the
- said Gilbert Blythe was absorbed in stealthily pinning the long
- yellow braid of Ruby Gillis, who sat in front of him, to the back
- of her seat. He was a tall boy, with curly brown hair, roguish
- hazel eyes, and a mouth twisted into a teasing smile. Presently
- Ruby Gillis started up to take a sum to the master; she fell back
- into her seat with a little shriek, believing that her hair was
- pulled out by the roots. Everybody looked at her and Mr.
- Phillips glared so sternly that Ruby began to cry. Gilbert had
- whisked the pin out of sight and was studying his history with
- the soberest face in the world; but when the commotion subsided
- he looked at Anne and winked with inexpressible drollery.
-
- "I think your Gilbert Blythe IS handsome," confided Anne to Diana,
- "but I think he's very bold. It isn't good manners to wink at a
- strange girl."
-
- But it was not until the afternoon that things really began to happen.
-
- Mr. Phillips was back in the corner explaining a problem in
- algebra to Prissy Andrews and the rest of the scholars were doing
- pretty much as they pleased eating green apples, whispering,
- drawing pictures on their slates, and driving crickets harnessed
- to strings, up and down aisle. Gilbert Blythe was trying to make
- Anne Shirley look at him and failing utterly, because Anne was at
- that moment totally oblivious not only to the very existence of
- Gilbert Blythe, but of every other scholar in Avonlea school itself.
- With her chin propped on her hands and her eyes fixed on the blue
- glimpse of the Lake of Shining Waters that the west window afforded,
- she was far away in a gorgeous dreamland hearing and seeing nothing
- save her own wonderful visions.
-
- Gilbert Blythe wasn't used to putting himself out to make a girl
- look at him and meeting with failure. She SHOULD look at him, that
- red-haired Shirley girl with the little pointed chin and the big
- eyes that weren't like the eyes of any other girl in Avonlea school.
-
- Gilbert reached across the aisle, picked up the end of Anne's
- long red braid, held it out at arm's length and said in a
- piercing whisper:
-
- "Carrots! Carrots!"
-
- Then Anne looked at him with a vengeance!
-
- She did more than look. She sprang to her feet, her bright
- fancies fallen into cureless ruin. She flashed one indignant
- glance at Gilbert from eyes whose angry sparkle was swiftly
- quenched in equally angry tears.
-
- "You mean, hateful boy!" she exclaimed passionately. "How dare you!"
-
- And then--thwack! Anne had brought her slate down on Gilbert's
- head and cracked it--slate not head--clear across.
-
- Avonlea school always enjoyed a scene. This was an especially
- enjoyable one. Everybody said "Oh" in horrified delight. Diana
- gasped. Ruby Gillis, who was inclined to be hysterical, began to
- cry. Tommy Sloane let his team of crickets escape him altogether
- while he stared open-mouthed at the tableau.
-
- Mr. Phillips stalked down the aisle and laid his hand heavily on
- Anne's shoulder.
-
- "Anne Shirley, what does this mean?" he said angrily. Anne
- returned no answer. It was asking too much of flesh and blood to
- expect her to tell before the whole school that she had been
- called "carrots." Gilbert it was who spoke up stoutly.
-
- "It was my fault Mr. Phillips. I teased her."
-
- Mr. Phillips paid no heed to Gilbert.
-
- "I am sorry to see a pupil of mine displaying such a temper and
- such a vindictive spirit," he said in a solemn tone, as if the
- mere fact of being a pupil of his ought to root out all evil
- passions from the hearts of small imperfect mortals. "Anne, go
- and stand on the platform in front of the blackboard for the rest
- of the afternoon."
-
- Anne would have infinitely preferred a whipping to this
- punishment under which her sensitive spirit quivered as from a
- whiplash. With a white, set face she obeyed. Mr. Phillips took
- a chalk crayon and wrote on the blackboard above her head.
-
- "Ann Shirley has a very bad temper. Ann Shirley must learn to
- control her temper," and then read it out loud so that even the
- primer class, who couldn't read writing, should understand it.
-
- Anne stood there the rest of the afternoon with that legend above
- her. She did not cry or hang her head. Anger was still too hot
- in her heart for that and it sustained her amid all her agony of
- humiliation. With resentful eyes and passion-red cheeks she
- confronted alike Diana's sympathetic gaze and Charlie Sloane's
- indignant nods and Josie Pye's malicious smiles. As for Gilbert
- Blythe, she would not even look at him. She would NEVER look at
- him again! She would never speak to him!!
-
- When school was dismissed Anne marched out with her red head held
- high. Gilbert Blythe tried to intercept her at the porch door.
-
- "I'm awfully sorry I made fun of your hair, Anne," he whispered
- contritely. "Honest I am. Don't be mad for keeps, now"
-
- Anne swept by disdainfully, without look or sign of hearing. "Oh
- how could you, Anne?" breathed Diana as they went down the road
- half reproachfully, half admiringly. Diana felt that SHE could
- never have resisted Gilbert's plea.
-
- "I shall never forgive Gilbert Blythe," said Anne firmly.
- "And Mr. Phillips spelled my name without an e, too.
- The iron has entered into my soul, Diana."
-
- Diana hadn't the least idea what Anne meant but she understood it
- was something terrible.
-
- "You mustn't mind Gilbert making fun of your hair," she said
- soothingly. "Why, he makes fun of all the girls. He laughs at
- mine because it's so black. He's called me a crow a dozen times;
- and I never heard him apologize for anything before, either."
-
- "There's a great deal of difference between being called a crow
- and being called carrots," said Anne with dignity. "Gilbert
- Blythe has hurt my feelings EXCRUCIATINGLY, Diana."
-
- It is possible the matter might have blown over without more
- excruciation if nothing else had happened. But when things begin
- to happen they are apt to keep on.
-
- Avonlea scholars often spent noon hour picking gum in Mr. Bell's
- spruce grove over the hill and across his big pasture field.
- From there they could keep an eye on Eben Wright's house, where
- the master boarded. When they saw Mr. Phillips emerging therefrom
- they ran for the schoolhouse; but the distance being about three
- times longer than Mr. Wright's lane they were very apt to arrive
- there, breathless and gasping, some three minutes too late.
-
- On the following day Mr. Phillips was seized with one of his
- spasmodic fits of reform and announced before going home to
- dinner, that he should expect to find all the scholars in their
- seats when he returned. Anyone who came in late would be punished.
-
- All the boys and some of the girls went to Mr. Bell's spruce
- grove as usual, fully intending to stay only long enough to "pick
- a chew." But spruce groves are seductive and yellow nuts of gum
- beguiling; they picked and loitered and strayed; and as usual the
- first thing that recalled them to a sense of the flight of time
- was Jimmy Glover shouting from the top of a patriarchal old
- spruce "Master's coming."
-
- The girls who were on the ground, started first and managed to
- reach the schoolhouse in time but without a second to spare. The
- boys, who had to wriggle hastily down from the trees, were later;
- and Anne, who had not been picking gum at all but was wandering
- happily in the far end of the grove, waist deep among the
- bracken, singing softly to herself, with a wreath of rice lilies
- on her hair as if she were some wild divinity of the shadowy
- places, was latest of all. Anne could run like a deer, however;
- run she did with the impish result that she overtook the boys at
- the door and was swept into the schoolhouse among them just as
- Mr. Phillips was in the act of hanging up his hat.
-
- Mr. Phillips's brief reforming energy was over; he didn't want
- the bother of punishing a dozen pupils; but it was necessary to
- do something to save his word, so he looked about for a scapegoat
- and found it in Anne, who had dropped into her seat, gasping for
- breath, with a forgotten lily wreath hanging askew over one ear
- and giving her a particularly rakish and disheveled appearance.
-
- "Anne Shirley, since you seem to be so fond of the boys' company
- we shall indulge your taste for it this afternoon," he said
- sarcastically. "Take those flowers out of your hair and sit with
- Gilbert Blythe."
-
- The other boys snickered. Diana, turning pale with pity, plucked
- the wreath from Anne's hair and squeezed her hand. Anne stared
- at the master as if turned to stone.
-
- "Did you hear what I said, Anne?" queried Mr. Phillips sternly.
-
- "Yes, sir," said Anne slowly "but I didn't suppose you really meant it."
-
- "I assure you I did"--still with the sarcastic inflection which all
- the children, and Anne especially, hated. It flicked on the raw.
- "Obey me at once."
-
- For a moment Anne looked as if she meant to disobey. Then,
- realizing that there was no help for it, she rose haughtily,
- stepped across the aisle, sat down beside Gilbert Blythe, and
- buried her face in her arms on the desk. Ruby Gillis, who got a
- glimpse of it as it went down, told the others going home from
- school that she'd "acksually never seen anything like it--it was
- so white, with awful little red spots in it."
-
- To Anne, this was as the end of all things. It was bad enough to
- be singled out for punishment from among a dozen equally guilty
- ones; it was worse still to be sent to sit with a boy, but that
- that boy should be Gilbert Blythe was heaping insult on injury to
- a degree utterly unbearable. Anne felt that she could not bear
- it and it would be of no use to try. Her whole being seethed
- with shame and anger and humiliation.
-
- At first the other scholars looked and whispered and giggled and
- nudged. But as Anne never lifted her head and as Gilbert worked
- fractions as if his whole soul was absorbed in them and them only,
- they soon returned to their own tasks and Anne was forgotten.
- When Mr. Phillips called the history class out Anne should have
- gone, but Anne did not move, and Mr. Phillips, who had been
- writing some verses "To Priscilla" before he called the class,
- was thinking about an obstinate rhyme still and never missed her.
- Once, when nobody was looking, Gilbert took from his desk a little
- pink candy heart with a gold motto on it, "You are sweet," and
- slipped it under the curve of Anne's arm. Whereupon Anne arose,
- took the pink heart gingerly between the tips of her fingers,
- dropped it on the floor, ground it to powder beneath her heel,
- and resumed her position without deigning to bestow a glance on Gilbert.
-
- When school went out Anne marched to her desk, ostentatiously took
- out everything therein, books and writing tablet, pen and ink,
- testament and arithmetic, and piled them neatly on her cracked slate.
-
- "What are you taking all those things home for, Anne?" Diana
- wanted to know, as soon as they were out on the road. She had
- not dared to ask the question before.
-
- "I am not coming back to school any more," said Anne.
- Diana gasped and stared at Anne to see if she meant it.
-
- "Will Marilla let you stay home?" she asked.
-
- "She'll have to," said Anne. "I'll NEVER go to school to
- that man again."
-
- "Oh, Anne!" Diana looked as if she were ready to cry. "I do
- think you're mean. What shall I do? Mr. Phillips will make me
- sit with that horrid Gertie Pye--I know he will because she is
- sitting alone. Do come back, Anne."
-
- "I'd do almost anything in the world for you, Diana," said Anne sadly.
- "I'd let myself be torn limb from limb if it would do you any good.
- But I can't do this, so please don't ask it. You harrow up my very soul."
-
- "Just think of all the fun you will miss," mourned Diana. "We
- are going to build the loveliest new house down by the brook; and
- we'll be playing ball next week and you've never played ball, Anne.
- It's tremendously exciting. And we're going to learn a new song--
- Jane Andrews is practicing it up now; and Alice Andrews is going
- to bring a new Pansy book next week and we're all going to read
- it out loud, chapter about, down by the brook. And you know you
- are so fond of reading out loud, Anne."
-
- Nothing moved Anne in the least. Her mind was made up. She
- would not go to school to Mr. Phillips again; she told Marilla
- so when she got home.
-
- "Nonsense," said Marilla.
-
- "It isn't nonsense at all," said Anne, gazing at Marilla with solemn,
- reproachful eyes. "Don't you understand, Marilla? I've been insulted."
-
- "Insulted fiddlesticks! You'll go to school tomorrow as usual."
-
- "Oh, no." Anne shook her head gently. "I'm not going back,
- Marilla. "I'll learn my lessons at home and I'll be as good as I
- can be and hold my tongue all the time if it's possible at all.
- But I will not go back to school, I assure you."
-
- Marilla saw something remarkably like unyielding stubbornness
- looking out of Anne's small face. She understood that she would
- have trouble in overcoming it; but she re-solved wisely to say
- nothing more just then. "I'll run down and see Rachel about it
- this evening," she thought. "There's no use reasoning with Anne
- now. She's too worked up and I've an idea she can be awful stubborn
- if she takes the notion. Far as I can make out from her story,
- Mr. Phillips has been carrying matters with a rather high hand.
- But it would never do to say so to her. I'll just talk it
- over with Rachel. She's sent ten children to school and she
- ought to know something about it. She'll have heard the whole
- story, too, by this time."
-
- Marilla found Mrs. Lynde knitting quilts as industriously and
- cheerfully as usual.
-
- "I suppose you know what I've come about," she said, a little
- shamefacedly.
-
- Mrs. Rachel nodded.
-
- "About Anne's fuss in school, I reckon," she said. "Tillie
- Boulter was in on her way home from school and told me about it."
- "I don't know what to do with her," said Marilla. "She declares
- she won't go back to school. I never saw a child so worked up.
- I've been expecting trouble ever since she started to school.
- I knew things were going too smooth to last. She's so high strung.
- What would you advise, Rachel?"
-
- "Well, since you've asked my advice, Marilla," said Mrs. Lynde
- amiably--Mrs. Lynde dearly loved to be asked for advice--"I'd
- just humor her a little at first, that's what I'd do. It's my
- belief that Mr. Phillips was in the wrong. Of course, it
- doesn't do to say so to the children, you know. And of course he
- did right to punish her yesterday for giving way to temper. But
- today it was different. The others who were late should have
- been punished as well as Anne, that's what. And I don't believe
- in making the girls sit with the boys for punishment. It isn't
- modest. Tillie Boulter was real indignant. She took Anne's part
- right through and said all the scholars did too. Anne seems real
- popular among them, somehow. I never thought she'd take with
- them so well."
-
- "Then you really think I'd better let her stay home," said
- Marilla in amazement.
-
- "Yes. That is I wouldn't say school to her again until she
- said it herself. Depend upon it, Marilla, she'll cool off in
- a week or so and be ready enough to go back of her own accord,
- that's what, while, if you were to make her go back right off,
- dear knows what freak or tantrum she'd take next and make more
- trouble than ever. The less fuss made the better, in my opinion.
- She won't miss much by not going to school, as far as THAT goes.
- Mr. Phillips isn't any good at all as a teacher. The order he keeps
- is scandalous, that's what, and he neglects the young fry and
- puts all his time on those big scholars he's getting ready for
- Queen's. He'd never have got the school for another year if his
- uncle hadn't been a trustee--THE trustee, for he just leads the
- other two around by the nose, that's what. I declare, I don't
- know what education in this Island is coming to."
-
- Mrs. Rachel shook her head, as much as to say if she were only
- at the head of the educational system of the Province things
- would be much better managed.
-
- Marilla took Mrs. Rachel's advice and not another word was said
- to Anne about going back to school. She learned her lessons at
- home, did her chores, and played with Diana in the chilly purple
- autumn twilights; but when she met Gilbert Blythe on the road or
- encountered him in Sunday school she passed him by with an icy
- contempt that was no whit thawed by his evident desire to appease
- her. Even Diana's efforts as a peacemaker were of no avail.
- Anne had evidently made up her mind to hate Gilbert Blythe to
- the end of life.
-
- As much as she hated Gilbert, however, did she love Diana, with
- all the love of her passionate little heart, equally intense in
- its likes and dislikes. One evening Marilla, coming in from the
- orchard with a basket of apples, found Anne sitting along by the
- east window in the twilight, crying bitterly.
-
- "Whatever's the matter now, Anne?" she asked.
-
- "It's about Diana," sobbed Anne luxuriously. "I love Diana so,
- Marilla. I cannot ever live without her. But I know very well
- when we grow up that Diana will get married and go away and leave
- me. And oh, what shall I do? I hate her husband--I just hate
- him furiously. I've been imagining it all out--the wedding and
- everything--Diana dressed in snowy garments, with a veil, and
- looking as beautiful and regal as a queen; and me the bridesmaid,
- with a lovely dress too, and puffed sleeves, but with a breaking
- heart hid beneath my smiling face. And then bidding Diana
- goodbye-e-e--" Here Anne broke down entirely and wept with
- increasing bitterness.
-
- Marilla turned quickly away to hide her twitching face; but it
- was no use; she collapsed on the nearest chair and burst into
- such a hearty and unusual peal of laughter that Matthew, crossing
- the yard outside, halted in amazement. When had he heard Marilla
- laugh like that before?
-
- "Well, Anne Shirley," said Marilla as soon as she could speak,
- "if you must borrow trouble, for pity's sake borrow it handier
- home. I should think you had an imagination, sure enough."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI
-
- Diana Is Invited to Tea with Tragic Results
-
-
- OCTOBER was a beautiful month at Green Gables, when the birches
- in the hollow turned as golden as sunshine and the maples behind
- the orchard were royal crimson and the wild cherry trees along
- the lane put on the loveliest shades of dark red and bronzy
- green, while the fields sunned themselves in aftermaths.
-
- Anne reveled in the world of color about her.
-
- "Oh, Marilla," she exclaimed one Saturday morning, coming dancing
- in with her arms full of gorgeous boughs" 'I'm so glad I live in
- a world where there are Octobers. It would be terrible if we
- just skipped from September to November, wouldn't it? Look at
- these maple branches. Don't they give you a thrill--several
- thrills? I'm going to decorate my room with them."
-
- "Messy things," said Marilla, whose aesthetic sense was not
- noticeably developed. "You clutter up your room entirely too
- much with out-of-doors stuff, Anne. Bedrooms were made to sleep
- in."
-
- "Oh, and dream in too, Marilla. And you know one can dream so
- much better in a room where there are pretty things. I'm going
- to put these boughs in the old blue jug and set them on my
- table."
-
- "Mind you don't drop leaves all over the stairs then. I'm going
- on a meeting of the Aid Society at Carmody this afternoon, Anne,
- and I won't likely be home before dark. You'll have to get
- Matthew and Jerry their supper, so mind you don't forget to put
- the tea to draw until you sit down at the table as you did last
- time."
-
- "It was dreadful of me to forget," said Anne apologetically, "but
- that was the afternoon I was trying to think of a name for Violet
- Vale and it crowded other things out. Matthew was so good. He
- never scolded a bit. He put the tea down himself and said we
- could wait awhile as well as not. And I told him a lovely fairy
- story while we were waiting, so he didn't find the time long at
- all. It was a beautiful fairy story, Marilla. I forgot the end
- of it, so I made up an end for it myself and Matthew said he
- couldn't tell where the join came in."
-
- "Matthew would think it all right, Anne, if you took a notion to
- get up and have dinner in the middle of the night. But you keep
- your wits about you this time. And--I don't really know if I'm
- doing right--it may make you more addlepated than ever--but you
- can ask Diana to come over and spend the afternoon with you and
- have tea here."
-
- "Oh, Marilla!" Anne clasped her hands. "How perfectly lovely!
- You ARE able to imagine things after all or else you'd never have
- understood how I've longed for that very thing. It will seem so
- nice and grown-uppish. No fear of my forgetting to put the tea
- to draw when I have company. Oh, Marilla, can I use the rosebud
- spray tea set?"
-
- "No, indeed! The rosebud tea set! Well, what next? You know I
- never use that except for the minister or the Aids. You'll put
- down the old brown tea set. But you can open the little yellow
- crock of cherry preserves. It's time it was being used anyhow--I
- believe it's beginning to work. And you can cut some fruit cake
- and have some of the cookies and snaps."
-
- "I can just imagine myself sitting down at the head of the table
- and pouring out the tea," said Anne, shutting her eyes
- ecstatically. "And asking Diana if she takes sugar! I know she
- doesn't but of course I'll ask her just as if I didn't know. And
- then pressing her to take another piece of fruit cake and another
- helping of preserves. Oh, Marilla, it's a wonderful sensation
- just to think of it. Can I take her into the spare room to lay
- off her hat when she comes? And then into the parlor to sit?"
-
- "No. The sitting room will do for you and your company. But
- there's a bottle half full of raspberry cordial that was left
- over from the church social the other night. It's on the second
- shelf of the sitting-room closet and you and Diana can have it if
- you like, and a cooky to eat with it along in the afternoon, for
- I daresay Matthew'll be late coming in to tea since he's hauling
- potatoes to the vessel."
-
- Anne flew down to the hollow, past the Dryad's Bubble and up the
- spruce path to Orchard Slope, to ask Diana to tea. As a result
- just after Marilla had driven off to Carmody, Diana came over,
- dressed in HER second-best dress and looking exactly as it is
- proper to look when asked out to tea. At other times she was
- wont to run into the kitchen without knocking; but now she
- knocked primly at the front door. And when Anne, dressed in her
- second best, as primly opened it, both little girls shook hands
- as gravely as if they had never met before. This unnatural
- solemnity lasted until after Diana had been taken to the east
- gable to lay off her hat and then had sat for ten minutes in the
- sitting room, toes in position.
-
- "How is your mother?" inquired Anne politely, just as if she had
- not seen Mrs. Barry picking apples that morning in excellent
- health and spirits.
-
- "She is very well, thank you. I suppose Mr. Cuthbert is hauling
- potatoes to the LILY SANDS this afternoon, is he?" said Diana,
- who had ridden down to Mr. Harmon Andrews's that morning in
- Matthew's cart.
-
- "Yes. Our potato crop is very good this year. I hope your
- father's crop is good too."
-
- "It is fairly good, thank you. Have you picked many of your
- apples yet?"
-
- "Oh, ever so many," said Anne forgetting to be dignified and
- jumping up quickly. "Let's go out to the orchard and get some of
- the Red Sweetings, Diana. Marilla says we can have all that are
- left on the tree. Marilla is a very generous woman. She said we
- could have fruit cake and cherry preserves for tea. But it isn't
- good manners to tell your company what you are going to give them
- to eat, so I won't tell you what she said we could have to drink.
- Only it begins with an R and a C and it's bright red color. I
- love bright red drinks, don't you? They taste twice as good as
- any other color."
-
- The orchard, with its great sweeping boughs that bent to the
- ground with fruit, proved so delightful that the little girls
- spent most of the afternoon in it, sitting in a grassy corner
- where the frost had spared the green and the mellow autumn
- sunshine lingered warmly, eating apples and talking as hard as
- they could. Diana had much to tell Anne of what went on in
- school. She had to sit with Gertie Pye and she hated it; Gertie
- squeaked her pencil all the time and it just made
- her--Diana's--blood run cold; Ruby Gillis had charmed all her
- warts away, true's you live, with a magic pebble that old Mary
- Joe from the Creek gave her. You had to rub the warts with the
- pebble and then throw it away over your left shoulder at the time
- of the new moon and the warts would all go. Charlie Sloane's
- name was written up with Em White's on the porch wall and Em
- White was AWFUL MAD about it; Sam Boulter had "sassed" Mr.
- Phillips in class and Mr. Phillips whipped him and Sam's father
- came down to the school and dared Mr. Phillips to lay a hand on
- one of his children again; and Mattie Andrews had a new red hood
- and a blue crossover with tassels on it and the airs she put on
- about it were perfectly sickening; and Lizzie Wright didn't speak
- to Mamie Wilson because Mamie Wilson's grown-up sister had cut
- out Lizzie Wright's grown-up sister with her beau; and everybody
- missed Anne so and wished she's come to school again; and Gilbert
- Blythe--
-
- But Anne didn't want to hear about Gilbert Blythe. She jumped up
- hurriedly and said suppose they go in and have some raspberry
- cordial.
-
- Anne looked on the second shelf of the room pantry but there was
- no bottle of raspberry cordial there . Search revealed it away
- back on the top shelf. Anne put it on a tray and set it on the
- table with a tumbler.
-
- "Now, please help yourself, Diana," she said politely. "I don't
- believe I'll have any just now. I don't feel as if I wanted any
- after all those apples."
-
- Diana poured herself out a tumblerful, looked at its bright-red
- hue admiringly, and then sipped it daintily.
-
- "That's awfully nice raspberry cordial, Anne," she said. "I
- didn't know raspberry cordial was so nice."
-
- "I'm real glad you like it. Take as much as you want. I'm going
- to run out and stir the fire up. There are so many
- responsibilities on a person's mind when they're keeping house,
- isn't there?"
-
- When Anne came back from the kitchen Diana was drinking her
- second glassful of cordial; and, being entreated thereto by Anne,
- she offered no particular objection to the drinking of a third.
- The tumblerfuls were generous ones and the raspberry cordial was
- certainly very nice.
-
- "The nicest I ever drank," said Diana. "It's ever so much nicer
- than Mrs. Lynde's, although she brags of hers so much. It
- doesn't taste a bit like hers."
-
- "I should think Marilla's raspberry cordial would prob'ly be much
- nicer than Mrs. Lynde's," said Anne loyally. "Marilla is a
- famous cook. She is trying to teach me to cook but I assure you,
- Diana, it is uphill work. There's so little scope for
- imagination in cookery. You just have to go by rules. The last
- time I made a cake I forgot to put the flour in. I was thinking
- the loveliest story about you and me, Diana. I thought you were
- desperately ill with smallpox and everybody deserted you, but I
- went boldly to your bedside and nursed you back to life; and then
- I took the smallpox and died and I was buried under those poplar
- trees in the graveyard and you planted a rosebush by my grave and
- watered it with your tears; and you never, never forgot the
- friend of your youth who sacrificed her life for you. Oh, it was
- such a pathetic tale, Diana. The tears just rained down over my
- cheeks while I mixed the cake. But I forgot the flour and the
- cake was a dismal failure. Flour is so essential to cakes, you
- know. Marilla was very cross and I don't wonder. I'm a great
- trial to her. She was terribly mortified about the pudding sauce
- last week. We had a plum pudding for dinner on Tuesday and there
- was half the pudding and a pitcherful of sauce left over.
- Marilla said there was enough for another dinner and told me to
- set it on the pantry shelf and cover it. I meant to cover it
- just as much as could be, Diana, but when I carried it in I was
- imagining I was a nun--of course I'm a Protestant but I imagined
- I was a Catholic--taking the veil to bury a broken heart in
- cloistered seclusion; and I forgot all about covering the pudding
- sauce. I thought of it next morning and ran to the pantry.
- Diana, fancy if you can my extreme horror at finding a mouse
- drowned in that pudding sauce! I lifted the mouse out with a
- spoon and threw it out in the yard and then I washed the spoon in
- three waters. Marilla was out milking and I fully intended to
- ask her when she came in if I'd give the sauce to the pigs; but
- when she did come in I was imagining that I was a frost fairy
- going through the woods turning the trees red and yellow,
- whichever they wanted to be, so I never thought about the
- pudding sauce again and Marilla sent me out to pick apples.
- Well, Mr. and Mrs. Chester Ross from Spencervale came here that
- morning. You know they are very stylish people, especially Mrs.
- Chester Ross. When Marilla called me in dinner was all ready and
- everybody was at the table. I tried to be as polite and
- dignified as I could be, for I wanted Mrs. Chester Ross to think
- I was a ladylike little girl even if I wasn't pretty. Everything
- went right until I saw Marilla coming with the plum pudding in
- one hand and the pitcher of pudding sauce WARMED UP, in the other.
- Diana, that was a terrible moment. I remembered everything and I
- just stood up in my place and shrieked out `Marilla, you mustn't
- use that pudding sauce. There was a mouse drowned in it. I
- forgot to tell you before.' Oh, Diana, I shall never forget that
- awful moment if I live to be a hundred. Mrs. Chester Ross just
- LOOKED at me and I thought I would sink through the floor with
- mortification. She is such a perfect housekeeper and fancy what
- she must have thought of us. Marilla turned red as fire but she
- never said a word--then. She just carried that sauce and
- pudding out and brought in some strawberry preserves. She even
- offered me some, but I couldn't swallow a mouthful. It was like
- heaping coals of fire on my head. After Mrs. Chester Ross went
- away, Marilla gave me a dreadful scolding. Why, Diana, what is
- the matter?"
-
- Diana had stood up very unsteadily; then she sat down again,
- putting her hands to her head.
-
- "I'm--I'm awful sick," she said, a little thickly. "I--I--must go
- right home."
-
- "Oh, you mustn't dream of going home without your tea," cried
- Anne in distress. "I'll get it right off--I'll go and put the
- tea down this very minute."
-
- "I must go home," repeated Diana, stupidly but determinedly.
-
- "Let me get you a lunch anyhow," implored Anne. "Let me give you
- a bit of fruit cake and some of the cherry preserves. Lie down
- on the sofa for a little while and you'll be better. Where do
- you feel bad?"
-
- "I must go home," said Diana, and that was all she would say. In
- vain Anne pleaded.
-
- "I never heard of company going home without tea," she mourned.
- "Oh, Diana, do you suppose that it's possible you're really
- taking the smallpox? If you are I'll go and nurse you, you can
- depend on that. I'll never forsake you. But I do wish you'd
- stay till after tea. Where do you feel bad?"
-
- "I'm awful dizzy," said Diana.
-
- And indeed, she walked very dizzily. Anne, with tears of
- disappointment in her eyes, got Diana's hat and went with her as
- far as the Barry yard fence. Then she wept all the way back to
- Green Gables, where she sorrowfully put the remainder of the
- raspberry cordial back into the pantry and got tea ready for
- Matthew and Jerry, with all the zest gone out of the performance.
-
- The next day was Sunday and as the rain poured down in torrents
- from dawn till dusk Anne did not stir abroad from Green Gables.
- Monday afternoon Marilla sent her down to Mrs. Lynde's on an
- errand. In a very short space of time Anne came flying back up
- the lane with tears rolling down her cheeks. Into the kitchen
- she dashed and flung herself face downward on the sofa in an
- agony.
-
- "Whatever has gone wrong now, Anne?" queried Marilla in doubt and
- dismay. "I do hope you haven't gone and been saucy to Mrs. Lynde
- again."
-
- No answer from Anne save more tears and stormier sobs!
-
- "Anne Shirley, when I ask you a question I want to be answered.
- Sit right up this very minute and tell me what you are crying
- about."
-
- Anne sat up, tragedy personified.
-
- "Mrs. Lynde was up to see Mrs. Barry today and Mrs. Barry was in
- an awful state," she wailed. "She says that I set Diana DRUNK
- Saturday and sent her home in a disgraceful condition. And she
- says I must be a thoroughly bad, wicked little girl and she's
- never, never going to let Diana play with me again. Oh, Marilla,
- I'm just overcome with woe."
-
- Marilla stared in blank amazement.
-
- "Set Diana drunk!" she said when she found her voice. "Anne are
- you or Mrs. Barry crazy? What on earth did you give her?"
-
- "Not a thing but raspberry cordial," sobbed Anne. "I never
- thought raspberry cordial would set people drunk, Marilla--not
- even if they drank three big tumblerfuls as Diana did. Oh, it
- sounds so--so--like Mrs. Thomas's husband! But I didn't mean to
- set her drunk."
-
- "Drunk fiddlesticks!" said Marilla, marching to the sitting room
- pantry. There on the shelf was a bottle which she at once
- recognized as one containing some of her three-year-old homemade
- currant wine for which she was celebrated in Avonlea, although
- certain of the stricter sort, Mrs. Barry among them, disapproved
- strongly of it. And at the same time Marilla recollected that
- she had put the bottle of raspberry cordial down in the cellar
- instead of in the pantry as she had told Anne.
-
- She went back to the kitchen with the wine bottle in her hand.
- Her face was twitching in spite of herself.
-
- "Anne, you certainly have a genius for getting into trouble. You
- went and gave Diana currant wine instead of raspberry cordial.
- Didn't you know the difference yourself?"
-
- "I never tasted it," said Anne. "I thought it was the cordial.
- I meant to be so--so--hospitable. Diana got awfully sick and had
- to go home. Mrs. Barry told Mrs. Lynde she was simply dead
- drunk. She just laughed silly-like when her mother asked her
- what was the matter and went to sleep and slept for hours. Her
- mother smelled her breath and knew she was drunk. She had a
- fearful headache all day yesterday. Mrs. Barry is so indignant.
- She will never believe but what I did it on purpose."
-
- "I should think she would better punish Diana for being so greedy
- as to drink three glassfuls of anything," said Marilla shortly.
- "Why, three of those big glasses would have made her sick even if
- it had only been cordial. Well, this story will be a nice handle
- for those folks who are so down on me for making currant wine,
- although I haven't made any for three years ever since I found
- out that the minister didn't approve. I just kept that bottle
- for sickness. There, there, child, don't cry. I can't see as
- you were to blame although I'm sorry it happened so."
-
- "I must cry," said Anne. "My heart is broken. The stars in their
- courses fight against me, Marilla. Diana and I are parted forever.
- Oh, Marilla, I little dreamed of this when first we swore our vows
- of friendship."
-
- "Don't be foolish, Anne. Mrs. Barry will think better of it
- when she finds you're not to blame. I suppose she thinks you've
- done it for a silly joke or something of that sort. You'd best
- go up this evening and tell her how it was."
-
- "My courage fails me at the thought of facing Diana's injured
- mother," sighed Anne. "I wish you'd go, Marilla. You're so much
- more dignified than I am. Likely she'd listen to you quicker
- than to me."
-
- "Well, I will," said Marilla, reflecting that it would probably
- be the wiser course. "Don't cry any more, Anne. It will be all
- right."
-
- Marilla had changed her mind about it being all right by the time
- she got back from Orchard Slope. Anne was watching for her
- coming and flew to the porch door to meet her.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, I know by your face that it's been no use," she
- said sorrowfully. "Mrs. Barry won't forgive me?"
-
- "Mrs. Barry indeed!" snapped Marilla. "Of all the unreasonable
- women I ever saw she's the worst. I told her it was all a
- mistake and you weren't to blame, but she just simply didn't
- believe me. And she rubbed it well in about my currant wine and
- how I'd always said it couldn't have the least effect on anybody.
- I just told her plainly that currant wine wasn't meant to be
- drunk three tumblerfuls at a time and that if a child I had to do
- with was so greedy I'd sober her up with a right good spanking."
-
- Marilla whisked into the kitchen, grievously disturbed, leaving a
- very much distracted little soul in the porch behind her.
- Presently Anne stepped out bareheaded into the chill autumn dusk;
- very determinedly and steadily she took her way down through the
- sere clover field over the log bridge and up through the spruce
- grove, lighted by a pale little moon hanging low over the western
- woods. Mrs. Barry, coming to the door in answer to a timid
- knock, found a white-lipped eager-eyed suppliant on the doorstep.
-
- Her face hardened. Mrs. Barry was a woman of strong prejudices
- and dislikes, and her anger was of the cold, sullen sort which is
- always hardest to overcome. To do her justice, she really
- believed Anne had made Diana drunk out of sheer malice prepense,???
- and she was honestly anxious to preserve her little daughter from
- the contamination of further intimacy with such a child.
-
- "What do you want?" she said stiffly.
-
- Anne clasped her hands.
-
- "Oh, Mrs. Barry, please forgive me. I did not mean
- to--to--intoxicate Diana. How could I? Just imagine if you were
- a poor little orphan girl that kind people had adopted and you
- had just one bosom friend in all the world. Do you think you
- would intoxicate her on purpose? I thought it was only raspberry
- cordial. I was firmly convinced it was raspberry cordial. Oh,
- please don't say that you won't let Diana play with me any more.
- If you do you will cover my life with a dark cloud of woe."
-
- This speech which would have softened good Mrs. Lynde's heart in
- a twinkling, had no effect on Mrs. Barry except to irritate her
- still more. She was suspicious of Anne's big words and dramatic
- gestures and imagined that the child was making fun of her. So
- she said, coldly and cruelly:
-
- "I don't think you are a fit little girl for Diana to associate
- with. You'd better go home and behave yourself."
-
- Anne's lips quivered.
-
- "Won't you let me see Diana just once to say farewell?" she
- implored.
-
- "Diana has gone over to Carmody with her father," said Mrs.
- Barry, going in and shutting the door.
-
- Anne went back to Green Gables calm with despair.
-
- "My last hope is gone," she told Marilla. "I went up and saw
- Mrs. Barry myself and she treated me very insultingly. Marilla,
- I do NOT think she is a well-bred woman. There is nothing more
- to do except to pray and I haven't much hope that that'll do much
- good because, Marilla, I do not believe that God Himself can do
- very much with such an obstinate person as Mrs. Barry."
-
- "Anne, you shouldn't say such things" rebuked Marilla, striving
- to overcome that unholy tendency to laughter which she was
- dismayed to find growing upon her. And indeed, when she told the
- whole story to Matthew that night, she did laugh heartily over
- Anne's tribulations.
-
- But when she slipped into the east gable before going to bed and
- found that Anne had cried herself to sleep an unaccustomed
- softness crept into her face.
-
- "Poor little soul," she murmured, lifting a loose curl of hair
- from the child's tear-stained face. Then she bent down and
- kissed the flushed cheek on the pillow.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII
- A New Interest in Life
-
- THE next afternoon Anne, bending over her patchwork at the
- kitchen window, happened to glance out and beheld Diana down by
- the Dryad's Bubble beckoning mysteriously. In a trice Anne was
- out of the house and flying down to the hollow, astonishment and
- hope struggling in her expressive eyes. But the hope faded when
- she saw Diana's dejected countenance.
-
- "Your mother hasn't relented?" she gasped.
-
- Diana shook her head mournfully.
-
- "No; and oh, Anne, she says I'm never to play with you again.
- I've cried and cried and I told her it wasn't your fault, but it
- wasn't any use. I had ever such a time coaxing her to let me
- come down and say good-bye to you. She said I was only to stay
- ten minutes and she's timing me by the clock."
-
- "Ten minutes isn't very long to say an eternal farewell in," said
- Anne tearfully. "Oh, Diana, will you promise faithfully never to
- forget me, the friend of your youth, no matter what dearer
- friends may caress thee?"
-
- "Indeed I will," sobbed Diana, "and I'll never have another bosom
- friend--I don't want to have. I couldn't love anybody as I love
- you."
-
- "Oh, Diana," cried Anne, clasping her hands, "do you LOVE me?"
-
- "Why, of course I do. Didn't you know that?"
-
- "No." Anne drew a long breath. "I thought you LIKED me of course
- but I never hoped you LOVED me. Why, Diana, I didn't think
- anybody could love me. Nobody ever has loved me since I can
- remember. Oh, this is wonderful! It's a ray of light which will
- forever shine on the darkness of a path severed from thee, Diana.
- Oh, just say it once again."
-
- "I love you devotedly, Anne," said Diana stanchly, "and I always
- will, you may be sure of that."
-
- "And I will always love thee, Diana," said Anne, solemnly
- extending her hand. "In the years to come thy memory will shine
- like a star over my lonely life, as that last story we read
- together says. Diana, wilt thou give me a lock of thy jet-black
- tresses in parting to treasure forevermore?"
-
- "Have you got anything to cut it with?" queried Diana, wiping
- away the tears which Anne's affecting accents had caused to flow
- afresh, and returning to practicalities.
-
- "Yes. I've got my patchwork scissors in my apron pocket
- fortunately," said Anne. She solemnly clipped one of Diana's
- curls. "Fare thee well, my beloved friend. Henceforth we must
- be as strangers though living side by side. But my heart will
- ever be faithful to thee."
-
- Anne stood and watched Diana out of sight, mournfully waving her
- hand to the latter whenever she turned to look back. Then she
- returned to the house, not a little consoled for the time being
- by this romantic parting.
-
- "It is all over," she informed Marilla. "I shall never have
- another friend. I'm really worse off than ever before, for I
- haven't Katie Maurice and Violetta now. And even if I had it
- wouldn't be the same. Somehow, little dream girls are not
- satisfying after a real friend. Diana and I had such an
- affecting farewell down by the spring. It will be sacred in my
- memory forever. I used the most pathetic language I could think
- of and said `thou' and `thee.' `Thou' and `thee' seem so much
- more romantic than `you.' Diana gave me a lock of her hair and
- I'm going to sew it up in a little bag and wear it around my neck
- all my life. Please see that it is buried with me, for I don't
- believe I'll live very long. Perhaps when she sees me lying cold
- and dead before her Mrs. Barry may feel remorse for what she has
- done and will let Diana come to my funeral."
-
- "I don't think there is much fear of your dying of grief as long
- as you can talk, Anne," said Marilla unsympathetically.
-
- The following Monday Anne surprised Marilla by coming down from
- her room with her basket of books on her arm and hip??? lips primmed
- up into a line of determination.
-
- "I'm going back to school," she announced. "That is all there is
- left in life for me, now that my friend has been ruthlessly torn
- from me. In school I can look at her and muse over days
- departed."
-
- "You'd better muse over your lessons and sums," said Marilla,
- concealing her delight at this development of the situation. "If
- you're going back to school I hope we'll hear no more of breaking
- slates over people's heads and such carryings on. Behave
- yourself and do just what your teacher tells you."
-
- "I'll try to be a model pupil," agreed Anne dolefully. "There
- won't be much fun in it, I expect. Mr. Phillips said Minnie
- Andrews was a model pupil and there isn't a spark of imagination
- or life in her. She is just dull and poky and never seems to
- have a good time. But I feel so depressed that perhaps it will
- come easy to me now. I'm going round by the road. I couldn't
- bear to go by the Birch Path all alone. I should weep bitter
- tears if I did."
-
- Anne was welcomed back to school with open arms. Her imagination
- had been sorely missed in games, her voice in the singing and her
- dramatic ability in the perusal aloud of books at dinner hour.
- Ruby Gillis smuggled three blue plums over to her during
- testament reading; Ella May MacPherson gave her an enormous
- yellow pansy cut from the covers of a floral catalogue--a species
- of desk decoration much prized in Avonlea school. Sophia Sloane
- offered to teach her a perfectly elegant new pattern of knit
- lace, so nice for trimming aprons. Katie Boulter gave her a
- perfume bottle to keep slate water in, and Julia Bell copied
- carefully on a piece of pale pink paper scalloped on the edges
- the following effusion:
-
-
- When twilight drops her curtain down
- And pins it with a star
- Remember that you have a friend
- Though she may wander far.
-
-
- "It's so nice to be appreciated," sighed Anne rapturously to
- Marilla that night.
-
- The girls were not the only scholars who "appreciated" her. When
- Anne went to her seat after dinner hour--she had been told by Mr.
- Phillips to sit with the model Minnie Andrews--she found on her
- desk a big luscious "strawberry apple." Anne caught it up all
- ready to take a bite when she remembered that the only place in
- Avonlea where strawberry apples grew was in the old Blythe
- orchard on the other side of the Lake of Shining Waters. Anne
- dropped the apple as if it were a red-hot coal and ostentatiously
- wiped her fingers on her handkerchief. The apple lay untouched
- on her desk until the next morning, when little Timothy Andrews,
- who swept the school and kindled the fire, annexed it as one of
- his perquisites. Charlie Sloane's slate pencil, gorgeously
- bedizened with striped red and yellow paper, costing two cents
- where ordinary pencils cost only one, which he sent up to her
- after dinner hour, met with a more favorable reception. Anne was
- graciously pleased to accept it and rewarded the donor with a
- smile which exalted that infatuated youth straightway into the
- seventh heaven of delight and caused him to make such fearful
- errors in his dictation that Mr. Phillips kept him in after
- school to rewrite it.
-
- But as,
-
-
- The Caesar's pageant shorn of Brutus' bust
- Did but of Rome's best son remind her more.
-
-
- so the marked absence of any tribute or recognition from Diana
- Barry who was sitting with Gertie Pye embittered Anne's little
- triumph.
-
- "Diana might just have smiled at me once, I think," she mourned
- to Marilla that night. But the next morning a note most
- fearfully and wonderfully twisted and folded, and a small parcel
- were passed across to Anne.
-
- Dear Anne (ran the former)
-
-
- Mother says I'm not to play with you or talk to you even in
- school. It isn't my fault and don't be cross at me, because I
- love you as much as ever. I miss you awfully to tell all my
- secrets to and I don't like Gertie Pye one bit. I made you one
- of the new bookmarkers out of red tissue paper. They are awfully
- fashionable now and only three girls in school know how to make
- them. When you look at it remember
- Your true friend
- Diana Barry.
-
-
- Anne read the note, kissed the bookmark, and dispatched a prompt
- reply back to the other side of the school.
-
-
- My own darling Diana:--
-
-
- Of course I am not cross at you because you have to obey your
- mother. Our spirits can commune. I shall keep your lovely
- present forever. Minnie Andrews is a very nice little
- girl--although she has no imagination--but after having been
- Diana's busum friend I cannot be Minnie's. Please excuse
- mistakes because my spelling isn't very good yet, although much
- improoved.
- Yours until death us do part
- Anne or Cordelia Shirley.
-
-
- P.S. I shall sleep with your letter under my pillow tonight.
- A. OR C.S.
-
-
- Marilla pessimistically expected more trouble since Anne had
- again begun to go to school. But none developed. Perhaps Anne
- caught something of the "model" spirit from Minnie Andrews; at
- least she got on very well with Mr. Phillips thenceforth. She
- flung herself into her studies heart and soul, determined not to
- be outdone in any class by Gilbert Blythe. The rivalry between
- them was soon apparent; it was entirely good natured on Gilbert's
- side; but it is much to be feared that the same thing cannot be
- said of Anne, who had certainly an unpraiseworthy tenacity for
- holding grudges. She was as intense in her hatreds as in her
- loves. She would not stoop to admit that she meant to rival
- Gilbert in schoolwork, because that would have been to
- acknowledge his existence which Anne persistently ignored; but
- the rivalry was there and honors fluctuated between them. Now
- Gilbert was head of the spelling class; now Anne, with a toss of
- her long red braids, spelled him down. One morning Gilbert had
- all his sums done correctly and had his name written on the
- blackboard on the roll of honor; the next morning Anne, having
- wrestled wildly with decimals the entire evening before, would be
- first. One awful day they were ties and their names were written
- up together. It was almost as bad as a take-notice and Anne's
- mortification was as evident as Gilbert's satisfaction. When the
- written examinations at the end of each month were held the
- suspense was terrible. The first month Gilbert came out three
- marks ahead. The second Anne beat him by five. But her triumph
- was marred by the fact that Gilbert congratulated her heartily
- before the whole school. It would have been ever so much sweeter
- to her if he had felt the sting of his defeat.
-
- Mr. Phillips might not be a very good teacher; but a pupil so
- inflexibly determined on learning as Anne was could hardly escape
- making progress under any kind of teacher. By the end of the
- term Anne and Gilbert were both promoted into the fifth class and
- allowed to begin studying the elements of "the branches"--by
- which Latin, geometry, French, and algebra were meant. In
- geometry Anne met her Waterloo.
-
- "It's perfectly awful stuff, Marilla," she groaned. "I'm sure
- I'll never be able to make head or tail of it. There is no scope
- for imagination in it at all. Mr. Phillips says I'm the worst
- dunce he ever saw at it. And Gil--I mean some of the others are
- so smart at it. It is extremely mortifying, Marilla.
-
- Even Diana gets along better than I do. But I don't mind being
- beaten by Diana. Even although we meet as strangers now I still
- love her with an INEXTINGUISHABLE love. It makes me very sad at
- times to think about her. But really, Marilla, one can't stay
- sad very long in such an interesting world, can one?"
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
- Anne to the Rescue
-
- ALL things great are wound up with all things little. At first
- glance it might not seem that the decision of a certain Canadian
- Premier to include Prince Edward Island in a political tour could
- have much or anything to do with the fortunes of little Anne
- Shirley at Green Gables. But it had.
-
- It was a January the Premier came, to address his loyal
- supporters and such of his nonsupporters as chose to be present
- at the monster mass meeting held in Charlottetown. Most of the
- Avonlea people were on Premier's side of politics; hence on the
- night of the meeting nearly all the men and a goodly proportion
- of the women had gone to town thirty miles away. Mrs. Rachel
- Lynde had gone too. Mrs. Rachel Lynde was a red-hot politician
- and couldn't have believed that the political rally could be
- carried through without her, although she was on the opposite
- side of politics. So she went to town and took her
- husband--Thomas would be useful in looking after the horse--and
- Marilla Cuthbert with her. Marilla had a sneaking interest in
- politics herself, and as she thought it might be her only chance
- to see a real live Premier, she promptly took it, leaving Anne
- and Matthew to keep house until her return the following day.
-
- Hence, while Marilla and Mrs. Rachel were enjoying themselves
- hugely at the mass meeting, Anne and Matthew had the cheerful
- kitchen at Green Gables all to themselves. A bright fire was
- glowing in the old-fashioned Waterloo stove and blue-white frost
- crystals were shining on the windowpanes. Matthew nodded over a
- FARMERS' ADVOCATE on the sofa and Anne at the table studied her
- lessons with grim determination, despite sundry wistful glances
- at the clock shelf, where lay a new book that Jane Andrews had
- lent her that day. Jane had assured her that it was warranted to
- produce any number of thrills, or words to that effect, and
- Anne's fingers tingled to reach out for it. But that would mean
- Gilbert Blythe's triumph on the morrow. Anne turned her back on
- the clock shelf and tried to imagine it wasn't there.
-
- "Matthew, did you ever study geometry when you went to school?"
-
- "Well now, no, I didn't," said Matthew, coming out of his doze
- with a start.
-
- "I wish you had," sighed Anne, "because then you'd be able to
- sympathize with me. You can't sympathize properly if you've
- never studied it. It is casting a cloud over my whole life. I'm
- such a dunce at it, Matthew."
-
- "Well now, I dunno," said Matthew soothingly. "I guess you're
- all right at anything. Mr. Phillips told me last week in
- Blair's store at Carmody that you was the smartest scholar in
- school and was making rapid progress. `Rapid progress' was his
- very words. There's them as runs down Teddy Phillips and says he
- ain't much of a teacher, but I guess he's all right."
-
- Matthew would have thought anyone who praised Anne was "all
- right."
-
- "I'm sure I'd get on better with geometry if only he wouldn't
- change the letters," complained Anne. "I learn the proposition
- off by heart and then he draws it on the blackboard and puts
- different letters from what are in the book and I get all mixed
- up. I don't think a teacher should take such a mean advantage,
- do you? We're studying agriculture now and I've found out at
- last what makes the roads red. It's a great comfort. I wonder
- how Marilla and Mrs. Lynde are enjoying themselves. Mrs. Lynde
- says Canada is going to the dogs the way things are being run at
- Ottawa and that it's an awful warning to the electors. She says
- if women were allowed to vote we would soon see a blessed change.
- What way do you vote, Matthew?"
-
- "Conservative," said Matthew promptly. To vote Conservative was
- part of Matthew's religion.
-
- "Then I'm Conservative too," said Anne decidedly. "I'm glad
- because Gil--because some of the boys in school are Grits. I
- guess Mr. Phillips is a Grit too because Prissy Andrews's father
- is one, and Ruby Gillis says that when a man is courting he
- always has to agree with the girl's mother in religion and her
- father in politics. Is that true, Matthew?"
-
- "Well now, I dunno," said Matthew.
-
- "Did you ever go courting, Matthew?"
-
- "Well now, no, I dunno's I ever did," said Matthew, who had
- certainly never thought of such a thing in his whole existence.
-
- Anne reflected with her chin in her hands.
-
- "It must be rather interesting, don't you think, Matthew? Ruby
- Gillis says when she grows up she's going to have ever so many
- beaus on the string and have them all crazy about her; but I
- think that would be too exciting. I'd rather have just one in
- his right mind. But Ruby Gillis knows a great deal about such
- matters because she has so many big sisters, and Mrs. Lynde says
- the Gillis girls have gone off like hot cakes. Mr. Phillips
- goes up to see Prissy Andrews nearly every evening. He says it
- is to help her with her lessons but Miranda Sloane is studying
- for Queen's too, and I should think she needed help a lot more
- than Prissy because she's ever so much stupider, but he never
- goes to help her in the evenings at all. There are a great many
- things in this world that I can't understand very well, Matthew."
-
- "Well now, I dunno as I comprehend them all myself," acknowledged Matthew.
-
- "Well, I suppose I must finish up my lessons. I won't allow
- myself to open that new book Jane lent me until I'm through. But
- it's a terrible temptation, Matthew. Even when I turn my back on
- it I can see it there just as plain. Jane said she cried herself
- sick over it. I love a book that makes me cry. But I think I'll
- carry that book into the sitting room and lock it in the jam
- closet and give you the key. And you must NOT give it to me,
- Matthew, until my lessons are done, not even if I implore you on
- my bended knees. It's all very well to say resist temptation,
- but it's ever so much easier to resist it if you can't get the
- key. And then shall I run down the cellar and get some russets,
- Matthew? Wouldn't you like some russets?"
-
- "Well now, I dunno but what I would," said Matthew, who never ate
- russets but knew Anne's weakness for them.
-
- Just as Anne emerged triumphantly from the cellar with her
- plateful of russets came the sound of flying footsteps on the icy
- board walk outside and the next moment the kitchen door was flung
- open and in rushed Diana Barry, white faced and breathless, with
- a shawl wrapped hastily around her head. Anne promptly let go of
- her candle and plate in her surprise, and plate, candle, and
- apples crashed together down the cellar ladder and were found at
- the bottom embedded in melted grease, the next day, by Marilla,
- who gathered them up and thanked mercy the house hadn't been set
- on fire.
-
- "Whatever is the matter, Diana?" cried Anne. "Has your mother
- relented at last?"
-
- "Oh, Anne, do come quick," implored Diana nervously. "Minnie May
- is awful sick--she's got croup. Young Mary Joe says--and Father
- and Mother are away to town and there's nobody to go for the
- doctor. Minnie May is awful bad and Young Mary Joe doesn't know
- what to do--and oh, Anne, I'm so scared!"
-
- Matthew, without a word, reached out for cap and coat, slipped
- past Diana and away into the darkness of the yard.
-
- "He's gone to harness the sorrel mare to go to Carmody for the
- doctor," said Anne, who was hurrying on hood and jacket. "I know
- it as well as if he'd said so. Matthew and I are such kindred
- spirits I can read his thoughts without words at all."
-
- "I don't believe he'll find the doctor at Carmody," sobbed Diana.
- "I know that Dr. Blair went to town and I guess Dr. Spencer
- would go too. Young Mary Joe never saw anybody with croup and
- Mrs. Lynde is away. Oh, Anne!"
-
- "Don't cry, Di," said Anne cheerily. "I know exactly what to do
- for croup. You forget that Mrs. Hammond had twins three times.
- When you look after three pairs of twins you naturally get a lot
- of experience. They all had croup regularly. Just wait till I
- get the ipecac bottle--you mayn't have any at your house. Come
- on now."
-
- The two little girls hastened out hand in hand and hurried
- through Lover's Lane and across the crusted field beyond, for the
- snow was too deep to go by the shorter wood way. Anne, although
- sincerely sorry for Minnie May, was far from being insensible to
- the romance of the situation and to the sweetness of once more
- sharing that romance with a kindred spirit.
-
- The night was clear and frosty, all ebony of shadow and silver of
- snowy slope; big stars were shining over the silent fields; here
- and there the dark pointed firs stood up with snow powdering
- their branches and the wind whistling through them. Anne thought
- it was truly delightful to go skimming through all this mystery
- and loveliness with your bosom friend who had been so long
- estranged.
-
- Minnie May, aged three, was really very sick. She lay on the
- kitchen sofa feverish and restless, while her hoarse breathing
- could be heard all over the house. Young Mary Joe, a buxom,
- broad-faced French girl from the creek, whom Mrs. Barry had
- engaged to stay with the children during her absence, was
- helpless and bewildered, quite incapable of thinking what to do,
- or doing it if she thought of it.
-
- Anne went to work with skill and promptness.
-
- "Minnie May has croup all right; she's pretty bad, but I've seen
- them worse. First we must have lots of hot water. I declare,
- Diana, there isn't more than a cupful in the kettle! There, I've
- filled it up, and, Mary Joe, you may put some wood in the stove.
- I don't want to hurt your feelings but it seems to me you might
- have thought of this before if you'd any imagination. Now, I'll
- undress Minnie May and put her to bed and you try to find some
- soft flannel cloths, Diana. I'm going to give her a dose of
- ipecac first of all."
-
- Minnie May did not take kindly to the ipecac but Anne had not
- brought up three pairs of twins for nothing. Down that ipecac
- went, not only once, but many times during the long, anxious
- night when the two little girls worked patiently over the
- suffering Minnie May, and Young Mary Joe, honestly anxious to do
- all she could, kept up a roaring fire and heated more water than
- would have been needed for a hospital of croupy babies.
-
- It was three o'clock when Matthew came with a doctor, for he had
- been obliged to go all the way to Spencervale for one. But the
- pressing need for assistance was past. Minnie May was much
- better and was sleeping soundly.
-
- "I was awfully near giving up in despair," explained Anne. "She
- got worse and worse until she was sicker than ever the Hammond
- twins were, even the last pair. I actually thought she was going
- to choke to death. I gave her every drop of ipecac in that
- bottle and when the last dose went down I said to myself--not to
- Diana or Young Mary Joe, because I didn't want to worry them any
- more than they were worried, but I had to say it to myself just
- to relieve my feelings--`This is the last lingering hope and I
- fear, tis a vain one.' But in about three minutes she coughed up
- the phlegm and began to get better right away. You must just
- imagine my relief, doctor, because I can't express it in words.
- You know there are some things that cannot be expressed in words."
-
- "Yes, I know," nodded the doctor. He looked at Anne as if he
- were thinking some things about her that couldn't be expressed in
- words. Later on, however, he expressed them to Mr. and Mrs. Barry.
-
- "That little redheaded girl they have over at Cuthbert's is as
- smart as they make 'em. I tell you she saved that baby's life,
- for it would have been too late by the time I got there. She
- seems to have a skill and presence of mind perfectly wonderful in
- a child of her age. I never saw anything like the eyes of her
- when she was explaining the case to me."
-
- Anne had gone home in the wonderful, white-frosted winter
- morning, heavy eyed from loss of sleep, but still talking
- unweariedly to Matthew as they crossed the long white field and
- walked under the glittering fairy arch of the Lover's Lane
- maples.
-
- "Oh, Matthew, isn't it a wonderful morning? The world looks like
- something God had just imagined for His own pleasure, doesn't it?
- Those trees look as if I could blow them away with a
- breath--pouf! I'm so glad I live in a world where there are white
- frosts, aren't you? And I'm so glad Mrs. Hammond had three pairs
- of twins after all. If she hadn't I mightn't have known what to
- do for Minnie May. I'm real sorry I was ever cross with Mrs.
- Hammond for having twins. But, oh, Matthew, I'm so sleepy. I
- can't go to school. I just know I couldn't keep my eyes open and
- I'd be so stupid. But l hate to stay home, for Gil--some of the
- others will get head of the class, and it's so hard to get up
- again--although of course the harder it is the more satisfaction
- you have when you do get up, haven't you?"
-
- "Well now, I guess you'll manage all right," said Matthew,
- looking at Anne's white little face and the dark shadows under
- her eyes. "You just go right to bed and have a good sleep. I'll
- do all the chores."
-
- Anne accordingly went to bed and slept so long and soundly that
- it was well on in the white and rosy winter afternoon when she
- awoke and descended to the kitchen where Marilla, who had arrived
- home in the meantime, was sitting knitting.
-
- "Oh, did you see the Premier?" exclaimed Anne at once. "What did
- he look like Marilla?"
-
- "Well, he never got to be Premier on account of his looks," said
- Marilla. "Such a nose as that man had! But he can speak. I was
- proud of being a Conservative. Rachel Lynde, of course, being a
- Liberal, had no use for him. Your dinner is in the oven, Anne,
- and you can get yourself some blue plum preserve out of the
- pantry. I guess you're hungry. Matthew has been telling me
- about last night. I must say it was fortunate you knew what to
- do. I wouldn't have had any idea myself, for I never saw a case
- of croup. There now, never mind talking till you've had your
- dinner. I can tell by the look of you that you're just full
- up with speeches, but they'll keep."
-
- Marilla had something to tell Anne, but she did not tell it just
- then for she knew if she did Anne's consequent excitement would
- lift her clear out of the region of such material matters as
- appetite or dinner. Not until Anne had finished her saucer of
- blue plums did Marilla say:
-
- "Mrs. Barry was here this afternoon, Anne. She wanted to see
- you, but I wouldn't wake you up. She says you saved Minnie May's
- life, and she is very sorry she acted as she did in that affair
- of the currant wine. She says she knows now you didn't mean to
- set Diana drunk, and she hopes you'll forgive her and be good
- friends with Diana again. You're to go over this evening if you
- like for Diana can't stir outside the door on account of a bad
- cold she caught last night. Now, Anne Shirley, for pity's sake
- don't fly up into the air."
-
- The warning seemed not unnecessary, so uplifted and aerial was
- Anne's expression and attitude as she sprang to her feet, her
- face irradiated with the flame of her spirit.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, can I go right now--without washing my dishes?
- I'll wash them when I come back, but I cannot tie myself down to
- anything so unromantic as dishwashing at this thrilling moment."
-
- "Yes, yes, run along," said Marilla indulgently. "Anne
- Shirley--are you crazy? Come back this instant and put something
- on you. I might as well call to the wind. She's gone without a
- cap or wrap. Look at her tearing through the orchard with her
- hair streaming. It'll be a mercy if she doesn't catch her death
- of cold."
-
- Anne came dancing home in the purple winter twilight across the
- snowy places. Afar in the southwest was the great shimmering,
- pearl-like sparkle of an evening star in a sky that was pale
- golden and ethereal rose over gleaming white spaces and dark
- glens of spruce. The tinkles of sleigh bells among the snowy
- hills came like elfin chimes through the frosty air, but their
- music was not sweeter than the song in Anne's heart and on her
- lips.
-
- "You see before you a perfectly happy person, Marilla," she
- announced. "I'm perfectly happy--yes, in spite of my red hair.
- Just at present I have a soul above red hair. Mrs. Barry kissed
- me and cried and said she was so sorry and she could never repay
- me. I felt fearfully embarrassed, Marilla, but I just said as
- politely as I could, `I have no hard feelings for you, Mrs.
- Barry. I assure you once for all that I did not mean to
- intoxicate Diana and henceforth I shall cover the past with the
- mantle of oblivion.' That was a pretty dignified way of speaking
- wasn't it, Marilla?
-
- I felt that I was heaping coals of fire on Mrs. Barry's head.
- And Diana and I had a lovely afternoon. Diana showed me a new
- fancy crochet stitch her aunt over at Carmody taught her. Not a
- soul in Avonlea knows it but us, and we pledged a solemn vow
- never to reveal it to anyone else. Diana gave me a beautiful
- card with a wreath of roses on it and a verse of poetry:
-
-
- "If you love me as I love you
- Nothing but death can part us two.
-
-
- And that is true, Marilla. We're going to ask Mr. Phillips to
- let us sit together in school again, and Gertie Pye can go with
- Minnie Andrews. We had an elegant tea. Mrs. Barry had the very
- best china set out, Marilla, just as if I was real company. I
- can't tell you what a thrill it gave me. Nobody ever used their
- very best china on my account before. And we had fruit cake and
- pound cake and doughnuts and two kinds of preserves, Marilla.
- And Mrs. Barry asked me if I took tea and said `Pa, why don't
- you pass the biscuits to Anne?' It must be lovely to be grown up,
- Marilla, when just being treated as if you were is so nice."
-
- "I don't know about that," said Marilla, with a brief sigh.
-
- "Well, anyway, when I am grown up," said Anne decidedly, "I'm
- always going to talk to little girls as if they were too, and
- I'll never laugh when they use big words. I know from sorrowful
- experience how that hurts one's feelings. After tea Diana and I
- made taffy. The taffy wasn't very good, I suppose because
- neither Diana nor I had ever made any before. Diana left me to
- stir it while she buttered the plates and I forgot and let it
- burn; and then when we set it out on the platform to cool the cat
- walked over one plate and that had to be thrown away. But the
- making of it was splendid fun. Then when I came home Mrs. Barry
- asked me to come over as often as I could and Diana stood at the
- window and threw kisses to me all the way down to Lover's Lane.
- I assure you, Marilla, that I feel like praying tonight and I'm
- going to think out a special brand-new prayer in honor of the
- occasion."
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX
-
- A Concert a Catastrophe and a Confession
-
- "MARILLA, can I go over to see Diana just for a minute?" asked
- Anne, running breathlessly down from the east gable one February
- evening.
-
- "I don't see what you want to be traipsing about after dark for,"
- said Marilla shortly. "You and Diana walked home from school
- together and then stood down there in the snow for half an hour
- more, your tongues going the whole blessed time, clickety-clack.
- So I don't think you're very badly off to see her again."
-
- "But she wants to see me," pleaded Anne. "She has something very
- important to tell me."
-
- "How do you know she has?"
-
- "Because she just signaled to me from her window. We have
- arranged a way to signal with our candles and cardboard. We set
- the candle on the window sill and make flashes by passing the
- cardboard back and forth. So many flashes mean a certain thing.
- It was my idea, Marilla."
-
- "I'll warrant you it was," said Marilla emphatically. "And the
- next thing you'll be setting fire to the curtains with your
- signaling nonsense."
-
- "Oh, we're very careful, Marilla. And it's so interesting. Two
- flashes mean, `Are you there?' Three mean `yes' and four `no.'
- Five mean, `Come over as soon as possible, because I have
- something important to reveal.' Diana has just signaled five
- flashes, and I'm really suffering to know what it is."
-
- "Well, you needn't suffer any longer," said Marilla
- sarcastically. "You can go, but you're to be back here in just
- ten minutes, remember that."
-
- Anne did remember it and was back in the stipulated time,
- although probably no mortal will ever know just what it cost her
- to confine the discussion of Diana's important communication
- within the limits of ten minutes. But at least she had made good
- use of them.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, what do you think? You know tomorrow is Diana's
- birthday. Well, her mother told her she could ask me to go home
- with her from school and stay all night with her. And her
- cousins are coming over from Newbridge in a big pung sleigh to
- go to the Debating Club concert at the hall tomorrow night. And
- they are going to take Diana and me to the concert--if you'll let
- me go, that is. You will, won't you, Marilla? Oh, I feel so
- excited."
-
- "You can calm down then, because you're not going. You're better
- at home in your own bed, and as for that club concert, it's all
- nonsense, and little girls should not be allowed to go out to
- such places at all."
-
- "I'm sure the Debating Club is a most respectable affair,"
- pleaded Anne.
-
- "I'm not saying it isn't. But you're not going to begin gadding
- about to concerts and staying out all hours of the night. Pretty
- doings for children. I'm surprised at Mrs. Barry's letting
- Diana go."
-
- "But it's such a very special occasion," mourned Anne, on the
- verge of tears. "Diana has only one birthday in a year. It
- isn't as if birthdays were common things, Marilla. Prissy
- Andrews is going to recite `Curfew Must Not Ring Tonight.' That
- is such a good moral piece, Marilla, I'm sure it would do me lots
- of good to hear it. And the choir are going to sing four lovely
- pathetic songs that are pretty near as good as hymns. And oh,
- Marilla, the minister is going to take part; yes, indeed,
- he is; he's going to give an address. That will be just about
- the same thing as a sermon. Please, mayn't I go, Marilla?"
-
- "You heard what I said, Anne, didn't you? Take off your boots
- now and go to bed. It's past eight."
-
- "There's just one more thing, Marilla," said Anne, with the air
- of producing the last shot in her locker. "Mrs. Barry told
- Diana that we might sleep in the spare-room bed. Think of the
- honor of your little Anne being put in the spare-room bed."
-
- "It's an honor you'll have to get along without. Go to bed,
- Anne, and don't let me hear another word out of you."
-
- When Anne, with tears rolling over her cheeks, had gone
- sorrowfully upstairs, Matthew, who had been apparently sound
- asleep on the lounge during the whole dialogue, opened his eyes
- and said decidedly:
-
- "Well now, Marilla, I think you ought to let Anne go."
-
- "I don't then," retorted Marilla. "Who's bringing this child up,
- Matthew, you or me?"
-
- "Well now, you," admitted Matthew.
-
- "Don't interfere then."
-
- "Well now, I ain't interfering. It ain't interfering to have
- your own opinion. And my opinion is that you ought to let Anne
- go."
-
- "You'd think I ought to let Anne go to the moon if she took the
- notion, I've no doubt" was Marilla's amiable rejoinder. "I might
- have let her spend the night with Diana, if that was all. But I
- don't approve of this concert plan. She'd go there and catch
- cold like as not, and have her head filled up with nonsense and
- excitement. It would unsettle her for a week. I understand that
- child's disposition and what's good for it better than you,
- Matthew."
-
- "I think you ought to let Anne go," repeated Matthew firmly.
- Argument was not his strong point, but holding fast to his
- opinion certainly was. Marilla gave a gasp of helplessness and
- took refuge in silence. The next morning, when Anne was washing
- the breakfast dishes in the pantry, Matthew paused on his way out
- to the barn to say to Marilla again:
-
- "I think you ought to let Anne go, Marilla."
-
- For a moment Marilla looked things not lawful to be uttered.
- Then she yielded to the inevitable and said tartly:
-
- "Very well, she can go, since nothing else'll please you."
-
- Anne flew out of the pantry, dripping dishcloth in hand.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, Marilla, say those blessed words again."
-
- "I guess once is enough to say them. This is Matthew's doings
- and I wash my hands of it. If you catch pneumonia sleeping in a
- strange bed or coming out of that hot hall in the middle of the
- night, don't blame me, blame Matthew. Anne Shirley, you're
- dripping greasy water all over the floor. I never saw such a
- careless child."
-
- "Oh, I know I'm a great trial to you, Marilla," said Anne
- repentantly. "I make so many mistakes. But then just think of
- all the mistakes I don't make, although I might. I'll get some
- sand and scrub up the spots before I go to school. Oh, Marilla,
- my heart was just set on going to that concert. I never was to a
- concert in my life, and when the other girls talk about them in
- school I feel so out of it. You didn't know just how I felt
- about it, but you see Matthew did. Matthew understands me, and
- it's so nice to be understood, Marilla."
-
- Anne was too excited to do herself justice as to lessons that
- morning in school. Gilbert Blythe spelled her down in class and
- left her clear out of sight in mental arithmetic. Anne's
- consequent humiliation was less than it might have been, however,
- in view of the concert and the spare-room bed. She and Diana
- talked so constantly about it all day that with a stricter
- teacher than Mr. Phillips dire disgrace must inevitably have
- been their portion.
-
- Anne felt that she could not have borne it if she had not been
- going to the concert, for nothing else was discussed that day in
- school. The Avonlea Debating Club, which met fortnightly all
- winter, had had several smaller free entertainments; but this was
- to be a big affair, admission ten cents, in aid of the library.
- The Avonlea young people had been practicing for weeks, and all
- the scholars were especially interested in it by reason of older
- brothers and sisters who were going to take part. Everybody in
- school over nine years of age expected to go, except Carrie
- Sloane, whose father shared Marilla's opinions about small girls
- going out to night concerts. Carrie Sloane cried into her
- grammar all the afternoon and felt that life was not worth
- living.
-
- For Anne the real excitement began with the dismissal of school
- and increased therefrom in crescendo until it reached to a crash
- of positive ecstasy in the concert itself. They had a "perfectly
- elegant tea;" and then came the delicious occupation of dressing
- in Diana's little room upstairs. Diana did Anne's front hair in
- the new pompadour style and Anne tied Diana's bows with the
- especial knack she possessed; and they experimented with at least
- half a dozen different ways of arranging their back hair. At
- last they were ready, cheeks scarlet and eyes glowing with
- excitement.
-
- True, Anne could not help a little pang when she contrasted her
- plain black tam and shapeless, tight-sleeved, homemade gray-cloth
- coat with Diana's jaunty fur cap and smart little jacket. But
- she remembered in time that she had an imagination and could use
- it.
-
- Then Diana's cousins, the Murrays from Newbridge, came; they all
- crowded into the big pung sleigh, among straw and furry robes.
- Anne reveled in the drive to the hall, slipping along over the
- satin-smooth roads with the snow crisping under the runners.
- There was a magnificent sunset, and the snowy hills and deep-blue
- water of the St. Lawrence Gulf seemed to rim??? in the splendor
- like a huge bowl of pearl and sapphire brimmed with wine and
- fire. Tinkles of sleigh bells and distant laughter, that seemed
- like the mirth of wood elves, came from every quarter.
-
- "Oh, Diana," breathed Anne, squeezing Diana's mittened hand under
- the fur robe, "isn't it all like a beautiful dream? Do I really
- look the same as usual? I feel so different that it seems to me
- it must show in my looks."
-
- "You look awfully nice," said Diana, who having just received a
- compliment from one of her cousins, felt that she ought to pass
- it on. "You've got the loveliest color."
-
- The program that night was a series of "thrills" for at least one
- listener in the audience, and, as Anne assured Diana, every
- succeeding thrill was thrillier than the last. When Prissy
- Andrews, attired in a new pink-silk waist with a string of pearls
- about her smooth white throat and real carnations in her
- hair--rumor whispered that the master had sent all the way to
- town for them for her--"climbed the slimy ladder, dark without
- one ray of light," Anne shivered in luxurious sympathy; when the
- choir sang "Far Above the Gentle Daisies" Anne gazed at the
- ceiling as if it were frescoed with angels; when Sam Sloane
- proceeded to explain and illustrate "How Sockery Set a Hen" Anne
- laughed until people sitting near her laughed too, more out of
- sympathy with her than with amusement at a selection that was
- rather threadbare even in Avonlea; and when Mr. Phillips gave
- Mark Antony's oration over the dead body of Caesar in the most
- heartstirring tones--looking at Prissy Andrews at the end of
- every sentence--Anne felt that she could rise and mutiny on the
- spot if but one Roman citizen led the way.
-
- Only one number on the program failed to interest her. When
- Gilbert Blythe recited "Bingen on the Rhine" Anne picked up Rhoda
- Murray's library book and read it until he had finished, when she
- sat rigidly stiff and motionless while Diana clapped her hands
- until they tingled.
-
- It was eleven when they got home, sated with dissipation, but
- with the exceeding sweet pleasure of talking it all over still to
- come. Everybody seemed asleep and the house was dark and silent.
- Anne and Diana tiptoed into the parlor, a long narrow room out of
- which the spare room opened. It was pleasantly warm and dimly
- lighted by the embers of a fire in the grate.
-
- "Let's undress here," said Diana. "It's so nice and warm."
-
- "Hasn't it been a delightful time?" sighed Anne rapturously. "It
- must be splendid to get up and recite there. Do you suppose we
- will ever be asked to do it, Diana?"
-
- "Yes, of course, someday. They're always wanting the big
- scholars to recite. Gilbert Blythe does often and he's only two
- years older than us. Oh, Anne, how could you pretend not to
- listen to him? When he came to the line,
-
-
- "THERE'S ANOTHER, not A SISTER,
-
-
- he looked right down at you."
-
- "Diana," said Anne with dignity, "you are my bosom friend, but I
- cannot allow even you to speak to me of that person. Are you ready
- for bed? Let's run a race and see who'll get to the bed first."
-
- The suggestion appealed to Diana. The two little white-clad figures
- flew down the long room, through the spare-room door, and bounded on
- the bed at the same moment. And then--something--moved beneath them,
- there was a gasp and a cry--and somebody said in muffled accents:
-
- "Merciful goodness!"
-
- Anne and Diana were never able to tell just how they got off that
- bed and out of the room. They only knew that after one frantic
- rush they found themselves tiptoeing shiveringly upstairs.
-
- "Oh, who was it--WHAT was it?" whispered Anne, her teeth
- chattering with cold and fright.
-
- "It was Aunt Josephine," said Diana, gasping with laughter. "Oh,
- Anne, it was Aunt Josephine, however she came to be there. Oh,
- and I know she will be furious. It's dreadful--it's really
- dreadful--but did you ever know anything so funny, Anne?"
-
- "Who is your Aunt Josephine?"
-
- "She's father's aunt and she lives in Charlottetown. She's
- awfully old--seventy anyhow--and I don't believe she was EVER a
- little girl. We were expecting her out for a visit, but not so
- soon. She's awfully prim and proper and she'll scold dreadfully
- about this, I know. Well, we'll have to sleep with Minnie
- May--and you can't think how she kicks."
-
- Miss Josephine Barry did not appear at the early breakfast the
- next morning. Mrs. Barry smiled kindly at the two little girls.
-
- "Did you have a good time last night? I tried to stay awake
- until you came home, for I wanted to tell you Aunt Josephine had
- come and that you would have to go upstairs after all, but I was
- so tired I fell asleep. I hope you didn't disturb your aunt,
- Diana."
-
- Diana preserved a discreet silence, but she and Anne exchanged
- furtive smiles of guilty amusement across the table. Anne
- hurried home after breakfast and so remained in blissful
- ignorance of the disturbance which presently resulted in the
- Barry household until the late afternoon, when she went down to
- Mrs. Lynde's on an errand for Marilla.
-
- "So you and Diana nearly frightened poor old Miss Barry to death
- last night?" said Mrs. Lynde severely, but with a twinkle in her
- eye. "Mrs. Barry was here a few minutes ago on her way to
- Carmody. She's feeling real worried over it. Old Miss Barry was
- in a terrible temper when she got up this morning--and Josephine
- Barry's temper is no joke, I can tell you that. She wouldn't
- speak to Diana at all."
-
- "It wasn't Diana's fault," said Anne contritely. "It was mine.
- I suggested racing to see who would get into bed first."
-
- "I knew it!" said Mrs. Lynde, with the exultation of a correct
- guesser. "I knew that idea came out of your head. Well, it's
- made a nice lot of trouble, that's what. Old Miss Barry came out
- to stay for a month, but she declares she won't stay another day
- and is going right back to town tomorrow, Sunday and all as it
- is. She'd have gone today if they could have taken her. She had
- promised to pay for a quarter's music lessons for Diana, but now
- she is determined to do nothing at all for such a tomboy. Oh, I
- guess they had a lively time of it there this morning. The
- Barrys must feel cut up. Old Miss Barry is rich and they'd like
- to keep on the good side of her. Of course, Mrs. Barry didn't
- say just that to me, but I'm a pretty good judge of human nature,
- that's what."
-
- "I'm such an unlucky girl," mourned Anne. "I'm always getting
- into scrapes myself and getting my best friends--people I'd shed
- my heart's blood for--into them too. Can you tell me why it is
- so, Mrs. Lynde?"
-
- "It's because you're too heedless and impulsive, child, that's
- what. You never stop to think--whatever comes into your head to
- say or do you say or do it without a moment's reflection."
-
- "Oh, but that's the best of it," protested Anne. "Something just
- flashes into your mind, so exciting, and you must out with it.
- If you stop to think it over you spoil it all. Haven't you never
- felt that yourself, Mrs. Lynde?"
-
- No, Mrs. Lynde had not. She shook her head sagely.
-
- "You must learn to think a little, Anne, that's what. The
- proverb you need to go by is `Look before you leap'--especially
- into spare-room beds."
-
- Mrs. Lynde laughed comfortably over her mild joke, but Anne
- remained pensive. She saw nothing to laugh at in the situation,
- which to her eyes appeared very serious. When she left Mrs.
- Lynde's she took her way across the crusted fields to Orchard
- Slope. Diana met her at the kitchen door.
-
- "Your Aunt Josephine was very cross about it, wasn't she?"
- whispered Anne.
-
- "Yes," answered Diana, stifling a giggle with an apprehensive
- glance over her shoulder at the closed sitting-room door. "She
- was fairly dancing with rage, Anne. Oh, how she scolded. She
- said I was the worst-behaved girl she ever saw and that my
- parents ought to be ashamed of the way they had brought me up.
- She says she won't stay and I'm sure I don't care. But Father
- and Mother do."
-
- "Why didn't you tell them it was my fault?" demanded Anne.
-
- "It's likely I'd do such a thing, isn't it?" said Diana with just
- scorn. "I'm no telltale, Anne Shirley, and anyhow I was just as
- much to blame as you."
-
- "Well, I'm going in to tell her myself," said Anne resolutely.
-
- Diana stared.
-
- "Anne Shirley, you'd never! why--she'll eat you alive!"
-
- "Don't frighten me any more than I am frightened," implored Anne.
- "I'd rather walk up to a cannon's mouth. But I've got to do it,
- Diana. It was my fault and I've got to confess. I've had
- practice in confessing, fortunately."
-
- "Well, she's in the room," said Diana. "You can go in if you
- want to. I wouldn't dare. And I don't believe you'll do a bit
- of good."
-
- With this encouragement Anne bearded the lion in its den--that is
- to say, walked resolutely up to the sitting-room door and knocked
- faintly. A sharp "Come in" followed.
-
- Miss Josephine Barry, thin, prim, and rigid, was knitting
- fiercely by the fire, her wrath quite unappeased and her eyes
- snapping through her gold-rimmed glasses. She wheeled around in
- her chair, expecting to see Diana, and beheld a white-faced girl
- whose great eyes were brimmed up with a mixture of desperate
- courage and shrinking terror.
-
- "Who are you?" demanded Miss Josephine Barry, without ceremony.
-
- "I'm Anne of Green Gables," said the small visitor tremulously,
- clasping her hands with her characteristic gesture, "and I've
- come to confess, if you please."
-
- "Confess what?"
-
- "That it was all my fault about jumping into bed on you last
- night. I suggested it. Diana would never have thought of such a
- thing, I am sure. Diana is a very ladylike girl, Miss Barry. So
- you must see how unjust it is to blame her."
-
- "Oh, I must, hey? I rather think Diana did her share of the
- jumping at least. Such carryings on in a respectable house!"
-
- "But we were only in fun," persisted Anne. "I think you ought to
- forgive us, Miss Barry, now that we've apologized. And anyhow,
- please forgive Diana and let her have her music lessons. Diana's
- heart is set on her music lessons, Miss Barry, and I know too
- well what it is to set your heart on a thing and not get it. If
- you must be cross with anyone, be cross with me. I've been so
- used in my early days to having people cross at me that I can
- endure it much better than Diana can."
-
- Much of the snap had gone out of the old lady's eyes by this time
- and was replaced by a twinkle of amused interest. But she still
- said severely:
-
- "I don't think it is any excuse for you that you were only in
- fun. Little girls never indulged in that kind of fun when I was
- young. You don't know what it is to be awakened out of a sound
- sleep, after a long and arduous journey, by two great girls
- coming bounce down on you."
-
- "I don't KNOW, but I can IMAGINE," said Anne eagerly. "I'm sure
- it must have been very disturbing. But then, there is our side
- of it too. Have you any imagination, Miss Barry? If you have,
- just put yourself in our place. We didn't know there was anybody
- in that bed and you nearly scared us to death. It was simply
- awful the way we felt. And then we couldn't sleep in the spare
- room after being promised. I suppose you are used to sleeping in
- spare rooms. But just imagine what you would feel like if you
- were a little orphan girl who had never had such an honor."
-
- All the snap had gone by this time. Miss Barry actually
- laughed--a sound which caused Diana, waiting in speechless
- anxiety in the kitchen outside, to give a great gasp of relief.
-
- "I'm afraid my imagination is a little rusty--it's so long since
- I used it," she said. "I dare say your claim to sympathy is just
- as strong as mine. It all depends on the way we look at it. Sit
- down here and tell me about yourself."
-
- "I am very sorry I can't," said Anne firmly. "I would like to,
- because you seem like an interesting lady, and you might even be
- a kindred spirit although you don't look very much like it. But
- it is my duty to go home to Miss Marilla Cuthbert. Miss Marilla
- Cuthbert is a very kind lady who has taken me to bring up
- properly. She is doing her best, but it is very discouraging
- work. You must not blame her because I jumped on the bed. But
- before I go I do wish you would tell me if you will forgive Diana
- and stay just as long as you meant to in Avonlea."
-
- "I think perhaps I will if you will come over and talk to me
- occasionally," said Miss Barry.
-
- That evening Miss Barry gave Diana a silver bangle bracelet and
- told the senior members of the household that she had unpacked
- her valise.
-
- "I've made up my mind to stay simply for the sake of getting
- better acquainted with that Anne-girl," she said frankly. "She
- amuses me, and at my time of life an amusing person is a rarity."
-
- Marilla's only comment when she heard the story was, "I told you
- so." This was for Matthew's benefit.
-
- Miss Barry stayed her month out and over. She was a more
- agreeable guest than usual, for Anne kept her in good humor.
- They became firm friends.
-
- When Miss Barry went away she said:
-
- "Remember, you Anne-girl, when you come to town you're to visit
- me and I'll put you in my very sparest spare-room bed to sleep."
-
- "Miss Barry was a kindred spirit, after all," Anne confided to
- Marilla. "You wouldn't think so to look at her, but she is. You
- don't find it right out at first, as in Matthew's case, but after
- a while you come to see it. Kindred spirits are not so scarce as
- I used to think. It's splendid to find out there are so many of
- them in the world."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX
-
- A Good Imagination Gone Wrong
-
-
- Spring had come once more to Green Gables--the beautiful
- capricious, reluctant Canadian spring, lingering along through
- April and May in a succession of sweet, fresh, chilly days, with
- pink sunsets and miracles of resurrection and growth. The maples
- in Lover's Lane were red budded and little curly ferns pushed up
- around the Dryad's Bubble. Away up in the barrens, behind Mr.
- Silas Sloane's place, the Mayflowers blossomed out, pink and
- white stars of sweetness under their brown leaves. All the
- school girls and boys had one golden afternoon gathering them,
- coming home in the clear, echoing twilight with arms and baskets
- full of flowery spoil.
-
- "I'm so sorry for people who live in lands where there are no
- Mayflowers," said Anne. "Diana says perhaps they have something
- better, but there couldn't be anything better than Mayflowers,
- could there, Marilla? And Diana says if they don't know what
- they are like they don't miss them. But I think that is the
- saddest thing of all. I think it would be TRAGIC, Marilla, not
- to know what Mayflowers are like and NOT to miss them. Do you
- know what I think Mayflowers are, Marilla? I think they must be
- the souls of the flowers that died last summer and this is their
- heaven. But we had a splendid time today, Marilla. We had our
- lunch down in a big mossy hollow by an old well--such a ROMANTIC
- spot. Charlie Sloane dared Arty Gillis to jump over it, and Arty
- did because he wouldn't take a dare. Nobody would in school. It
- is very FASHIONABLE to dare. Mr. Phillips gave all the
- Mayflowers he found to Prissy Andrews and I heard him to say
- `sweets to the sweet.' He got that out of a book, I know; but it
- shows he has some imagination. I was offered some Mayflowers
- too, but I rejected them with scorn. I can't tell you the
- person's name because I have vowed never to let it cross my lips.
- We made wreaths of the Mayflowers and put them on our hats; and
- when the time came to go home we marched in procession down the
- road, two by two, with our bouquets and wreaths, singing `My Home
- on the Hill.' Oh, it was so thrilling, Marilla. All Mr. Silas
- Sloane's folks rushed out to see us and everybody we met on the
- road stopped and stared after us. We made a real sensation."
-
- "Not much wonder! Such silly doings!" was Marilla's response.
-
- After the Mayflowers came the violets, and Violet Vale was empurpled
- with them. Anne walked through it on her way to school with reverent
- steps and worshiping eyes, as if she trod on holy ground.
-
- "Somehow," she told Diana, "when I'm going through here I don't
- really care whether Gil--whether anybody gets ahead of me in
- class or not. But when I'm up in school it's all different and I
- care as much as ever. There's such a lot of different Annes in me.
- I sometimes think that is why I'm such a troublesome person.
- If I was just the one Anne it would be ever so much more
- comfortable, but then it wouldn't be half so interesting."
-
- One June evening, when the orchards were pink blossomed again,
- when the frogs were singing silverly sweet in the marshes about
- the head of the Lake of Shining Waters, and the air was full of
- the savor of clover fields and balsamic fir woods, Anne was
- sitting by her gable window. She had been studying her lessons,
- but it had grown too dark to see the book, so she had fallen into
- wide-eyed reverie, looking out past the boughs of the Snow Queen,
- once more bestarred with its tufts of blossom.
-
- In all essential respects the little gable chamber was unchanged.
- The walls were as white, the pincushion as hard, the chairs as
- stiffly and yellowly upright as ever. Yet the whole character of
- the room was altered. It was full of a new vital, pulsing
- personality that seemed to pervade it and to be quite independent
- of schoolgirl books and dresses and ribbons, and even of the
- cracked blue jug full of apple blossoms on the table. It was as
- if all the dreams, sleeping and waking, of its vivid occupant had
- taken a visible although unmaterial form and had tapestried the
- bare room with splendid filmy tissues of rainbow and moonshine.
- Presently Marilla came briskly in with some of Anne's freshly
- ironed school aprons. She hung them over a chair and sat down
- with a short sigh. She had had one of her headaches that
- afternoon, and although the pain had gone she felt weak and
- "tuckered out," as she expressed it. Anne looked at her with
- eyes limpid with sympathy.
-
- "I do truly wish I could have had the headache in your place,
- Marilla. I would have endured it joyfully for your sake."
-
- "I guess you did your part in attending to the work and letting
- me rest," said Marilla. "You seem to have got on fairly well and
- made fewer mistakes than usual. Of course it wasn't exactly
- necessary to starch Matthew's handkerchiefs! And most people when
- they put a pie in the oven to warm up for dinner take it out and
- eat it when it gets hot instead of leaving it to be burned to a
- crisp. But that doesn't seem to be your way evidently."
-
- Headaches always left Marilla somewhat sarcastic.
-
- "Oh, I'm so sorry," said Anne penitently. "I never thought about
- that pie from the moment I put it in the oven till now, although
- I felt INSTINCTIVELY that there was something missing on the
- dinner table. I was firmly resolved, when you left me in charge
- this morning, not to imagine anything, but keep my thoughts on
- facts. I did pretty well until I put the pie in, and then an
- irresistible temptation came to me to imagine I was an enchanted
- princess shut up in a lonely tower with a handsome knight riding
- to my rescue on a coal-black steed. So that is how I came to
- forget the pie. I didn't know I starched the handkerchiefs. All
- the time I was ironing I was trying to think of a name for a new
- island Diana and I have discovered up the brook. It's the most
- ravishing spot, Marilla. There are two maple trees on it and the
- brook flows right around it. At last it struck me that it would
- be splendid to call it Victoria Island because we found it on the
- Queen's birthday. Both Diana and I are very loyal. But I'm
- sorry about that pie and the handkerchiefs. I wanted to be extra
- good today because it's an anniversary. Do you remember what
- happened this day last year, Marilla?"
-
- "No, I can't think of anything special."
-
- "Oh, Marilla, it was the day I came to Green Gables. I shall
- never forget it. It was the turning point in my life. Of course
- it wouldn't seem so important to you. I've been here for a year
- and I've been so happy. Of course, I've had my troubles, but one
- can live down troubles. Are you sorry you kept me, Marilla?"
-
- "No, I can't say I'm sorry," said Marilla, who sometimes wondered
- how she could have lived before Anne came to Green Gables, "no,
- not exactly sorry. If you've finished your lessons, Anne, I want you
- to run over and ask Mrs. Barry if she'll lend me Diana's apron pattern."
-
- "Oh--it's--it's too dark," cried Anne.
-
- "Too dark? Why, it's only twilight. And goodness knows you've
- gone over often enough after dark."
-
- "I'll go over early in the morning," said Anne eagerly. "I'll
- get up at sunrise and go over, Marilla."
-
- "What has got into your head now, Anne Shirley? I want that pattern
- to cut out your new apron this evening. Go at once and be smart too."
-
- "I'll have to go around by the road, then," said Anne, taking up
- her hat reluctantly.
-
- "Go by the road and waste half an hour! I'd like to catch you!"
-
- "I can't go through the Haunted Wood, Marilla," cried Anne desperately.
-
- Marilla stared.
-
- "The Haunted Wood! Are you crazy? What under the canopy is the
- Haunted Wood?"
-
- "The spruce wood over the brook," said Anne in a whisper.
-
- "Fiddlesticks! There is no such thing as a haunted wood anywhere.
- Who has been telling you such stuff?"
-
- "Nobody," confessed Anne. "Diana and I just imagined the wood
- was haunted. All the places around here are so--so--COMMONPLACE.
- We just got this up for our own amusement. We began it in April.
- A haunted wood is so very romantic, Marilla. We chose the spruce
- grove because it's so gloomy. Oh, we have imagined the most
- harrowing things. There's a white lady walks along the brook
- just about this time of the night and wrings her hands and utters
- wailing cries. She appears when there is to be a death in the
- family. And the ghost of a little murdered child haunts the
- corner up by Idlewild; it creeps up behind you and lays its cold
- fingers on your hand--so. Oh, Marilla, it gives me a shudder to
- think of it. And there's a headless man stalks up and down the
- path and skeletons glower at you between the boughs. Oh,
- Marilla, I wouldn't go through the Haunted Wood after dark now
- for anything. I'd be sure that white things would reach out from
- behind the trees and grab me."
-
- "Did ever anyone hear the like!" ejaculated Marilla, who had
- listened in dumb amazement. "Anne Shirley, do you mean to tell
- me you believe all that wicked nonsense of your own imagination?"
-
- "Not believe EXACTLY," faltered Anne. "At least, I don't
- believe it in daylight. But after dark, Marilla, it's
- different. That is when ghosts walk."
-
- "There are no such things as ghosts, Anne."
-
- "Oh, but there are, Marilla," cried Anne eagerly. "I know people
- who have seen them. And they are respectable people. Charlie
- Sloane says that his grandmother saw his grandfather driving home
- the cows one night after he'd been buried for a year. You know
- Charlie Sloane's grandmother wouldn't tell a story for anything.
- She's a very religious woman. And Mrs. Thomas's father was
- pursued home one night by a lamb of fire with its head cut off
- hanging by a strip of skin. He said he knew it was the spirit of
- his brother and that it was a warning he would die within nine
- days. He didn't, but he died two years after, so you see it was
- really true. And Ruby Gillis says--"
-
- "Anne Shirley," interrupted Marilla firmly, "I never want to hear
- you talking in this fashion again. I've had my doubts about that
- imagination of yours right along, and if this is going to be the
- outcome of it, I won't countenance any such doings. You'll go
- right over to Barry's, and you'll go through that spruce grove,
- just for a lesson and a warning to you. And never let me hear a
- word out of your head about haunted woods again."
-
- Anne might plead and cry as she liked--and did, for her terror was
- very real. Her imagination had run away with her and she held the
- spruce grove in mortal dread after nightfall. But Marilla was
- inexorable. She marched the shrinking ghostseer down to the spring
- and ordered her to proceed straightaway over the bridge and into
- the dusky retreats of wailing ladies and headless specters beyond.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, how can you be so cruel?" sobbed Anne. "What would
- you feel like if a white thing did snatch me up and carry me off?"
-
- "I'll risk it," said Marilla unfeelingly. "You know I always
- mean what I say. I'll cure you of imagining ghosts into places.
- March, now."
-
- Anne marched. That is, she stumbled over the bridge and went
- shuddering up the horrible dim path beyond. Anne never forgot
- that walk. Bitterly did she repent the license she had given to
- her imagination. The goblins of her fancy lurked in every shadow
- about her, reaching out their cold, fleshless hands to grasp the
- terrified small girl who had called them into being. A white
- strip of birch bark blowing up from the hollow over the brown
- floor of the grove made her heart stand still. The long-drawn
- wail of two old boughs rubbing against each other brought out the
- perspiration in beads on her forehead. The swoop of bats in the
- darkness over her was as the wings of unearthly creatures. When
- she reached Mr. William Bell's field she fled across it as if
- pursued by an army of white things, and arrived at the Barry
- kitchen door so out of breath that she could hardly gasp out her
- request for the apron pattern. Diana was away so that she had no
- excuse to linger. The dreadful return journey had to be faced.
- Anne went back over it with shut eyes, preferring to take the
- risk of dashing her brains out among the boughs to that of seeing
- a white thing. When she finally stumbled over the log bridge she
- drew one long shivering breath of relief.
-
- "Well, so nothing caught you?" said Marilla unsympathetically.
-
- "Oh, Mar--Marilla," chattered Anne, "I'll b-b-be contt-tented
- with c-c-commonplace places after this."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI
-
- A New Departure in Flavorings
-
-
- "Dear me, there is nothing but meetings and partings in this
- world, as Mrs. Lynde says," remarked Anne plaintively, putting
- her slate and books down on the kitchen table on the last day of
- June and wiping her red eyes with a very damp handkerchief.
- "Wasn't it fortunate, Marilla, that I took an extra handkerchief
- to school today? I had a presentiment that it would be needed."
-
- "I never thought you were so fond of Mr. Phillips that you'd
- require two handkerchiefs to dry your tears just because he was
- going away," said Marilla.
-
- "I don't think I was crying because I was really so very fond of
- him," reflected Anne. "I just cried because all the others did.
- It was Ruby Gillis started it. Ruby Gillis has always declared
- she hated Mr. Phillips, but just as soon as he got up to make
- his farewell speech she burst into tears. Then all the girls
- began to cry, one after the other. I tried to hold out, Marilla.
- I tried to remember the time Mr. Phillips made me sit with
- Gil--with a, boy; and the time he spelled my name without an e
- on the blackboard; and how he said I was the worst dunce he ever
- saw at geometry and laughed at my spelling; and all the times he
- had been so horrid and sarcastic; but somehow I couldn't,
- Marilla, and I just had to cry too. Jane Andrews has been
- talking for a month about how glad she'd be when Mr. Phillips
- went away and she declared she'd never shed a tear. Well, she
- was worse than any of us and had to borrow a handkerchief from
- her brother--of course the boys didn't cry--because she hadn't
- brought one of her own, not expecting to need it. Oh, Marilla,
- it was heartrending. Mr. Phillips made such a beautiful
- farewell speech beginning, `The time has come for us to part.'
- It was very affecting. And he had tears in his eyes too, Marilla.
- Oh, I felt dreadfully sorry and remorseful for all the times I'd
- talked in school and drawn pictures of him on my slate and made
- fun of him and Prissy. I can tell you I wished I'd been a model
- pupil like Minnie Andrews. She hadn't anything on her conscience.
- The girls cried all the way home from school. Carrie Sloane kept
- saying every few minutes, `The time has come for us to part,'
- and that would start us off again whenever we were in any danger
- of cheering up. I do feel dreadfully sad, Marilla. But one can't
- feel quite in the depths of despair with two months' vacation
- before them, can they, Marilla? And besides, we met the new
- minister and his wife coming from the station. For all I was
- feeling so bad about Mr. Phillips going away I couldn't help
- taking a little interest in a new minister, could I? His wife
- is very pretty. Not exactly regally lovely, of course--it
- wouldn't do, I suppose, for a minister to have a regally lovely
- wife, because it might set a bad example. Mrs. Lynde says the
- minister's wife over at Newbridge sets a very bad example because
- she dresses so fashionably. Our new minister's wife was dressed in
- blue muslin with lovely puffed sleeves and a hat trimmed with roses.
- Jane Andrews said she thought puffed sleeves were too worldly for a
- minister's wife, but I didn't make any such uncharitable remark,
- Marilla, because I know what it is to long for puffed sleeves.
- Besides, she's only been a minister's wife for a little while,
- so one should make allowances, shouldn't they? They are going
- to board with Mrs. Lynde until the manse is ready."
-
- If Marilla, in going down to Mrs. Lynde's that evening, was
- actuated by any motive save her avowed one of returning the
- quilting frames she had borrowed the preceding winter, it was an
- amiable weakness shared by most of the Avonlea people. Many a
- thing Mrs. Lynde had lent, sometimes never expecting to see it
- again, came home that night in charge of the borrowers thereof.
- A new minister, and moreover a minister with a wife, was a lawful
- object of curiosity in a quiet little country settlement where
- sensations were few and far between.
-
- Old Mr. Bentley, the minister whom Anne had found lacking in
- imagination, had been pastor of Avonlea for eighteen years. He
- was a widower when he came, and a widower he remained, despite
- the fact that gossip regularly married him to this, that, or the
- other one, every year of his sojourn. In the preceding February
- he had resigned his charge and departed amid the regrets of his
- people, most of whom had the affection born of long intercourse for
- their good old minister in spite of his shortcomings as an orator.
- Since then the Avonlea church had enjoyed a variety of religious
- dissipation in listening to the many and various candidates and
- "supplies" who came Sunday after Sunday to preach on trial.
- These stood or fell by the judgment of the fathers and mothers
- in Israel; but a certain small, red-haired girl who sat meekly
- in the corner of the old Cuthbert pew also had her opinions about
- them and discussed the same in full with Matthew, Marilla always
- declining from principle to criticize ministers in any shape or form.
-
- "I don't think Mr. Smith would have done, Matthew" was Anne's
- final summing up. "Mrs. Lynde says his delivery was so poor,
- but I think his worst fault was just like Mr. Bentley's--he had
- no imagination. And Mr. Terry had too much; he let it run away
- with him just as I did mine in the matter of the Haunted Wood.
- Besides, Mrs. Lynde says his theology wasn't sound. Mr. Gresham
- was a very good man and a very religious man, but he told too
- many funny stories and made the people laugh in church; he was
- undignified, and you must have some dignity about a minister,
- mustn't you, Matthew? I thought Mr. Marshall was decidedly
- attractive; but Mrs. Lynde says he isn't married, or even
- engaged, because she made special inquiries about him, and she
- says it would never do to have a young unmarried minister in
- Avonlea, because he might marry in the congregation and that
- would make trouble. Mrs. Lynde is a very farseeing woman, isn't
- she, Matthew? I'm very glad they've called Mr. Allan. I liked
- him because his sermon was interesting and he prayed as if he
- meant it and not just as if he did it because he was in the habit
- of it. Mrs. Lynde says he isn't perfect, but she says she
- supposes we couldn't expect a perfect minister for seven hundred
- and fifty dollars a year, and anyhow his theology is sound
- because she questioned him thoroughly on all the points of
- doctrine. And she knows his wife's people and they are most
- respectable and the women are all good housekeepers. Mrs. Lynde
- says that sound doctrine in the man and good housekeeping in the
- woman make an ideal combination for a minister's family."
-
- The new minister and his wife were a young, pleasant-faced
- couple, still on their honeymoon, and full of all good and
- beautiful enthusiasms for their chosen lifework. Avonlea
- opened its heart to them from the start. Old and young liked
- the frank, cheerful young man with his high ideals, and the bright,
- gentle little lady who assumed the mistress-ship of the manse.
- With Mrs. Allan Anne fell promptly and wholeheartedly in love.
- She had discovered another kindred spirit.
-
- "Mrs. Allan is perfectly lovely," she announced one Sunday afternoon.
- "She's taken our class and she's a splendid teacher. She said right
- away she didn't think it was fair for the teacher to ask all the
- questions, and you know, Marilla, that is exactly what I've
- always thought. She said we could ask her any question we liked
- and I asked ever so many. I'm good at asking questions, Marilla."
-
- "I believe you" was Marilla's emphatic comment.
-
- "Nobody else asked any except Ruby Gillis, and she asked if there
- was to be a Sunday-school picnic this summer. I didn't think
- that was a very proper question to ask because it hadn't any
- connection with the lesson--the lesson was about Daniel in the
- lions' den--but Mrs. Allan just smiled and said she thought there
- would be. Mrs. Allan has a lovely smile; she has such EXQUISITE
- dimples in her cheeks. I wish I had dimples in my cheeks, Marilla.
- I'm not half so skinny as I was when I came here, but I have no
- dimples yet. If I had perhaps I could influence people for good.
- Mrs. Allan said we ought always to try to influence other people
- for good. She talked so nice about everything. I never knew before
- that religion was such a cheerful thing. I always thought it was
- kind of melancholy, but Mrs. Allan's isn't, and I'd like to be a
- Christian if I could be one like her. I wouldn't want to be one
- like Mr. Superintendent Bell."
-
- "It's very naughty of you to speak so about Mr. Bell," said
- Marilla severely. "Mr. Bell is a real good man."
-
- "Oh, of course he's good," agreed Anne, "but he doesn't seem to
- get any comfort out of it. If I could be good I'd dance and sing
- all day because I was glad of it. I suppose Mrs. Allan is too
- old to dance and sing and of course it wouldn't be dignified in a
- minister's wife. But I can just feel she's glad she's a Christian
- and that she'd be one even if she could get to heaven without it."
-
- "I suppose we must have Mr. and Mrs. Allan up to tea someday
- soon," said Marilla reflectively. "They've been most everywhere
- but here. Let me see. Next Wednesday would be a good time to
- have them. But don't say a word to Matthew about it, for if he
- knew they were coming he'd find some excuse to be away that day.
- He'd got so used to Mr. Bentley he didn't mind him, but he's
- going to find it hard to get acquainted with a new minister, and
- a new minister's wife will frighten him to death."
-
- "I'll be as secret as the dead," assured Anne. "But oh, Marilla,
- will you let me make a cake for the occasion? I'd love to do
- something for Mrs. Allan, and you know I can make a pretty good
- cake by this time."
-
- "You can make a layer cake," promised Marilla.
-
- Monday and Tuesday great preparations went on at Green Gables.
- Having the minister and his wife to tea was a serious and
- important undertaking, and Marilla was determined not to be
- eclipsed by any of the Avonlea housekeepers. Anne was wild with
- excitement and delight. She talked it all over with Diana
- Tuesday night in the twilight, as they sat on the big red stones
- by the Dryad's Bubble and made rainbows in the water with little
- twigs dipped in fir balsam.
-
- "Everything is ready, Diana, except my cake which I'm to make in
- the morning, and the baking-powder biscuits which Marilla will
- make just before teatime. I assure you, Diana, that Marilla and
- I have had a busy two days of it. It's such a responsibility
- having a minister's family to tea. I never went through such an
- experience before. You should just see our pantry. It's a sight
- to behold. We're going to have jellied chicken and cold tongue.
- We're to have two kinds of jelly, red and yellow, and whipped
- cream and lemon pie, and cherry pie, and three kinds of cookies,
- and fruit cake, and Marilla's famous yellow plum preserves that
- she keeps especially for ministers, and pound cake and layer
- cake, and biscuits as aforesaid; and new bread and old both, in
- case the minister is dyspeptic and can't eat new. Mrs. Lynde
- says ministers are dyspeptic, but I don't think Mr. Allan has been
- a minister long enough for it to have had a bad effect on him.
- I just grow cold when I think of my layer cake. Oh, Diana, what
- if it shouldn't be good! I dreamed last night that I was chased
- all around by a fearful goblin with a big layer cake for a head."
-
- "It'll be good, all right," assured Diana, who was a very comfortable
- sort of friend. "I'm sure that piece of the one you made that we had
- for lunch in Idlewild two weeks ago was perfectly elegant."
-
- "Yes; but cakes have such a terrible habit of turning out bad just when
- you especially want them to be good," sighed Anne, setting a particularly
- well-balsamed twig afloat. "However, I suppose I shall just have to
- trust to Providence and be careful to put in the flour. Oh, look, Diana,
- what a lovely rainbow! Do you suppose the dryad will come out after we
- go away and take it for a scarf?"
-
- "You know there is no such thing as a dryad," said Diana.
- Diana's mother had found out about the Haunted Wood and had been
- decidedly angry over it. As a result Diana had abstained from
- any further imitative flights of imagination and did not think it
- prudent to cultivate a spirit of belief even in harmless dryads.
-
- "But it's so easy to imagine there is," said Anne. "Every night
- before I go to bed, I look out of my window and wonder if the
- dryad is really sitting here, combing her locks with the spring
- for a mirror. Sometimes I look for her footprints in the dew in
- the morning. Oh, Diana, don't give up your faith in the dryad!"
-
- Wednesday morning came. Anne got up at sunrise because she was
- too excited to sleep. She had caught a severe cold in the head
- by reason of her dabbling in the spring on the preceding evening;
- but nothing short of absolute pneumonia could have quenched her
- interest in culinary matters that morning. After breakfast she
- proceeded to make her cake. When she finally shut the oven door
- upon it she drew a long breath.
-
- "I'm sure I haven't forgotten anything this time, Marilla. But
- do you think it will rise? Just suppose perhaps the baking powder
- isn't good? I used it out of the new can. And Mrs. Lynde says
- you can never be sure of getting good baking powder nowadays when
- everything is so adulterated. Mrs. Lynde says the Government ought
- to take the matter up, but she says we'll never see the day when a
- Tory Government will do it. Marilla, what if that cake doesn't rise?"
-
- "We'll have plenty without it" was Marilla's unimpassioned way of
- looking at the subject.
-
- The cake did rise, however, and came out of the oven as light and
- feathery as golden foam. Anne, flushed with delight, clapped it
- together with layers of ruby jelly and, in imagination, saw Mrs.
- Allan eating it and possibly asking for another piece!
-
- "You'll be using the best tea set, of course, Marilla," she said.
- "Can I fix the table with ferns and wild roses?"
-
- "I think that's all nonsense," sniffed Marilla. "In my opinion
- it's the eatables that matter and not flummery decorations."
-
- "Mrs. Barry had HER table decorated," said Anne, who was not
- entirely guiltless of the wisdom of the serpent, "and the
- minister paid her an elegant compliment. He said it was a feast
- for the eye as well as the palate."
-
- "Well, do as you like," said Marilla, who was quite determined
- not to be surpassed by Mrs. Barry or anybody else. "Only mind
- you leave enough room for the dishes and the food."
-
- Anne laid herself out to decorate in a manner and after a fashion
- that should leave Mrs. Barry's nowhere. Having abundance of roses
- and ferns and a very artistic taste of her own, she made that tea
- table such a thing of beauty that when the minister and his wife
- sat down to it they exclaimed in chorus over it loveliness.
-
- "It's Anne's doings," said Marilla, grimly just; and Anne felt
- that Mrs. Allan's approving smile was almost too much happiness
- for this world.
-
- Matthew was there, having been inveigled into the party only
- goodness and Anne knew how. He had been in such a state of
- shyness and nervousness that Marilla had given him up in despair,
- but Anne took him in hand so successfully that he now sat at the
- table in his best clothes and white collar and talked to the
- minister not uninterestingly. He never said a word to Mrs. Allan,
- but that perhaps was not to be expected.
-
- All went merry as a marriage bell until Anne's layer cake was
- passed. Mrs. Allan, having already been helped to a bewildering
- variety, declined it. But Marilla, seeing the disappointment on
- Anne's face, said smilingly:
-
- "Oh, you must take a piece of this, Mrs. Allan. Anne made it on
- purpose for you."
-
- "In that case I must sample it," laughed Mrs. Allan, helping
- herself to a plump triangle, as did also the minister and
- Marilla.
-
- Mrs. Allan took a mouthful of hers and a most peculiar expression
- crossed her face; not a word did she say, however, but steadily
- ate away at it. Marilla saw the expression and hastened to
- taste the cake.
-
- "Anne Shirley!" she exclaimed, "what on earth did you put into
- that cake?"
-
- "Nothing but what the recipe said, Marilla," cried Anne with a
- look of anguish. "Oh, isn't it all right?"
-
- "All right! It's simply horrible. Mr. Allan, don't try to eat
- it. Anne, taste it yourself. What flavoring did you use?"
-
- "Vanilla," said Anne, her face scarlet with mortification after
- tasting the cake. "Only vanilla. Oh, Marilla, it must have been
- the baking powder. I had my suspicions of that bak--"
-
- "Baking powder fiddlesticks! Go and bring me the bottle of
- vanilla you used."
-
- Anne fled to the pantry and returned with a small bottle
- partially filled with a brown liquid and labeled yellowly,
- "Best Vanilla."
-
- Marilla took it, uncorked it, smelled it.
-
- "Mercy on us, Anne, you've flavored that cake with ANODYNE
- LINIMENT. I broke the liniment bottle last week and poured what
- was left into an old empty vanilla bottle. I suppose it's partly
- my fault--I should have warned you--but for pity's sake why
- couldn't you have smelled it?"
-
- Anne dissolved into tears under this double disgrace.
-
- "I couldn't--I had such a cold!" and with this she fairly fled to
- the gable chamber, where she cast herself on the bed and wept as
- one who refuses to be comforted.
-
- Presently a light step sounded on the stairs and somebody entered the room.
-
- "Oh, Marilla," sobbed Anne, without looking up, "I'm disgraced forever.
- I shall never be able to live this down. It will get out--things
- always do get out in Avonlea. Diana will ask me how my cake turned out
- and I shall have to tell her the truth. I shall always be pointed at
- as the girl who flavored a cake with anodyne liniment. Gil--the boys
- in school will never get over laughing at it. Oh, Marilla, if you have
- a spark of Christian pity don't tell me that I must go down and wash the
- dishes after this. I'll wash them when the minister and his wife are gone,
- but I cannot ever look Mrs. Allan in the face again. Perhaps she'll think
- I tried to poison her. Mrs. Lynde says she knows an orphan girl who tried
- to poison her benefactor. But the liniment isn't poisonous. It's meant
- to be taken internally--although not in cakes. Won't you tell Mrs. Allan
- so, Marilla?"
-
- "Suppose you jump up and tell her so yourself," said a merry voice.
-
- Anne flew up, to find Mrs. Allan standing by her bed, surveying her
- with laughing eyes.
-
- "My dear little girl, you musn't cry like this," she said,
- genuinely disturbed by Anne's tragic face. "Why, it's all just a
- funny mistake that anybody might make."
-
- "Oh, no, it takes me to make such a mistake," said Anne forlornly.
- "And I wanted to have that cake so nice for you, Mrs. Allan."
-
- "Yes, I know, dear. And I assure you I appreciate your kindness
- and thoughtfulness just as much as if it had turned out all right.
- Now, you mustn't cry any more, but come down with me and show me your
- flower garden. Miss Cuthbert tells me you have a little plot all
- your own. I want to see it, for I'm very much interested in flowers."
-
- Anne permitted herself to be led down and comforted, reflecting
- that it was really providential that Mrs. Allan was a kindred
- spirit. Nothing more was said about the liniment cake, and when
- the guests went away Anne found that she had enjoyed the evening
- more than could have been expected, considering that terrible
- incident. Nevertheless, she sighed deeply.
-
- "Marilla, isn't it nice to think that tomorrow is a new day with
- no mistakes in it yet?"
-
- "I'll warrant you'll make plenty in it," said Marilla. "I never
- saw your beat for making mistakes, Anne."
-
- "Yes, and well I know it," admitted Anne mournfully. "But
- have you ever noticed one encouraging thing about me, Marilla?
- I never make the same mistake twice."
-
- "I don't know as that's much benefit when you're always making new ones."
-
- "Oh, don't you see, Marilla? There must be a limit to the mistakes
- one person can make, and when I get to the end of them, then I'll be
- through with them. That's a very comforting thought."
-
- "Well, you'd better go and give that cake to the pigs," said Marilla.
- "It isn't fit for any human to eat, not even Jerry Boute."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII
-
- Anne is Invited Out to Tea
-
-
- "And what are your eyes popping out of your head about. Now?"
- asked Marilla, when Anne had just come in from a run to the
- post office. "Have you discovered another kindred spirit?"
- Excitement hung around Anne like a garment, shone in her eyes,
- kindled in every feature. She had come dancing up the lane, like
- a wind-blown sprite, through the mellow sunshine and lazy shadows
- of the August evening.
-
- "No, Marilla, but oh, what do you think? I am invited to tea at
- the manse tomorrow afternoon! Mrs. Allan left the letter for me
- at the post office. Just look at it, Marilla. `Miss Anne Shirley,
- Green Gables.' That is the first time I was ever called `Miss.'
- Such a thrill as it gave me! I shall cherish it forever among
- my choicest treasures."
-
- "Mrs. Allan told me she meant to have all the members of her
- Sunday-school class to tea in turn," said Marilla, regarding the
- wonderful event very coolly. "You needn't get in such a fever
- over it. Do learn to take things calmly, child."
-
- For Anne to take things calmly would have been to change her
- nature. All "spirit and fire and dew," as she was, the pleasures
- and pains of life came to her with trebled intensity. Marilla
- felt this and was vaguely troubled over it, realizing that the
- ups and downs of existence would probably bear hardly on this
- impulsive soul and not sufficiently understanding that the
- equally great capacity for delight might more than compensate.
- Therefore Marilla conceived it to be her duty to drill Anne into
- a tranquil uniformity of disposition as impossible and alien to
- her as to a dancing sunbeam in one of the brook shallows. She
- did not make much headway, as she sorrowfully admitted to herself.
- The downfall of some dear hope or plan plunged Anne into "deeps
- of affliction." The fulfillment thereof exalted her to dizzy realms
- of delight. Marilla had almost begun to despair of ever fashioning
- this waif of the world into her model little girl of demure manners
- and prim deportment. Neither would she have believed that she really
- liked Anne much better as she was.
-
- Anne went to bed that night speechless with misery because
- Matthew had said the wind was round northeast and he feared it
- would be a rainy day tomorrow. The rustle of the poplar leaves
- about the house worried her, it sounded so like pattering
- raindrops, and the full, faraway roar of the gulf, to which she
- listened delightedly at other times, loving its strange,
- sonorous, haunting rhythm, now seemed like a prophecy of storm
- and disaster to a small maiden who particularly wanted a fine
- day. Anne thought that the morning would never come.
-
- But all things have an end, even nights before the day on which you are
- invited to take tea at the manse. The morning, in spite of Matthew's
- predictions, was fine and Anne's spirits soared to their highest.
- "Oh, Marilla, there is something in me today that makes me just
- love everybody I see," she exclaimed as she washed the breakfast
- dishes. "You don't know how good I feel! Wouldn't it be nice if
- it could last? I believe I could be a model child if I were just
- invited out to tea every day. But oh, Marilla, it's a solemn
- occasion too. I feel so anxious. What if I shouldn't behave
- properly? You know I never had tea at a manse before, and I'm
- not sure that I know all the rules of etiquette, although I've
- been studying the rules given in the Etiquette Department of the
- Family Herald ever since I came here. I'm so afraid I'll do
- something silly or forget to do something I should do. Would it
- be good manners to take a second helping of anything if you
- wanted to VERY much?"
-
- "The trouble with you, Anne, is that you're thinking too much
- about yourself. You should just think of Mrs. Allan and what
- would be nicest and most agreeable to her," said Marilla, hitting
- for once in her life on a very sound and pithy piece of advice.
- Anne instantly realized this.
-
- "You are right, Marilla. I'll try not to think about myself at all."
-
- Anne evidently got through her visit without any serious breach
- of "etiquette," for she came home through the twilight, under a
- great, high-sprung sky gloried over with trails of saffron and
- rosy cloud, in a beatified state of mind and told Marilla all
- about it happily, sitting on the big red-sandstone slab at the
- kitchen door with her tired curly head in Marilla's gingham lap.
-
- A cool wind was blowing down over the long harvest fields from
- the rims of firry western hills and whistling through the
- poplars. One clear star hung over the orchard and the fireflies
- were flitting over in Lover's Lane, in and out among the ferns
- and rustling boughs. Anne watched them as she talked and somehow
- felt that wind and stars and fireflies were all tangled up
- together into something unutterably sweet and enchanting.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, I've had a most FASCINATING time. I feel that I
- have not lived in vain and I shall always feel like that even if
- I should never be invited to tea at a manse again. When I got
- there Mrs. Allan met me at the door. She was dressed in the
- sweetest dress of pale-pink organdy, with dozens of frills and
- elbow sleeves, and she looked just like a seraph. I really think
- I'd like to be a minister's wife when I grow up, Marilla. A
- minister mightn't mind my red hair because he wouldn't be
- thinking of such worldly things. But then of course one would
- have to be naturally good and I'll never be that, so I suppose
- there's no use in thinking about it. Some people are naturally
- good, you know, and others are not. I'm one of the others. Mrs.
- Lynde says I'm full of original sin. No matter how hard I try to
- be good I can never make such a success of it as those who are
- naturally good. It's a good deal like geometry, I expect. But
- don't you think the trying so hard ought to count for something?
- Mrs. Allan is one of the naturally good people. I love her
- passionately. You know there are some people, like Matthew and
- Mrs. Allan that you can love right off without any trouble. And
- there are others, like Mrs. Lynde, that you have to try very
- hard to love. You know you OUGHT to love them because they know
- so much and are such active workers in the church, but you have
- to keep reminding yourself of it all the time or else you forget.
- There was another little girl at the manse to tea, from the White
- Sands Sunday school. Her name was Laurette Bradley, and she was
- a very nice little girl. Not exactly a kindred spirit, you know,
- but still very nice. We had an elegant tea, and I think I kept
- all the rules of etiquette pretty well. After tea Mrs. Allan
- played and sang and she got Lauretta and me to sing too. Mrs.
- Allan says I have a good voice and she says I must sing in the
- Sunday-school choir after this. You can't think how I was
- thrilled at the mere thought. I've longed so to sing in the
- Sunday-school choir, as Diana does, but I feared it was an honor
- I could never aspire to. Lauretta had to go home early because
- there is a big concert in the White Sands Hotel tonight and her
- sister is to recite at it. Lauretta says that the Americans at
- the hotel give a concert every fortnight in aid of the
- Charlottetown hospital, and they ask lots of the White Sands
- people to recite. Lauretta said she expected to be asked
- herself someday. I just gazed at her in awe. After she had
- gone Mrs. Allan and I had a heart-to-heart talk. I told her
- everything--about Mrs. Thomas and the twins and Katie Maurice
- and Violetta and coming to Green Gables and my troubles over
- geometry. And would you believe it, Marilla? Mrs. Allan told me
- she was a dunce at geometry too. You don't know how that
- encouraged me. Mrs. Lynde came to the manse just before I left,
- and what do you think, Marilla? The trustees have hired a new
- teacher and it's a lady. Her name is Miss Muriel Stacy. Isn't
- that a romantic name? Mrs. Lynde says they've never had a female
- teacher in Avonlea before and she thinks it is a dangerous
- innovation. But I think it will be splendid to have a lady
- teacher, and I really don't see how I'm going to live through the
- two weeks before school begins. I'm so impatient to see her."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII
-
- Anne Comes to Grief in an Affair of Honor
-
-
- Anne had to live through more than two weeks, as it happened.
- Almost a month having elapsed since the liniment cake episode,
- it was high time for her to get into fresh trouble of some sort,
- little mistakes, such as absentmindedly emptying a pan of skim
- milk into a basket of yarn balls in the pantry instead of into
- the pigs' bucket, and walking clean over the edge of the log
- bridge into the brook while wrapped in imaginative reverie, not
- really being worth counting.
-
- A week after the tea at the manse Diana Barry gave a party.
-
- "Small and select," Anne assured Marilla. "Just the girls in our class."
-
- They had a very good time and nothing untoward happened until after tea,
- when they found themselves in the Barry garden, a little tired of all
- their games and ripe for any enticing form of mischief which might
- present itself. This presently took the form of "daring."
-
- Daring was the fashionable amusement among the Avonlea small fry
- just then. It had begun among the boys, but soon spread to the girls,
- and all the silly things that were done in Avonlea that summer because
- the doers thereof were "dared" to do them would fill a book by themselves.
-
- First of all Carrie Sloane dared Ruby Gillis to climb to a
- certain point in the huge old willow tree before the front door;
- which Ruby Gillis, albeit in mortal dread of the fat green
- caterpillars with which said tree was infested and with the fear
- of her mother before her eyes if she should tear her new muslin
- dress, nimbly did, to the discomfiture of the aforesaid Carrie Sloane.
- Then Josie Pye dared Jane Andrews to hop on her left leg around
- the garden without stopping once or putting her right foot to the
- ground; which Jane Andrews gamely tried to do, but gave out at
- the third corner and had to confess herself defeated.
-
- Josie's triumph being rather more pronounced than good taste
- permitted, Anne Shirley dared her to walk along the top of the
- board fence which bounded the garden to the east. Now, to "walk"
- board fences requires more skill and steadiness of head and heel
- than one might suppose who has never tried it. But Josie Pye, if
- deficient in some qualities that make for popularity, had at
- least a natural and inborn gift, duly cultivated, for walking
- board fences. Josie walked the Barry fence with an airy
- unconcern which seemed to imply that a little thing like that
- wasn't worth a "dare." Reluctant admiration greeted her exploit,
- for most of the other girls could appreciate it, having suffered
- many things themselves in their efforts to walk fences. Josie
- descended from her perch, flushed with victory, and darted a
- defiant glance at Anne.
-
- Anne tossed her red braids.
-
- "I don't think it's such a very wonderful thing to walk a little,
- low, board fence," she said. "I knew a girl in Marysville who
- could walk the ridgepole of a roof."
-
- "I don't believe it," said Josie flatly. "I don't believe
- anybody could walk a ridgepole. YOU couldn't, anyhow."
-
- "Couldn't I?" cried Anne rashly.
-
- "Then I dare you to do it," said Josie defiantly. "I dare you to
- climb up there and walk the ridgepole of Mr. Barry's kitchen roof."
-
- Anne turned pale, but there was clearly only one thing to be done.
- She walked toward the house, where a ladder was leaning against the
- kitchen roof. All the fifth-class girls said, "Oh!" partly in
- excitement, partly in dismay.
-
- "Don't you do it, Anne," entreated Diana. "You'll fall off
- and be killed. Never mind Josie Pye. It isn't fair to dare
- anybody to do anything so dangerous."
-
- "I must do it. My honor is at stake," said Anne solemnly.
- "I shall walk that ridgepole, Diana, or perish in the attempt.
- If I am killed you are to have my pearl bead ring."
-
- Anne climbed the ladder amid breathless silence, gained the
- ridgepole, balanced herself uprightly on that precarious footing,
- and started to walk along it, dizzily conscious that she was
- uncomfortably high up in the world and that walking ridgepoles
- was not a thing in which your imagination helped you out much.
- Nevertheless, she managed to take several steps before the
- catastrophe came. Then she swayed, lost her balance, stumbled,
- staggered, and fell, sliding down over the sun-baked roof and
- crashing off it through the tangle of Virginia creeper beneath--
- all before the dismayed circle below could give a simultaneous,
- terrified shriek.
-
- If Anne had tumbled off the roof on the side up which she had
- ascended Diana would probably have fallen heir to the pearl bead
- ring then and there. Fortunately she fell on the other side,
- where the roof extended down over the porch so nearly to the
- ground that a fall therefrom was a much less serious thing.
- Nevertheless, when Diana and the other girls had rushed frantically
- around the house--except Ruby Gillis, who remained as if rooted to
- the ground and went into hysterics--they found Anne lying all white
- and limp among the wreck and ruin of the Virginia creeper.
-
- "Anne, are you killed?" shrieked Diana, throwing herself on her
- knees beside her friend. "Oh, Anne, dear Anne, speak just one
- word to me and tell me if you're killed."
-
- To the immense relief of all the girls, and especially of Josie Pye,
- who, in spite of lack of imagination, had been seized with horrible
- visions of a future branded as the girl who was the cause of Anne Shirley's
- early and tragic death, Anne sat dizzily up and answered uncertainly:
-
- "No, Diana, I am not killed, but I think I am rendered unconscious."
-
- "Where?" sobbed Carrie Sloane. "Oh, where, Anne?" Before Anne
- could answer Mrs. Barry appeared on the scene. At sight of her
- Anne tried to scramble to her feet, but sank back again with a
- sharp little cry of pain.
-
- "What's the matter? Where have you hurt yourself?" demanded Mrs. Barry.
-
- "My ankle," gasped Anne. "Oh, Diana, please find your father and
- ask him to take me home. I know I can never walk there. And I'm
- sure I couldn't hop so far on one foot when Jane couldn't even hop
- around the garden."
-
- Marilla was out in the orchard picking a panful of summer apples
- when she saw Mr. Barry coming over the log bridge and up the
- slope, with Mrs. Barry beside him and a whole procession of
- little girls trailing after him. In his arms he carried Anne,
- whose head lay limply against his shoulder.
-
- At that moment Marilla had a revelation. In the sudden stab of
- fear that pierced her very heart she realized what Anne had come
- to mean to her. She would have admitted that she liked Anne--nay,
- that she was very fond of Anne. But now she knew as she hurried
- wildly down the slope that Anne was dearer to her than anything
- else on earth.
-
- "Mr. Barry, what has happened to her?" she gasped, more white and shaken
- than the self-contained, sensible Marilla had been for many years.
-
- Anne herself answered, lifting her head.
-
- "Don't be very frightened, Marilla. I was walking the ridgepole and
- I fell off. I expect I have sprained my ankle. But, Marilla, I might
- have broken my neck. Let us look on the bright side of things."
-
- "I might have known you'd go and do something of the sort when I
- let you go to that party," said Marilla, sharp and shrewish in
- her very relief. "Bring her in here, Mr. Barry, and lay her on
- the sofa. Mercy me, the child has gone and fainted!"
-
- It was quite true. Overcome by the pain of her injury, Anne had
- one more of her wishes granted to her. She had fainted dead away.
-
- Matthew, hastily summoned from the harvest field, was straightway
- dispatched for the doctor, who in due time came, to discover that
- the injury was more serious than they had supposed. Anne's ankle
- was broken.
-
- That night, when Marilla went up to the east gable, where a white-faced
- girl was lying, a plaintive voice greeted her from the bed.
-
- "Aren't you very sorry for me, Marilla?"
-
- "It was your own fault," said Marilla, twitching down the blind
- and lighting a lamp.
-
- "And that is just why you should be sorry for me," said Anne,
- "because the thought that it is all my own fault is what makes it
- so hard. If I could blame it on anybody I would feel so much
- better. But what would you have done, Marilla, if you had been
- dared to walk a ridgepole?"
-
- "I'd have stayed on good firm ground and let them dare away.
- Such absurdity!" said Marilla.
-
- Anne sighed.
-
- "But you have such strength of mind, Marilla. I haven't. I just
- felt that I couldn't bear Josie Pye's scorn. She would have
- crowed over me all my life. And I think I have been punished so
- much that you needn't be very cross with me, Marilla. It's not a
- bit nice to faint, after all. And the doctor hurt me dreadfully
- when he was setting my ankle. I won't be able to go around for
- six or seven weeks and I'll miss the new lady teacher. She won't
- be new any more by the time I'm able to go to school. And Gil--
- everybody will get ahead of me in class. Oh, I am an afflicted
- mortal. But I'll try to bear it all bravely if only you won't
- be cross with me, Marilla."
-
- "There, there, I'm not cross," said Marilla. "You're an unlucky
- child, there's no doubt about that; but as you say, you'll have
- the suffering of it. Here now, try and eat some supper."
-
- "Isn't it fortunate I've got such an imagination?" said Anne.
- "It will help me through splendidly, I expect. What do people
- who haven't any imagination do when they break their bones, do
- you suppose, Marilla?"
-
- Anne had good reason to bless her imagination many a time and oft
- during the tedious seven weeks that followed. But she was not
- solely dependent on it. She had many visitors and not a day
- passed without one or more of the schoolgirls dropping in to
- bring her flowers and books and tell her all the happenings in
- the juvenile world of Avonlea.
-
- "Everybody has been so good and kind, Marilla," sighed Anne
- happily, on the day when she could first limp across the floor.
- "It isn't very pleasant to be laid up; but there is a bright side
- to it, Marilla. You find out how many friends you have. Why,
- even Superintendent Bell came to see me, and he's really a very
- fine man. Not a kindred spirit, of course; but still I like him
- and I'm awfully sorry I ever criticized his prayers. I believe
- now he really does mean them, only he has got into the habit of
- saying them as if he didn't. He could get over that if he'd take
- a little trouble. I gave him a good broad hint. I told him how
- hard I tried to make my own little private prayers interesting.
- He told me all about the time he broke his ankle when he was a
- boy. It does seem so strange to think of Superintendent Bell
- ever being a boy. Even my imagination has its limits, for I
- can't imagine THAT. When I try to imagine him as a boy I see him
- with gray whiskers and spectacles, just as he looks in Sunday
- school, only small. Now, it's so easy to imagine Mrs. Allan as
- a little girl. Mrs. Allan has been to see me fourteen times.
- Isn't that something to be proud of, Marilla? When a minister's
- wife has so many claims on her time! She is such a cheerful
- person to have visit you, too. She never tells you it's your own
- fault and she hopes you'll be a better girl on account of it.
- Mrs. Lynde always told me that when she came to see me; and she
- said it in a kind of way that made me feel she might hope I'd be
- a better girl but didn't really believe I would. Even Josie Pye
- came to see me. I received her as politely as I could, because I
- think she was sorry she dared me to walk a ridgepole. If I had
- been killed she would had to carry a dark burden of remorse all
- her life. Diana has been a faithful friend. She's been over
- every day to cheer my lonely pillow. But oh, I shall be so glad
- when I can go to school for I've heard such exciting things about
- the new teacher. The girls all think she is perfectly sweet.
- Diana says she has the loveliest fair curly hair and such
- fascinating eyes. She dresses beautifully, and her sleeve puffs
- are bigger than anybody else's in Avonlea. Every other Friday
- afternoon she has recitations and everybody has to say a piece or
- take part in a dialogue. Oh, it's just glorious to think of it.
- Josie Pye says she hates it but that is just because Josie has so
- little imagination. Diana and Ruby Gillis and Jane Andrews are
- preparing a dialogue, called `A Morning Visit,' for next Friday.
- And the Friday afternoons they don't have recitations Miss Stacy
- takes them all to the woods for a `field' day and they study
- ferns and flowers and birds. And they have physical culture
- exercises every morning and evening. Mrs. Lynde says she never
- heard of such goings on and it all comes of having a lady
- teacher. But I think it must be splendid and I believe I shall
- find that Miss Stacy is a kindred spirit."
-
- "There's one thing plain to be seen, Anne," said Marilla, "and
- that is that your fall off the Barry roof hasn't injured your
- tongue at all."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIV
-
- Miss Stacy and Her Pupils Get Up a Concert
-
-
- It was October again when Anne was ready to go back to school--a
- glorious October, all red and gold, with mellow mornings when the
- valleys were filled with delicate mists as if the spirit of
- autumn had poured them in for the sun to drain--amethyst, pearl,
- silver, rose, and smoke-blue. The dews were so heavy that the
- fields glistened like cloth of silver and there were such heaps
- of rustling leaves in the hollows of many-stemmed woods to run
- crisply through. The Birch Path was a canopy of yellow and the
- ferns were sear and brown all along it. There was a tang in the
- very air that inspired the hearts of small maidens tripping,
- unlike snails, swiftly and willingly to school; and it WAS jolly
- to be back again at the little brown desk beside Diana, with Ruby
- Gillis nodding across the aisle and Carrie Sloane sending up
- notes and Julia Bell passing a "chew" of gum down from the back
- seat. Anne drew a long breath of happiness as she sharpened her
- pencil and arranged her picture cards in her desk. Life was
- certainly very interesting.
-
- In the new teacher she found another true and helpful friend.
- Miss Stacy was a bright, sympathetic young woman with the happy
- gift of winning and holding the affections of her pupils and
- bringing out the best that was in them mentally and morally.
- Anne expanded like a flower under this wholesome influence and
- carried home to the admiring Matthew and the critical Marilla
- glowing accounts of schoolwork and aims.
-
- "I love Miss Stacy with my whole heart, Marilla. She is so
- ladylike and she has such a sweet voice. When she pronounces
- my name I feel INSTINCTIVELY that she's spelling it with an E.
- We had recitations this afternoon. I just wish you could have
- been there to hear me recite `Mary, Queen of Scots.' I just put
- my whole soul into it. Ruby Gillis told me coming home that the
- way I said the line, `Now for my father's arm,' she said, `my
- woman's heart farewell,' just made her blood run cold."
-
- "Well now, you might recite it for me some of these days, out in
- the barn," suggested Matthew.
-
- "Of course I will," said Anne meditatively, "but I won't be able
- to do it so well, I know. It won't be so exciting as it is when
- you have a whole schoolful before you hanging breathlessly on
- your words. I know I won't be able to make your blood run cold."
-
- "Mrs. Lynde says it made HER blood run cold to see the boys
- climbing to the very tops of those big trees on Bell's hill after
- crows' nests last Friday," said Marilla. "I wonder at Miss Stacy
- for encouraging it."
-
- "But we wanted a crow's nest for nature study," explained Anne.
- "That was on our field afternoon. Field afternoons are splendid,
- Marilla. And Miss Stacy explains everything so beautifully. We
- have to write compositions on our field afternoons and I write
- the best ones."
-
- "It's very vain of you to say so then. You'd better let your
- teacher say it."
-
- "But she DID say it, Marilla. And indeed I'm not vain about it.
- How can I be, when I'm such a dunce at geometry? Although I'm
- really beginning to see through it a little, too. Miss Stacy
- makes it so clear. Still, I'll never be good at it and I
- assure you it is a humbling reflection. But I love writing
- compositions. Mostly Miss Stacy lets us choose our own subjects;
- but next week we are to write a composition on some remarkable
- person. It's hard to choose among so many remarkable people who
- have lived. Mustn't it be splendid to be remarkable and have
- compositions written about you after you're dead? Oh, I would
- dearly love to be remarkable. I think when I grow up I'll be a
- trained nurse and go with the Red Crosses to the field of battle
- as a messenger of mercy. That is, if I don't go out as a foreign
- missionary. That would be very romantic, but one would have to
- be very good to be a missionary, and that would be a stumbling
- block. We have physical culture exercises every day, too. They
- make you graceful and promote digestion."
-
- "Promote fiddlesticks!" said Marilla, who honestly thought it was
- all nonsense.
-
- But all the field afternoons and recitation Fridays and physical
- culture contortions paled before a project which Miss Stacy
- brought forward in November. This was that the scholars of
- Avonlea school should get up a concert and hold it in the hall on
- Christmas Night, for the laudable purpose of helping to pay for a
- schoolhouse flag. The pupils one and all taking graciously to
- this plan, the preparations for a program were begun at once.
- And of all the excited performers-elect none was so excited as
- Anne Shirley, who threw herself into the undertaking heart and
- soul, hampered as she was by Marilla's disapproval. Marilla
- thought it all rank foolishness.
-
- "It's just filling your heads up with nonsense and taking time
- that ought to be put on your lessons," she grumbled. "I don't
- approve of children's getting up concerts and racing about to
- practices. It makes them vain and forward and fond of gadding."
-
- "But think of the worthy object," pleaded Anne. "A flag will
- cultivate a spirit of patriotism, Marilla."
-
- "Fudge! There's precious little patriotism in the thoughts of any
- of you. All you want is a good time."
-
- "Well, when you can combine patriotism and fun, isn't it all
- right? Of course it's real nice to be getting up a concert.
- We're going to have six choruses and Diana is to sing a solo.
- I'm in two dialogues--`The Society for the Suppression of Gossip'
- and `The Fairy Queen.' The boys are going to have a dialogue
- too. And I'm to have two recitations, Marilla. I just tremble
- when I think of it, but it's a nice thrilly kind of tremble. And
- we're to have a tableau at the last--`Faith, Hope and Charity.'
- Diana and Ruby and I are to be in it, all draped in white with
- flowing hair. I'm to be Hope, with my hands clasped--so--and my
- eyes uplifted. I'm going to practice my recitations in the
- garret. Don't be alarmed if you hear me groaning. I have to
- groan heartrendingly in one of them, and it's really hard to get
- up a good artistic groan, Marilla. Josie Pye is sulky because
- she didn't get the part she wanted in the dialogue. She wanted
- to be the fairy queen. That would have been ridiculous, for who
- ever heard of a fairy queen as fat as Josie? Fairy queens must
- be slender. Jane Andrews is to be the queen and I am to be one
- of her maids of honor. Josie says she thinks a red-haired fairy
- is just as ridiculous as a fat one, but I do not let myself mind
- what Josie says. I'm to have a wreath of white roses on my hair
- and Ruby Gillis is going to lend me her slippers because I
- haven't any of my own. It's necessary for fairies to have
- slippers, you know. You couldn't imagine a fairy wearing boots,
- could you? Especially with copper toes? We are going to
- decorate the hall with creeping spruce and fir mottoes with pink
- tissue-paper roses in them. And we are all to march in two by
- two after the audience is seated, while Emma White plays a march
- on the organ. Oh, Marilla, I know you are not so enthusiastic
- about it as I am, but don't you hope your little Anne will
- distinguish herself?"
-
- "All I hope is that you'll behave yourself. I'll be heartily
- glad when all this fuss is over and you'll be able to settle
- down. You are simply good for nothing just now with your head
- stuffed full of dialogues and groans and tableaus. As for your
- tongue, it's a marvel it's not clean worn out."
-
- Anne sighed and betook herself to the back yard, over which a
- young new moon was shining through the leafless poplar boughs
- from an apple-green western sky, and where Matthew was splitting
- wood. Anne perched herself on a block and talked the concert
- over with him, sure of an appreciative and sympathetic listener
- in this instance at least.
-
- "Well now, I reckon it's going to be a pretty good concert. And
- I expect you'll do your part fine," he said, smiling down into
- her eager, vivacious little face. Anne smiled back at him.
- Those two were the best of friends and Matthew thanked his stars
- many a time and oft that he had nothing to do with bringing her
- up. That was Marilla's exclusive duty; if it had been his he
- would have been worried over frequent conflicts between
- inclination and said duty. As it was, he was free to, "spoil
- Anne"--Marilla's phrasing--as much as he liked. But it was not
- such a bad arrangement after all; a little "appreciation"
- sometimes does quite as much good as all the conscientious
- "bringing up" in the world.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXV
-
- Matthew Insists on Puffed Sleeves
-
-
- Matthew was having a bad ten minutes of it. He had come into the
- kitchen, in the twilight of a cold, gray December evening, and
- had sat down in the woodbox corner to take off his heavy boots,
- unconscious of the fact that Anne and a bevy of her schoolmates
- were having a practice of "The Fairy Queen" in the sitting room.
- Presently they came trooping through the hall and out into the
- kitchen, laughing and chattering gaily. They did not see
- Matthew, who shrank bashfully back into the shadows beyond the
- woodbox with a boot in one hand and a bootjack in the other, and
- he watched them shyly for the aforesaid ten minutes as they put on
- caps and jackets and talked about the dialogue and the concert.
- Anne stood among them, bright eyed and animated as they;
- but Matthew suddenly became conscious that there was something
- about her different from her mates. And what worried Matthew
- was that the difference impressed him as being something that
- should not exist. Anne had a brighter face, and bigger,
- starrier eyes, and more delicate features than the other; even
- shy, unobservant Matthew had learned to take note of these
- things; but the difference that disturbed him did not consist in
- any of these respects. Then in what did it consist?
-
- Matthew was haunted by this question long after the girls had gone,
- arm in arm, down the long, hard-frozen lane and Anne had betaken
- herself to her books. He could not refer it to Marilla, who,
- he felt, would be quite sure to sniff scornfully and remark that
- the only difference she saw between Anne and the other girls was
- that they sometimes kept their tongues quiet while Anne never did.
- This, Matthew felt, would be no great help.
-
- He had recourse to his pipe that evening to help him study it
- out, much to Marilla's disgust. After two hours of smoking and
- hard reflection Matthew arrived at a solution of his problem.
- Anne was not dressed like the other girls!
-
- The more Matthew thought about the matter the more he was
- convinced that Anne never had been dressed like the other
- girls--never since she had come to Green Gables. Marilla kept
- her clothed in plain, dark dresses, all made after the same
- unvarying pattern. If Matthew knew there was such a thing as
- fashion in dress it was as much as he did; but he was quite sure
- that Anne's sleeves did not look at all like the sleeves the
- other girls wore. He recalled the cluster of little girls he had
- seen around her that evening--all gay in waists of red and blue
- and pink and white--and he wondered why Marilla always kept her
- so plainly and soberly gowned.
-
- Of course, it must be all right. Marilla knew best and Marilla was
- bringing her up. Probably some wise, inscrutable motive was to be
- served thereby. But surely it would do no harm to let the child
- have one pretty dress--something like Diana Barry always wore.
- Matthew decided that he would give her one; that surely could
- not be objected to as an unwarranted putting in of his oar.
- Christmas was only a fortnight off. A nice new dress would be
- the very thing for a present. Matthew, with a sigh of
- satisfaction, put away his pipe and went to bed, while Marilla
- opened all the doors and aired the house.
-
- The very next evening Matthew betook himself to Carmody to buy
- the dress, determined to get the worst over and have done with it.
- It would be, he felt assured, no trifling ordeal. There were some
- things Matthew could buy and prove himself no mean bargainer;
- but he knew he would be at the mercy of shopkeepers when it came
- to buying a girl's dress.
-
- After much cogitation Matthew resolved to go to Samuel Lawson's
- store instead of William Blair's. To be sure, the Cuthberts
- always had gone to William Blair's; it was almost as much a
- matter of conscience with them as to attend the Presbyterian
- church and vote Conservative. But William Blair's two daughters
- frequently waited on customers there and Matthew held them in
- absolute dread. He could contrive to deal with them when he knew
- exactly what he wanted and could point it out; but in such a
- matter as this, requiring explanation and consultation, Matthew
- felt that he must be sure of a man behind the counter. So he
- would go to Lawson's, where Samuel or his son would wait on him.
-
- Alas! Matthew did not know that Samuel, in the recent expansion
- of his business, had set up a lady clerk also; she was a niece of
- his wife's and a very dashing young person indeed, with a huge,
- drooping pompadour, big, rolling brown eyes, and a most extensive
- and bewildering smile. She was dressed with exceeding smartness
- and wore several bangle bracelets that glittered and rattled and
- tinkled with every movement of her hands. Matthew was covered
- with confusion at finding her there at all; and those bangles
- completely wrecked his wits at one fell swoop.
-
- "What can I do for you this evening, Mr. Cuthbert?" Miss Lucilla
- Harris inquired, briskly and ingratiatingly, tapping the counter
- with both hands.
-
- "Have you any--any--any--well now, say any garden rakes?"
- stammered Matthew.
-
- Miss Harris looked somewhat surprised, as well she might, to hear
- a man inquiring for garden rakes in the middle of December.
-
- "I believe we have one or two left over," she said, "but they're
- upstairs in the lumber room. I'll go and see." During her
- absence Matthew collected his scattered senses for another effort.
-
- When Miss Harris returned with the rake and cheerfully inquired:
- "Anything else tonight, Mr. Cuthbert?" Matthew took his courage
- in both hands and replied: "Well now, since you suggest it, I
- might as well--take--that is--look at--buy some--some hayseed."
-
- Miss Harris had heard Matthew Cuthbert called odd.
- She now concluded that he was entirely crazy.
-
- "We only keep hayseed in the spring," she explained loftily.
- "We've none on hand just now."
-
- "Oh, certainly--certainly--just as you say," stammered unhappy
- Matthew, seizing the rake and making for the door. At the
- threshold he recollected that he had not paid for it and he
- turned miserably back. While Miss Harris was counting out his
- change he rallied his powers for a final desperate attempt.
-
- "Well now--if it isn't too much trouble--I might as well--that
- is--I'd like to look at--at--some sugar."
-
- "White or brown?" queried Miss Harris patiently.
-
- "Oh--well now--brown," said Matthew feebly.
-
- "There's a barrel of it over there," said Miss Harris, shaking
- her bangles at it. "It's the only kind we have."
-
- "I'll--I'll take twenty pounds of it," said Matthew, with beads
- of perspiration standing on his forehead.
-
- Matthew had driven halfway home before he was his own man again.
- It had been a gruesome experience, but it served him right, he
- thought, for committing the heresy of going to a strange store.
- When he reached home he hid the rake in the tool house, but the
- sugar he carried in to Marilla.
-
- "Brown sugar!" exclaimed Marilla. "Whatever possessed you to get
- so much? You know I never use it except for the hired man's
- porridge or black fruit cake. Jerry's gone and I've made my cake
- long ago. It's not good sugar, either--it's coarse and
- dark--William Blair doesn't usually keep sugar like that."
-
- "I--I thought it might come in handy sometime," said Matthew,
- making good his escape.
-
- When Matthew came to think the matter over he decided that a
- woman was required to cope with the situation. Marilla was out
- of the question. Matthew felt sure she would throw cold water on
- his project at once. Remained only Mrs. Lynde; for of no other
- woman in Avonlea would Matthew have dared to ask advice. To Mrs.
- Lynde he went accordingly, and that good lady promptly took the
- matter out of the harassed man's hands.
-
- "Pick out a dress for you to give Anne? To be sure I will. I'm
- going to Carmody tomorrow and I'll attend to it. Have you
- something particular in mind? No? Well, I'll just go by my own
- judgment then. I believe a nice rich brown would just suit Anne,
- and William Blair has some new gloria in that's real pretty.
- Perhaps you'd like me to make it up for her, too, seeing that if
- Marilla was to make it Anne would probably get wind of it before
- the time and spoil the surprise? Well, I'll do it. No, it isn't
- a mite of trouble. I like sewing. I'll make it to fit my niece,
- Jenny Gillis, for she and Anne are as like as two peas as far as
- figure goes."
-
- "Well now, I'm much obliged," said Matthew, "and--and--I
- dunno--but I'd like--I think they make the sleeves different
- nowadays to what they used to be. If it wouldn't be asking too
- much I--I'd like them made in the new way."
-
- "Puffs? Of course. You needn't worry a speck more about it,
- Matthew. I'll make it up in the very latest fashion," said Mrs.
- Lynde. To herself she added when Matthew had gone:
-
- "It'll be a real satisfaction to see that poor child wearing
- something decent for once. The way Marilla dresses her is
- positively ridiculous, that's what, and I've ached to tell her
- so plainly a dozen times. I've held my tongue though, for I can
- see Marilla doesn't want advice and she thinks she knows more
- about bringing children up than I do for all she's an old maid.
- But that's always the way. Folks that has brought up children
- know that there's no hard and fast method in the world that'll suit
- every child. But them as never have think it's all as plain and
- easy as Rule of Three--just set your three terms down so fashion,
- and the sum'll work out correct. But flesh and blood don't come
- under the head of arithmetic and that's where Marilla Cuthbert
- makes her mistake. I suppose she's trying to cultivate a spirit
- of humility in Anne by dressing her as she does; but it's more
- likely to cultivate envy and discontent. I'm sure the child must
- feel the difference between her clothes and the other girls'.
- But to think of Matthew taking notice of it! That man is waking
- up after being asleep for over sixty years."
-
- Marilla knew all the following fortnight that Matthew had
- something on his mind, but what it was she could not guess,
- until Christmas Eve, when Mrs. Lynde brought up the new dress.
- Marilla behaved pretty well on the whole, although it is very
- likely she distrusted Mrs. Lynde's diplomatic explanation that
- she had made the dress because Matthew was afraid Anne would find
- out about it too soon if Marilla made it.
-
- "So this is what Matthew has been looking so mysterious over and
- grinning about to himself for two weeks, is it?" she said a little
- stiffly but tolerantly. "I knew he was up to some foolishness.
- Well, I must say I don't think Anne needed any more dresses.
- I made her three good, warm, serviceable ones this fall, and
- anything more is sheer extravagance. There's enough material
- in those sleeves alone to make a waist, I declare there is.
- You'll just pamper Anne's vanity, Matthew, and she's as vain
- as a peacock now. Well, I hope she'll be satisfied at last, for
- I know she's been hankering after those silly sleeves ever since
- they came in, although she never said a word after the first.
- The puffs have been getting bigger and more ridiculous right
- along; they're as big as balloons now. Next year anybody who
- wears them will have to go through a door sideways."
-
- Christmas morning broke on a beautiful white world. It had been
- a very mild December and people had looked forward to a green
- Christmas; but just enough snow fell softly in the night to
- transfigure Avonlea. Anne peeped out from her frosted gable
- window with delighted eyes. The firs in the Haunted Wood were
- all feathery and wonderful; the birches and wild cherry trees
- were outlined in pearl; the plowed fields were stretches of snowy
- dimples; and there was a crisp tang in the air that was glorious.
- Anne ran downstairs singing until her voice reechoed through Green Gables.
-
- "Merry Christmas, Marilla! Merry Christmas, Matthew!
- Isn't it a lovely Christmas? I'm so glad it's white.
- Any other kind of Christmas doesn't seem real, does it?
- I don't like green Christmases. They're not green--
- they're just nasty faded browns and grays. What makes
- people call them green? Why--why--Matthew, is that for me?
- Oh, Matthew!"
-
- Matthew had sheepishly unfolded the dress from its paper
- swathings and held it out with a deprecatory glance at Marilla,
- who feigned to be contemptuously filling the teapot, but
- nevertheless watched the scene out of the corner of her eye with
- a rather interested air.
-
- Anne took the dress and looked at it in reverent silence. Oh,
- how pretty it was--a lovely soft brown gloria with all the gloss
- of silk; a skirt with dainty frills and shirrings; a waist
- elaborately pintucked in the most fashionable way, with a little
- ruffle of filmy lace at the neck. But the sleeves--they were the
- crowning glory! Long elbow cuffs, and above them two beautiful
- puffs divided by rows of shirring and bows of brown-silk ribbon.
-
- "That's a Christmas present for you, Anne," said Matthew shyly.
- "Why--why--Anne, don't you like it? Well now--well now."
-
- For Anne's eyes had suddenly filled with tears.
-
- "Like it! Oh, Matthew!" Anne laid the dress over a chair and
- clasped her hands. "Matthew, it's perfectly exquisite. Oh, I
- can never thank you enough. Look at those sleeves! Oh, it seems
- to me this must be a happy dream."
-
- "Well, well, let us have breakfast," interrupted Marilla. "I
- must say, Anne, I don't think you needed the dress; but since
- Matthew has got it for you, see that you take good care of it.
- There's a hair ribbon Mrs. Lynde left for you. It's brown, to
- match the dress. Come now, sit in."
-
- "I don't see how I'm going to eat breakfast," said Anne rapturously.
- "Breakfast seems so commonplace at such an exciting moment. I'd
- rather feast my eyes on that dress. I'm so glad that puffed sleeves
- are still fashionable. It did seem to me that I'd never get over it
- if they went out before I had a dress with them. I'd never have felt
- quite satisfied, you see. It was lovely of Mrs. Lynde to give me
- the ribbon too. I feel that I ought to be a very good girl indeed.
- It's at times like this I'm sorry I'm not a model little girl;
- and I always resolve that I will be in future. But somehow it's
- hard to carry out your resolutions when irresistible temptations come.
- Still, I really will make an extra effort after this."
-
- When the commonplace breakfast was over Diana appeared, crossing
- the white log bridge in the hollow, a gay little figure in her
- crimson ulster. Anne flew down the slope to meet her.
-
- "Merry Christmas, Diana! And oh, it's a wonderful Christmas. I've
- something splendid to show you. Matthew has given me the loveliest
- dress, with SUCH sleeves. I couldn't even imagine any nicer."
-
- "I've got something more for you," said Diana breathlessly.
- "Here-- this box. Aunt Josephine sent us out a big box with ever
- so many things in it--and this is for you. I'd have brought it over
- last night, but it didn't come until after dark, and I never feel
- very comfortable coming through the Haunted Wood in the dark now."
-
- Anne opened the box and peeped in. First a card with "For the
- Anne-girl and Merry Christmas," written on it; and then, a pair
- of the daintiest little kid slippers, with beaded toes and satin
- bows and glistening buckles.
-
- "Oh," said Anne, "Diana, this is too much. I must be dreaming."
-
- "I call it providential," said Diana. "You won't have to borrow
- Ruby's slippers now, and that's a blessing, for they're two sizes
- too big for you, and it would be awful to hear a fairy shuffling.
- Josie Pye would be delighted. Mind you, Rob Wright went home
- with Gertie Pye from the practice night before last. Did you
- ever hear anything equal to that?"
-
- All the Avonlea scholars were in a fever of excitement that day,
- for the hall had to be decorated and a last grand rehearsal held.
-
- The concert came off in the evening and was a pronounced success.
- The little hall was crowded; all the performers did excellently well,
- but Anne was the bright particular star of the occasion, as even envy,
- in the shape of Josie Pye, dared not deny.
-
- "Oh, hasn't it been a brilliant evening?" sighed Anne, when it was all
- over and she and Diana were walking home together under a dark, starry sky.
-
- "Everything went off very well," said Diana practically. "I guess
- we must have made as much as ten dollars. Mind you, Mr. Allan
- is going to send an account of it to the Charlottetown papers."
-
- "Oh, Diana, will we really see our names in print? It makes me
- thrill to think of it. Your solo was perfectly elegant, Diana.
- I felt prouder than you did when it was encored. I just said to
- myself, `It is my dear bosom friend who is so honored.'"
-
- "Well, your recitations just brought down the house, Anne.
- That sad one was simply splendid."
-
- "Oh, I was so nervous, Diana. When Mr. Allan called out my name
- I really cannot tell how I ever got up on that platform. I felt
- as if a million eyes were looking at me and through me, and for
- one dreadful moment I was sure I couldn't begin at all. Then I
- thought of my lovely puffed sleeves and took courage. I knew
- that I must live up to those sleeves, Diana. So I started in,
- and my voice seemed to be coming from ever so far away. I just
- felt like a parrot. It's providential that I practiced those
- recitations so often up in the garret, or I'd never have been
- able to get through. Did I groan all right?"
-
- "Yes, indeed, you groaned lovely," assured Diana.
-
- "I saw old Mrs. Sloane wiping away tears when I sat down.
- It was splendid to think I had touched somebody's heart.
- It's so romantic to take part in a concert, isn't it?
- Oh, it's been a very memorable occasion indeed."
-
- "Wasn't the boys' dialogue fine?" said Diana. "Gilbert Blythe
- was just splendid. Anne, I do think it's awful mean the way you
- treat Gil. Wait till I tell you. When you ran off the platform
- after the fairy dialogue one of your roses fell out of your hair.
- I saw Gil pick it up and put it in his breast pocket. There now.
- You're so romantic that I'm sure you ought to be pleased at that."
-
- "It's nothing to me what that person does," said Anne loftily.
- "I simply never waste a thought on him, Diana."
-
- That night Marilla and Matthew, who had been out to a concert for
- the first time in twenty years, sat for a while by the kitchen
- fire after Anne had gone to bed.
-
- "Well now, I guess our Anne did as well as any of them," said
- Matthew proudly.
-
- "Yes, she did," admitted Marilla. "She's a bright child,
- Matthew. And she looked real nice too. I've been kind of
- opposed to this concert scheme, but I suppose there's no real
- harm in it after all. Anyhow, I was proud of Anne tonight,
- although I'm not going to tell her so."
-
- "Well now, I was proud of her and I did tell her so 'fore she
- went upstairs," said Matthew. "We must see what we can do for
- her some of these days, Marilla. I guess she'll need something
- more than Avonlea school by and by."
-
- "There's time enough to think of that," said Marilla. "She's
- only thirteen in March. Though tonight it struck me she was
- growing quite a big girl. Mrs. Lynde made that dress a mite too
- long, and it makes Anne look so tall. She's quick to learn and I
- guess the best thing we can do for her will be to send her to
- Queen's after a spell. But nothing need be said about that for a
- year or two yet."
-
- "Well now, it'll do no harm to be thinking it over off and on,"
- said Matthew. "Things like that are all the better for lots of
- thinking over."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVI
-
- The Story Club Is Formed
-
-
- Junior Avonlea found it hard to settle down to humdrum existence
- again. To Anne in particular things seemed fearfully flat,
- stale, and unprofitable after the goblet of excitement she had
- been sipping for weeks. Could she go back to the former quiet
- pleasures of those faraway days before the concert? At first, as
- she told Diana, she did not really think she could.
-
- "I'm positively certain, Diana, that life can never be quite the
- same again as it was in those olden days," she said mournfully,
- as if referring to a period of at least fifty years back.
- "Perhaps after a while I'll get used to it, but I'm afraid
- concerts spoil people for everyday life. I suppose that is why
- Marilla disapproves of them. Marilla is such a sensible woman.
- It must be a great deal better to be sensible; but still, I don't
- believe I'd really want to be a sensible person, because they are
- so unromantic. Mrs. Lynde says there is no danger of my ever
- being one, but you can never tell. I feel just now that I may
- grow up to be sensible yet. But perhaps that is only because I'm
- tired. I simply couldn't sleep last night for ever so long. I
- just lay awake and imagined the concert over and over again.
- That's one splendid thing about such affairs--it's so lovely to
- look back to them."
-
- Eventually, however, Avonlea school slipped back into its old
- groove and took up its old interests. To be sure, the concert
- left traces. Ruby Gillis and Emma White, who had quarreled over
- a point of precedence in their platform seats, no longer sat at
- the same desk, and a promising friendship of three years was
- broken up. Josie Pye and Julia Bell did not "speak" for three
- months, because Josie Pye had told Bessie Wright that Julia Bell's
- bow when she got up to recite made her think of a chicken jerking
- its head, and Bessie told Julia. None of the Sloanes would have
- any dealings with the Bells, because the Bells had declared that
- the Sloanes had too much to do in the program, and the Sloanes
- had retorted that the Bells were not capable of doing the little
- they had to do properly. Finally, Charlie Sloane fought Moody
- Spurgeon MacPherson, because Moody Spurgeon had said that Anne
- Shirley put on airs about her recitations, and Moody Spurgeon
- was "licked"; consequently Moody Spurgeon's sister, Ella May,
- would not "speak" to Anne Shirley all the rest of the winter.
- With the exception of these trifling frictions, work in Miss
- Stacy's little kingdom went on with regularity and smoothness.
-
- The winter weeks slipped by. It was an unusually mild winter,
- with so little snow that Anne and Diana could go to school nearly
- every day by way of the Birch Path. On Anne's birthday they were
- tripping lightly down it, keeping eyes and ears alert amid all
- their chatter, for Miss Stacy had told them that they must soon
- write a composition on "A Winter's Walk in the Woods," and it
- behooved them to be observant.
-
- "Just think, Diana, I'm thirteen years old today," remarked Anne
- in an awed voice. "I can scarcely realize that I'm in my teens.
- When I woke this morning it seemed to me that everything must be
- different. You've been thirteen for a month, so I suppose it
- doesn't seem such a novelty to you as it does to me. It makes
- life seem so much more interesting. In two more years I'll be
- really grown up. It's a great comfort to think that I'll be able
- to use big words then without being laughed at."
-
- "Ruby Gillis says she means to have a beau as soon as she's fifteen,"
- said Diana.
-
- "Ruby Gillis thinks of nothing but beaus," said Anne disdainfully.
- "She's actually delighted when anyone writes her name up in a
- take-notice for all she pretends to be so mad. But I'm afraid that
- is an uncharitable speech. Mrs. Allan says we should never make
- uncharitable speeches; but they do slip out so often before you
- think, don't they? I simply can't talk about Josie Pye without
- making an uncharitable speech, so I never mention her at all.
- You may have noticed that. I'm trying to be as much like
- Mrs. Allan as I possibly can, for I think she's perfect.
- Mr. Allan thinks so too. Mrs. Lynde says he just worships
- the ground she treads on and she doesn't really think it
- right for a minister to set his affections so much on a mortal
- being. But then, Diana, even ministers are human and have their
- besetting sins just like everybody else. I had such an
- interesting talk with Mrs. Allan about besetting sins last
- Sunday afternoon. There are just a few things it's proper to
- talk about on Sundays and that is one of them. My besetting sin
- is imagining too much and forgetting my duties. I'm striving
- very hard to overcome it and now that I'm really thirteen perhaps
- I'll get on better."
-
- "In four more years we'll be able to put our hair up," said Diana.
- "Alice Bell is only sixteen and she is wearing hers up, but I think
- that's ridiculous. I shall wait until I'm seventeen."
-
- "If I had Alice Bell's crooked nose," said Anne decidedly,
- "I wouldn't--but there! I won't say what I was going to because
- it was extremely uncharitable. Besides, I was comparing it with
- my own nose and that's vanity. I'm afraid I think too much about
- my nose ever since I heard that compliment about it long ago.
- It really is a great comfort to me. Oh, Diana, look, there's a
- rabbit. That's something to remember for our woods composition.
- I really think the woods are just as lovely in winter as in
- summer. They're so white and still, as if they were asleep
- and dreaming pretty dreams."
-
- "I won't mind writing that composition when its time comes,"
- sighed Diana. "I can manage to write about the woods, but the
- one we're to hand in Monday is terrible. The idea of Miss Stacy
- telling us to write a story out of our own heads!"
-
- "Why, it's as easy as wink," said Anne.
-
- "It's easy for you because you have an imagination," retorted
- Diana, "but what would you do if you had been born without one?
- I suppose you have your composition all done?"
-
- Anne nodded, trying hard not to look virtuously complacent and
- failing miserably.
-
- "I wrote it last Monday evening. It's called `The Jealous Rival;
- or In Death Not Divided.' I read it to Marilla and she said it was
- stuff and nonsense. Then I read it to Matthew and he said it was fine.
- That is the kind of critic I like. It's a sad, sweet story. I just
- cried like a child while I was writing it. It's about two beautiful
- maidens called Cordelia Montmorency and Geraldine Seymour who lived
- in the same village and were devotedly attached to each other.
- Cordelia was a regal brunette with a coronet of midnight hair and
- duskly flashing eyes. Geraldine was a queenly blonde with hair like
- spun gold and velvety purple eyes."
-
- "I never saw anybody with purple eyes," said Diana dubiously.
-
- "Neither did I. I just imagined them. I wanted something out of the
- common. Geraldine had an alabaster brow too. I've found out what an
- alabaster brow is. That is one of the advantages of being thirteen.
- You know so much more than you did when you were only twelve."
-
- "Well, what became of Cordelia and Geraldine?" asked Diana,
- who was beginning to feel rather interested in their fate.
-
- "They grew in beauty side by side until they were sixteen. Then
- Bertram DeVere came to their native village and fell in love with
- the fair Geraldine. He saved her life when her horse ran away
- with her in a carriage, and she fainted in his arms and he
- carried her home three miles; because, you understand, the
- carriage was all smashed up. I found it rather hard to imagine
- the proposal because I had no experience to go by. I asked Ruby
- Gillis if she knew anything about how men proposed because I
- thought she'd likely be an authority on the subject, having so
- many sisters married. Ruby told me she was hid in the hall
- pantry when Malcolm Andres proposed to her sister Susan. She
- said Malcolm told Susan that his dad had given him the farm in
- his own name and then said, `What do you say, darling pet, if we
- get hitched this fall?' And Susan said, `Yes--no--I don't
- know--let me see'--and there they were, engaged as quick as that.
- But I didn't think that sort of a proposal was a very romantic one,
- so in the end I had to imagine it out as well as I could. I made
- it very flowery and poetical and Bertram went on his knees,
- although Ruby Gillis says it isn't done nowadays. Geraldine
- accepted him in a speech a page long. I can tell you I took a
- lot of trouble with that speech. I rewrote it five times and I
- look upon it as my masterpiece. Bertram gave her a diamond ring
- and a ruby necklace and told her they would go to Europe for a
- wedding tour, for he was immensely wealthy. But then, alas,
- shadows began to darken over their path. Cordelia was secretly
- in love with Bertram herself and when Geraldine told her about
- the engagement she was simply furious, especially when she saw
- the necklace and the diamond ring. All her affection for
- Geraldine turned to bitter hate and she vowed that she should
- never marry Bertram. But she pretended to be Geraldine's friend
- the same as ever. One evening they were standing on the bridge
- over a rushing turbulent stream and Cordelia, thinking they were
- alone, pushed Geraldine over the brink with a wild, mocking, `Ha,
- ha, ha.' But Bertram saw it all and he at once plunged into the
- current, exclaiming, `I will save thee, my peerless Geraldine.'
- But alas, he had forgotten he couldn't swim, and they were both
- drowned, clasped in each other's arms. Their bodies were washed
- ashore soon afterwards. They were buried in the one grave and
- their funeral was most imposing, Diana. It's so much more romantic
- to end a story up with a funeral than a wedding. As for Cordelia,
- she went insane with remorse and was shut up in a lunatic asylum.
- I thought that was a poetical retribution for her crime."
-
- "How perfectly lovely!" sighed Diana, who belonged to Matthew's
- school of critics. "I don't see how you can make up such
- thrilling things out of your own head, Anne. I wish my
- imagination was as good as yours."
-
- "It would be if you'd only cultivate it," said Anne cheeringly.
- "I've just thought of a plan, Diana. Let you and me have a story
- club all our own and write stories for practice. I'll help you
- along until you can do them by yourself. You ought to cultivate
- your imagination, you know. Miss Stacy says so. Only we must
- take the right way. I told her about the Haunted Wood, but she
- said we went the wrong way about it in that."
-
- This was how the story club came into existence. It was limited
- to Diana and Anne at first, but soon it was extended to include
- Jane Andrews and Ruby Gillis and one or two others who felt that
- their imaginations needed cultivating. No boys were allowed in
- it--although Ruby Gillis opined that their admission would make
- it more exciting--and each member had to produce one story a week.
-
- "It's extremely interesting," Anne told Marilla. "Each girl has
- to read her story out loud and then we talk it over. We are going
- to keep them all sacredly and have them to read to our descendants.
- We each write under a nom-de-plume. Mine is Rosamond Montmorency.
- All the girls do pretty well. Ruby Gillis is rather sentimental.
- She puts too much lovemaking into her stories and you know too much
- is worse than too little. Jane never puts any because she says
- it makes her feel so silly when she had to read it out loud.
- Jane's stories are extremely sensible. Then Diana puts too many
- murders into hers. She says most of the time she doesn't know what
- to do with the people so she kills them off to get rid of them.
- I mostly always have to tell them what to write about, but that
- isn't hard for I've millions of ideas."
-
- "I think this story-writing business is the foolishest yet,"
- scoffed Marilla. "You'll get a pack of nonsense into your
- heads and waste time that should be put on your lessons.
- Reading stories is bad enough but writing them is worse."
-
- "But we're so careful to put a moral into them all, Marilla,"
- explained Anne. "I insist upon that. All the good people are
- rewarded and all the bad ones are suitably punished. I'm sure
- that must have a wholesome effect. The moral is the great thing.
- Mr. Allan says so. I read one of my stories to him and Mrs. Allan
- and they both agreed that the moral was excellent. Only they laughed
- in the wrong places. I like it better when people cry. Jane and Ruby
- almost always cry when I come to the pathetic parts. Diana wrote her
- Aunt Josephine about our club and her Aunt Josephine wrote back that
- we were to send her some of our stories. So we copied out four of
- our very best and sent them. Miss Josephine Barry wrote back that
- she had never read anything so amusing in her life. That kind of
- puzzled us because the stories were all very pathetic and almost
- everybody died. But I'm glad Miss Barry liked them. It shows our
- club is doing some good in the world. Mrs. Allan says that ought
- to be our object in everything. I do really try to make it my
- object but I forget so often when I'm having fun. I hope I shall
- be a little like Mrs. Allan when I grow up. Do you think there is
- any prospect of it, Marilla?"
-
- "I shouldn't say there was a great deal" was Marilla's
- encouraging answer. "I'm sure Mrs. Allan was never such a
- silly, forgetful little girl as you are."
-
- "No; but she wasn't always so good as she is now either," said
- Anne seriously. "She told me so herself--that is, she said she
- was a dreadful mischief when she was a girl and was always
- getting into scrapes. I felt so encouraged when I heard that.
- Is it very wicked of me, Marilla, to feel encouraged when I hear
- that other people have been bad and mischievous? Mrs. Lynde says
- it is. Mrs. Lynde says she always feels shocked when she hears
- of anyone ever having been naughty, no matter how small they were.
- Mrs. Lynde says she once heard a minister confess that when he was
- a boy he stole a strawberry tart out of his aunt's pantry and she
- never had any respect for that minister again. Now, I wouldn't
- have felt that way. I'd have thought that it was real noble of him
- to confess it, and I'd have thought what an encouraging thing it
- would be for small boys nowadays who do naughty things and are
- sorry for them to know that perhaps they may grow up to be ministers
- in spite of it. That's how I'd feel, Marilla."
-
- "The way I feel at present, Anne," said Marilla, "is that it's
- high time you had those dishes washed. You've taken half an hour
- longer than you should with all your chattering. Learn to work
- first and talk afterwards."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVII
-
- Vanity and Vexation of Spirit
-
-
- Marilla, walking home one late April evening from an Aid meeting,
- realized that the winter was over and gone with the thrill of
- delight that spring never fails to bring to the oldest and
- saddest as well as to the youngest and merriest. Marilla was not
- given to subjective analysis of her thoughts and feelings. She
- probably imagined that she was thinking about the Aids and their
- missionary box and the new carpet for the vestry room, but under
- these reflections was a harmonious consciousness of red fields
- smoking into pale-purply mists in the declining sun, of long,
- sharp-pointed fir shadows falling over the meadow beyond the
- brook, of still, crimson-budded maples around a mirrorlike wood
- pool, of a wakening in the world and a stir of hidden pulses
- under the gray sod. The spring was abroad in the land and
- Marilla's sober, middle-aged step was lighter and swifter because
- of its deep, primal gladness.
-
- Her eyes dwelt affectionately on Green Gables, peering through
- its network of trees and reflecting the sunlight back from its
- windows in several little coruscations of glory. Marilla, as she
- picked her steps along the damp lane, thought that it was really
- a satisfaction to know that she was going home to a briskly
- snapping wood fire and a table nicely spread for tea, instead of
- to the cold comfort of old Aid meeting evenings before Anne had
- come to Green Gables.
-
- Consequently, when Marilla entered her kitchen and found the fire
- black out, with no sign of Anne anywhere, she felt justly
- disappointed and irritated. She had told Anne to be sure and
- have tea ready at five o'clock, but now she must hurry to take
- off her second-best dress and prepare the meal herself against
- Matthew's return from plowing.
-
- "I'll settle Miss Anne when she comes home," said Marilla grimly,
- as she shaved up kindlings with a carving knife and with more vim
- than was strictly necessary. Matthew had come in and was waiting
- patiently for his tea in his corner. "She's gadding off somewhere
- with Diana, writing stories or practicing dialogues or some such
- tomfoolery, and never thinking once about the time or her duties.
- She's just got to be pulled up short and sudden on this sort of thing.
- I don't care if Mrs. Allan does say she's the brightest and sweetest
- child she ever knew. She may be bright and sweet enough, but her head
- is full of nonsense and there's never any knowing what shape it'll
- break out in next. Just as soon as she grows out of one freak
- she takes up with another. But there! Here I am saying the very
- thing I was so riled with Rachel Lynde for saying at the Aid today.
- I was real glad when Mrs. Allan spoke up for Anne, for if she hadn't
- I know I'd have said something too sharp to Rachel before everybody.
- Anne's got plenty of faults, goodness knows, and far be it from
- me to deny it. But I'm bringing her up and not Rachel Lynde, who'd
- pick faults in the Angel Gabriel himself if he lived in Avonlea.
- Just the same, Anne has no business to leave the house like this when
- I told her she was to stay home this afternoon and look after things.
- I must say, with all her faults, I never found her disobedient or
- untrustworthy before and I'm real sorry to find her so now."
-
- "Well now, I dunno," said Matthew, who, being patient and wise
- and, above all, hungry, had deemed it best to let Marilla talk
- her wrath out unhindered, having learned by experience that she
- got through with whatever work was on hand much quicker if not
- delayed by untimely argument. "Perhaps you're judging her too
- hasty, Marilla. Don't call her untrustworthy until you're sure
- she has disobeyed you. Mebbe it can all be explained--Anne's a
- great hand at explaining."
-
- "She's not here when I told her to stay," retorted Marilla. "I
- reckon she'll find it hard to explain THAT to my satisfaction.
- Of course I knew you'd take her part, Matthew. But I'm bringing
- her up, not you."
-
- It was dark when supper was ready, and still no sign of Anne,
- coming hurriedly over the log bridge or up Lover's Lane,
- breathless and repentant with a sense of neglected duties.
- Marilla washed and put away the dishes grimly. Then, wanting a
- candle to light her way down the cellar, she went up to the
- east gable for the one that generally stood on Anne's table.
- Lighting it, she turned around to see Anne herself lying on the bed,
- face downward among the pillows.
-
- "Mercy on us," said astonished Marilla, "have you been asleep, Anne?"
-
- "No," was the muffled reply.
-
- "Are you sick then?" demanded Marilla anxiously, going over to the bed.
-
- Anne cowered deeper into her pillows as if desirous of hiding herself
- forever from mortal eyes.
-
- "No. But please, Marilla, go away and don't look at me. I'm in
- the depths of despair and I don't care who gets head in class or
- writes the best composition or sings in the Sunday-school choir
- any more. Little things like that are of no importance now
- because I don't suppose I'll ever be able to go anywhere again.
- My career is closed. Please, Marilla, go away and don't look at me."
-
- "Did anyone ever hear the like?" the mystified Marilla wanted to know.
- "Anne Shirley, whatever is the matter with you? What have you done?
- Get right up this minute and tell me. This minute, I say. There now,
- what is it?"
-
- Anne had slid to the floor in despairing obedience.
-
- "Look at my hair, Marilla," she whispered.
-
- Accordingly, Marilla lifted her candle and looked scrutinizingly
- at Anne's hair, flowing in heavy masses down her back. It certainly
- had a very strange appearance.
-
- "Anne Shirley, what have you done to your hair? Why, it's GREEN!"
-
- Green it might be called, if it were any earthly color--a queer,
- dull, bronzy green, with streaks here and there of the original
- red to heighten the ghastly effect. Never in all her life had
- Marilla seen anything so grotesque as Anne's hair at that moment.
-
- "Yes, it's green," moaned Anne. "I thought nothing could be as
- bad as red hair. But now I know it's ten times worse to have
- green hair. Oh, Marilla, you little know how utterly wretched I am."
-
- "I little know how you got into this fix, but I mean to find
- out," said Marilla. "Come right down to the kitchen--it's too
- cold up here--and tell me just what you've done. I've been
- expecting something queer for some time. You haven't got into
- any scrape for over two months, and I was sure another one was
- due. Now, then, what did you do to your hair?"
-
- "I dyed it."
-
- "Dyed it! Dyed your hair! Anne Shirley, didn't you know it was a
- wicked thing to do?"
-
- "Yes, I knew it was a little wicked," admitted Anne. "But I
- thought it was worth while to be a little wicked to get rid of
- red hair. I counted the cost, Marilla. Besides, I meant to be
- extra good in other ways to make up for it."
-
- "Well," said Marilla sarcastically, "if I'd decided it was worth
- while to dye my hair I'd have dyed it a decent color at least. I
- wouldn't have dyed it green."
-
- "But I didn't mean to dye it green, Marilla," protested Anne
- dejectedly. "If I was wicked I meant to be wicked to some
- purpose. He said it would turn my hair a beautiful raven
- black--he positively assured me that it would. How could I doubt
- his word, Marilla? I know what it feels like to have your word
- doubted. And Mrs. Allan says we should never suspect anyone of
- not telling us the truth unless we have proof that they're not.
- I have proof now--green hair is proof enough for anybody. But I
- hadn't then and I believed every word he said IMPLICITLY."
-
- "Who said? Who are you talking about?"
-
- "The peddler that was here this afternoon. I bought the dye from him."
-
- "Anne Shirley, how often have I told you never to let one of those
- Italians in the house! I don't believe in encouraging them to come
- around at all."
-
- "Oh, I didn't let him in the house. I remembered what you told
- me, and I went out, carefully shut the door, and looked at his
- things on the step. Besides, he wasn't an Italian--he was a
- German Jew. He had a big box full of very interesting things and
- he told me he was working hard to make enough money to bring his
- wife and children out from Germany. He spoke so feelingly about
- them that it touched my heart. I wanted to buy something from
- him to help him in such a worthy object. Then all at once I saw
- the bottle of hair dye. The peddler said it was warranted to dye
- any hair a beautiful raven black and wouldn't wash off. In a
- trice I saw myself with beautiful raven-black hair and the
- temptation was irresistible. But the price of the bottle was
- seventy-five cents and I had only fifty cents left out of my
- chicken money. I think the peddler had a very kind heart, for he
- said that, seeing it was me, he'd sell it for fifty cents and
- that was just giving it away. So I bought it, and as soon as he
- had gone I came up here and applied it with an old hairbrush as
- the directions said. I used up the whole bottle, and oh,
- Marilla, when I saw the dreadful color it turned my hair I
- repented of being wicked, I can tell you. And I've been
- repenting ever since."
-
- "Well, I hope you'll repent to good purpose," said Marilla
- severely, "and that you've got your eyes opened to where your
- vanity has led you, Anne. Goodness knows what's to be done. I
- suppose the first thing is to give your hair a good washing and
- see if that will do any good."
-
- Accordingly, Anne washed her hair, scrubbing it vigorously with
- soap and water, but for all the difference it made she might as
- well have been scouring its original red. The peddler had
- certainly spoken the truth when he declared that the dye wouldn't
- wash off, however his veracity might be impeached in other
- respects.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, what shall I do?" questioned Anne in tears.
- "I can never live this down. People have pretty well forgotten
- my other mistakes--the liniment cake and setting Diana drunk and
- flying into a temper with Mrs. Lynde. But they'll never forget this.
- They will think I am not respectable. Oh, Marilla, `what a tangled
- web we weave when first we practice to deceive.' That is poetry,
- but it is true. And oh, how Josie Pye will laugh! Marilla, I CANNOT
- face Josie Pye. I am the unhappiest girl in Prince Edward Island."
-
- Anne's unhappiness continued for a week. During that time she
- went nowhere and shampooed her hair every day. Diana alone of
- outsiders knew the fatal secret, but she promised solemnly never
- to tell, and it may be stated here and now that she kept her
- word. At the end of the week Marilla said decidedly:
-
- "It's no use, Anne. That is fast dye if ever there was any.
- Your hair must be cut off; there is no other way. You can't go
- out with it looking like that."
-
- Anne's lips quivered, but she realized the bitter truth of
- Marilla's remarks. With a dismal sigh she went for the scissors.
-
- "Please cut it off at once, Marilla, and have it over. Oh, I
- feel that my heart is broken. This is such an unromantic
- affliction. The girls in books lose their hair in fevers or sell
- it to get money for some good deed, and I'm sure I wouldn't mind
- losing my hair in some such fashion half so much. But there is
- nothing comforting in having your hair cut off because you've
- dyed it a dreadful color, is there? I'm going to weep all the
- time you're cutting it off, if it won't interfere. It seems such
- a tragic thing."
-
- Anne wept then, but later on, when she went upstairs and looked
- in the glass, she was calm with despair. Marilla had done her work
- thoroughly and it had been necessary to shingle the hair as closely
- as possible. The result was not becoming, to state the case as mildly
- as may be. Anne promptly turned her glass to the wall.
-
- "I'll never, never look at myself again until my hair grows," she
- exclaimed passionately.
-
- Then she suddenly righted the glass.
-
- "Yes, I will, too. I'd do penance for being wicked that way.
- I'll look at myself every time I come to my room and see how ugly
- I am. And I won't try to imagine it away, either. I never
- thought I was vain about my hair, of all things, but now I know I
- was, in spite of its being red, because it was so long and thick
- and curly. I expect something will happen to my nose next."
-
- Anne's clipped head made a sensation in school on the following
- Monday, but to her relief nobody guessed the real reason for it,
- not even Josie Pye, who, however, did not fail to inform Anne
- that she looked like a perfect scarecrow.
-
- "I didn't say anything when Josie said that to me," Anne confided
- that evening to Marilla, who was lying on the sofa after one of
- her headaches, "because I thought it was part of my punishment
- and I ought to bear it patiently. It's hard to be told you look
- like a scarecrow and I wanted to say something back. But I didn't.
- I just swept her one scornful look and then I forgave her.
- It makes you feel very virtuous when you forgive people,
- doesn't it? I mean to devote all my energies to being good after
- this and I shall never try to be beautiful again. Of course it's
- better to be good. I know it is, but it's sometimes so hard to
- believe a thing even when you know it. I do really want to be
- good, Marilla, like you and Mrs. Allan and Miss Stacy, and grow
- up to be a credit to you. Diana says when my hair begins to grow
- to tie a black velvet ribbon around my head with a bow at one
- side. She says she thinks it will be very becoming. I will call
- it a snood--that sounds so romantic. But am I talking too much,
- Marilla? Does it hurt your head?"
-
- "My head is better now. It was terrible bad this afternoon,
- though. These headaches of mine are getting worse and worse.
- I'll have to see a doctor about them. As for your chatter, I
- don't know that I mind it--I've got so used to it."
-
- Which was Marilla's way of saying that she liked to hear it.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVII
-
- An Unfortunate Lily Maid
-
-
- OF course you must be Elaine, Anne," said Diana. "I could never
- have the courage to float down there."
-
- "Nor I," said Ruby Gillis, with a shiver. "I don't mind floating
- down when there's two or three of us in the flat and we can sit up.
- It's fun then. But to lie down and pretend I was dead--I just couldn't.
- I'd die really of fright."
-
- "Of course it would be romantic," conceded Jane Andrews, "but I
- know I couldn't keep still. I'd be popping up every minute or so
- to see where I was and if I wasn't drifting too far out. And you
- know, Anne, that would spoil the effect."
-
- "But it's so ridiculous to have a redheaded Elaine," mourned
- Anne. "I'm not afraid to float down and I'd love to be Elaine.
- But it's ridiculous just the same. Ruby ought to be Elaine
- because she is so fair and has such lovely long golden hair--
- Elaine had `all her bright hair streaming down,' you know.
- And Elaine was the lily maid. Now, a red-haired person cannot
- be a lily maid."
-
- "Your complexion is just as fair as Ruby's," said Diana
- earnestly, "and your hair is ever so much darker than it used to
- be before you cut it."
-
- "Oh, do you really think so?" exclaimed Anne, flushing
- sensitively with delight. "I've sometimes thought it was
- myself--but I never dared to ask anyone for fear she would tell
- me it wasn't. Do you think it could be called auburn now, Diana?"
-
- "Yes, and I think it is real pretty," said Diana, looking
- admiringly at the short, silky curls that clustered over
- Anne's head and were held in place by a very jaunty black
- velvet ribbon and bow.
-
- They were standing on the bank of the pond, below Orchard Slope,
- where a little headland fringed with birches ran out from the
- bank; at its tip was a small wooden platform built out into the
- water for the convenience of fishermen and duck hunters. Ruby
- and Jane were spending the midsummer afternoon with Diana, and
- Anne had come over to play with them.
-
- Anne and Diana had spent most of their playtime that summer on
- and about the pond. Idlewild was a thing of the past, Mr. Bell
- having ruthlessly cut down the little circle of trees in his back
- pasture in the spring. Anne had sat among the stumps and wept,
- not without an eye to the romance of it; but she was speedily
- consoled, for, after all, as she and Diana said, big girls of
- thirteen, going on fourteen, were too old for such childish
- amusements as playhouses, and there were more fascinating sports
- to be found about the pond. It was splendid to fish for trout
- over the bridge and the two girls learned to row themselves about
- in the little flat-bottomed dory Mr. Barry kept for duck shooting.
-
- It was Anne's idea that they dramatize Elaine. They had studied
- Tennyson's poem in school the preceding winter, the Superintendent
- of Education having prescribed it in the English course for the
- Prince Edward Island schools. They had analyzed and parsed it
- and torn it to pieces in general until it was a wonder there
- was any meaning at all left in it for them, but at least the
- fair lily maid and Lancelot and Guinevere and King Arthur had
- become very real people to them, and Anne was devoured by
- secret regret that she had not been born in Camelot. Those
- days, she said, were so much more romantic than the present.
-
- Anne's plan was hailed with enthusiasm. The girls had discovered
- that if the flat were pushed off from the landing place it would
- drift down with the current under the bridge and finally strand
- itself on another headland lower down which ran out at a curve in
- the pond. They had often gone down like this and nothing could
- be more convenient for playing Elaine.
-
- "Well, I'll be Elaine," said Anne, yielding reluctantly, for,
- although she would have been delighted to play the principal
- character, yet her artistic sense demanded fitness for it and
- this, she felt, her limitations made impossible. "Ruby, you must
- be King Arthur and Jane will be Guinevere and Diana must be Lancelot.
- But first you must be the brothers and the father. We can't have
- the old dumb servitor because there isn't room for two in the flat
- when one is lying down. We must pall the barge all its length
- in blackest samite. That old black shawl of your mother's will
- be just the thing, Diana."
-
- The black shawl having been procured, Anne spread it over the
- flat and then lay down on the bottom, with closed eyes and hands
- folded over her breast.
-
- "Oh, she does look really dead," whispered Ruby Gillis nervously,
- watching the still, white little face under the flickering
- shadows of the birches. "It makes me feel frightened, girls.
- Do you suppose it's really right to act like this? Mrs. Lynde
- says that all play-acting is abominably wicked."
-
- "Ruby, you shouldn't talk about Mrs. Lynde," said Anne severely.
- "It spoils the effect because this is hundreds of years before
- Mrs. Lynde was born. Jane, you arrange this. It's silly for
- Elaine to be talking when she's dead."
-
- Jane rose to the occasion. Cloth of gold for coverlet there was
- none, but an old piano scarf of yellow Japanese crepe was an
- excellent substitute. A white lily was not obtainable just then,
- but the effect of a tall blue iris placed in one of Anne's folded
- hands was all that could be desired.
-
- "Now, she's all ready," said Jane. "We must kiss her quiet brows
- and, Diana, you say, `Sister, farewell forever,' and Ruby, you say,
- `Farewell, sweet sister,' both of you as sorrowfully as you possibly can.
- Anne, for goodness sake smile a little. You know Elaine `lay as though
- she smiled.' That's better. Now push the flat off."
-
- The flat was accordingly pushed off, scraping roughly over an old
- embedded stake in the process. Diana and Jane and Ruby only waited
- long enough to see it caught in the current and headed for the bridge
- before scampering up through the woods, across the road, and down to
- the lower headland where, as Lancelot and Guinevere and the King,
- they were to be in readiness to receive the lily maid.
-
- For a few minutes Anne, drifting slowly down, enjoyed the romance
- of her situation to the full. Then something happened not at all
- romantic. The flat began to leak. In a very few moments it was
- necessary for Elaine to scramble to her feet, pick up her cloth
- of gold coverlet and pall of blackest samite and gaze blankly at
- a big crack in the bottom of her barge through which the water
- was literally pouring. That sharp stake at the landing had torn
- off the strip of batting nailed on the flat. Anne did not know
- this, but it did not take her long to realize that she was in a
- dangerous plight. At this rate the flat would fill and sink long
- before it could drift to the lower headland. Where were the
- oars? Left behind at the landing!
-
- Anne gave one gasping little scream which nobody ever heard; she
- was white to the lips, but she did not lose her self-possession.
- There was one chance--just one.
-
- "I was horribly frightened," she told Mrs. Allan the next day,
- "and it seemed like years while the flat was drifting down to the
- bridge and the water rising in it every moment. I prayed, Mrs.
- Allan, most earnestly, but I didn't shut my eyes to pray, for I
- knew the only way God could save me was to let the flat float
- close enough to one of the bridge piles for me to climb up on it.
- You know the piles are just old tree trunks and there are lots of
- knots and old branch stubs on them. It was proper to pray, but
- I had to do my part by watching out and right well I knew it. I
- just said, `Dear God, please take the flat close to a pile and
- I'll do the rest,' over and over again. Under such circumstances
- you don't think much about making a flowery prayer. But mine was
- answered, for the flat bumped right into a pile for a minute and
- I flung the scarf and the shawl over my shoulder and scrambled up
- on a big providential stub. And there I was, Mrs. Allan,
- clinging to that slippery old pile with no way of getting up or
- down. It was a very unromantic position, but I didn't think
- about that at the time. You don't think much about romance when
- you have just escaped from a watery grave. I said a grateful
- prayer at once and then I gave all my attention to holding on
- tight, for I knew I should probably have to depend on human aid
- to get back to dry land."
-
- The flat drifted under the bridge and then promptly sank in
- midstream. Ruby, Jane, and Diana, already awaiting it on the
- lower headland, saw it disappear before their very eyes and had
- not a doubt but that Anne had gone down with it. For a moment
- they stood still, white as sheets, frozen with horror at the
- tragedy; then, shrieking at the tops of their voices, they
- started on a frantic run up through the woods, never pausing as
- they crossed the main road to glance the way of the bridge.
- Anne, clinging desperately to her precarious foothold, saw their
- flying forms and heard their shrieks. Help would soon come, but
- meanwhile her position was a very uncomfortable one.
-
- The minutes passed by, each seeming an hour to the unfortunate
- lily maid. Why didn't somebody come? Where had the girls gone?
- Suppose they had fainted, one and all! Suppose nobody ever came!
- Suppose she grew so tired and cramped that she could hold on no
- longer! Anne looked at the wicked green depths below her,
- wavering with long, oily shadows, and shivered. Her imagination
- began to suggest all manner of gruesome possibilities to her.
-
- Then, just as she thought she really could not endure the ache in
- her arms and wrists another moment, Gilbert Blythe came rowing
- under the bridge in Harmon Andrews's dory!
-
- Gilbert glanced up and, much to his amazement, beheld a little
- white scornful face looking down upon him with big, frightened
- but also scornful gray eyes.
-
- "Anne Shirley! How on earth did you get there?" he exclaimed.
-
- Without waiting for an answer he pulled close to the pile and
- extended his hand. There was no help for it; Anne, clinging to
- Gilbert Blythe's hand, scrambled down into the dory, where she
- sat, drabbled and furious, in the stern with her arms full of
- dripping shawl and wet crepe. It was certainly extremely
- difficult to be dignified under the circumstances!
-
- "What has happened, Anne?" asked Gilbert, taking up his oars.
- "We were playing Elaine" explained Anne frigidly, without even
- looking at her rescuer, "and I had to drift down to Camelot in
- the barge--I mean the flat. The flat began to leak and I climbed
- out on the pile. The girls went for help. Will you be kind
- enough to row me to the landing?"
-
- Gilbert obligingly rowed to the landing and Anne, disdaining
- assistance, sprang nimbly on shore.
-
- "I'm very much obliged to you," she said haughtily as she turned away.
- But Gilbert had also sprung from the boat and now laid a detaining
- hand on her arm.
-
- "Anne," he said hurriedly, "look here. Can't we be good friends?
- I'm awfully sorry I made fun of your hair that time. I didn't
- mean to vex you and I only meant it for a joke. Besides, it's so
- long ago. I think your hair is awfully pretty now--honest I do.
- Let's be friends."
-
- For a moment Anne hesitated. She had an odd, newly awakened
- consciousness under all her outraged dignity that the half-shy,
- half-eager expression in Gilbert's hazel eyes was something that
- was very good to see. Her heart gave a quick, queer little beat.
- But the bitterness of her old grievance promptly stiffened up her
- wavering determination. That scene of two years before flashed
- back into her recollection as vividly as if it had taken place
- yesterday. Gilbert had called her "carrots" and had brought
- about her disgrace before the whole school. Her resentment,
- which to other and older people might be as laughable as its
- cause, was in no whit allayed and softened by time seemingly.
- She hated Gilbert Blythe! She would never forgive him!
-
- "No," she said coldly, "I shall never be friends with you,
- Gilbert Blythe; and I don't want to be!"
-
- "All right!" Gilbert sprang into his skiff with an angry color in
- his cheeks. "I'll never ask you to be friends again, Anne Shirley.
- And I don't care either!"
-
- He pulled away with swift defiant strokes, and Anne went up the
- steep, ferny little path under the maples. She held her head
- very high, but she was conscious of an odd feeling of regret.
- She almost wished she had answered Gilbert differently. Of
- course, he had insulted her terribly, but still--! Altogether,
- Anne rather thought it would be a relief to sit down and have a
- good cry. She was really quite unstrung, for the reaction from
- her fright and cramped clinging was making itself felt.
-
- Halfway up the path she met Jane and Diana rushing back to the pond
- in a state narrowly removed from positive frenzy. They had found
- nobody at Orchard Slope, both Mr. and Mrs. Barry being away.
- Here Ruby Gillis had succumbed to hysterics, and was left to
- recover from them as best she might, while Jane and Diana flew
- through the Haunted Wood and across the brook to Green Gables.
- There they had found nobody either, for Marilla had gone to
- Carmody and Matthew was making hay in the back field.
-
- "Oh, Anne," gasped Diana, fairly falling on the former's neck and
- weeping with relief and delight, "oh, Anne--we thought--you
- were--drowned--and we felt like murderers--because we had
- made--you be--Elaine. And Ruby is in hysterics--oh, Anne, how
- did you escape?"
-
- "I climbed up on one of the piles," explained Anne wearily, "and
- Gilbert Blythe came along in Mr. Andrews's dory and brought me to land."
-
- "Oh, Anne, how splendid of him! Why, it's so romantic!" said Jane,
- finding breath enough for utterance at last. "Of course you'll speak
- to him after this."
-
- "Of course I won't," flashed Anne, with a momentary return of her
- old spirit. "And I don't want ever to hear the word `romantic' again,
- Jane Andrews. I'm awfully sorry you were so frightened, girls. It is
- all my fault. I feel sure I was born under an unlucky star. Everything
- I do gets me or my dearest friends into a scrape. We've gone and lost
- your father's flat, Diana, and I have a presentiment that we'll not
- be allowed to row on the pond any more."
-
- Anne's presentiment proved more trustworthy than presentiments are
- apt to do. Great was the consternation in the Barry and Cuthbert
- households when the events of the afternoon became known.
-
- "Will you ever have any sense, Anne?" groaned Marilla.
-
- "Oh, yes, I think I will, Marilla," returned Anne optimistically.
- A good cry, indulged in the grateful solitude of the east gable,
- had soothed her nerves and restored her to her wonted cheerfulness.
- "I think my prospects of becoming sensible are brighter now than ever"
-
- "I don't see how," said Marilla.
-
- "Well," explained Anne, "I've learned a new and valuable lesson today.
- Ever since I came to Green Gables I've been making mistakes, and each
- mistake has helped to cure me of some great shortcoming. The affair
- of the amethyst brooch cured me of meddling with things that didn't
- belong to me. The Haunted Wood mistake cured me of letting my
- imagination run away with me. The liniment cake mistake cured
- me of carelessness in cooking. Dyeing my hair cured me of vanity.
- I never think about my hair and nose now--at least, very seldom.
- And today's mistake is going to cure me of being too romantic.
- I have come to the conclusion that it is no use trying to be
- romantic in Avonlea. It was probably easy enough in towered
- Camelot hundreds of years ago, but romance is not appreciated now.
- I feel quite sure that you will soon see a great improvement in me
- in this respect, Marilla."
-
- "I'm sure I hope so," said Marilla skeptically.
-
- But Matthew, who had been sitting mutely in his corner, laid a
- hand on Anne's shoulder when Marilla had gone out.
-
- "Don't give up all your romance, Anne," he whispered shyly,
- "a little of it is a good thing--not too much, of course--but
- keep a little of it, Anne, keep a little of it."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIX
-
- An Epoch in Anne's Life
-
-
- Anne was bringing the cows home from the back pasture by way of
- Lover's Lane. It was a September evening and all the gaps and
- clearings in the woods were brimmed up with ruby sunset light.
- Here and there the lane was splashed with it, but for the most
- part it was already quite shadowy beneath the maples, and the
- spaces under the firs were filled with a clear violet dusk like
- airy wine. The winds were out in their tops, and there is no
- sweeter music on earth than that which the wind makes in the fir
- trees at evening.
-
- The cows swung placidly down the lane, and Anne followed them
- dreamily, repeating aloud the battle canto from MARMION--which
- had also been part of their English course the preceding winter
- and which Miss Stacy had made them learn off by heart--and
- exulting in its rushing lines and the clash of spears in its
- imagery. When she came to the lines
-
-
- The stubborn spearsmen still made good
- Their dark impenetrable wood,
-
-
- she stopped in ecstasy to shut her eyes that she might the better
- fancy herself one of that heroic ring. When she opened them
- again it was to behold Diana coming through the gate that led
- into the Barry field and looking so important that Anne instantly
- divined there was news to be told. But betray too eager
- curiosity she would not.
-
- "Isn't this evening just like a purple dream, Diana? It makes me
- so glad to be alive. In the mornings I always think the mornings
- are best; but when evening comes I think it's lovelier still."
-
- "It's a very fine evening," said Diana, "but oh, I have such
- news, Anne. Guess. You can have three guesses."
-
- "Charlotte Gillis is going to be married in the church after all
- and Mrs. Allan wants us to decorate it," cried Anne.
-
- "No. Charlotte's beau won't agree to that, because nobody ever
- has been married in the church yet, and he thinks it would seem
- too much like a funeral. It's too mean, because it would be such fun.
- Guess again."
-
- "Jane's mother is going to let her have a birthday party?"
-
- Diana shook her head, her black eyes dancing with merriment.
-
- "I can't think what it can be," said Anne in despair, "unless
- it's that Moody Spurgeon MacPherson saw you home from prayer
- meeting last night. Did he?"
-
- "I should think not," exclaimed Diana indignantly. "I wouldn't
- be likely to boast of it if he did, the horrid creature! I knew
- you couldn't guess it. Mother had a letter from Aunt Josephine
- today, and Aunt Josephine wants you and me to go to town next
- Tuesday and stop with her for the Exhibition. There!"
-
- "Oh, Diana," whispered Anne, finding it necessary to lean up against
- a maple tree for support, "do you really mean it? But I'm afraid
- Marilla won't let me go. She will say that she can't encourage
- gadding about. That was what she said last week when Jane invited
- me to go with them in their double-seated buggy to the American
- concert at the White Sands Hotel. I wanted to go, but Marilla
- said I'd be better at home learning my lessons and so would Jane.
- I was bitterly disappointed, Diana. I felt so heartbroken that
- I wouldn't say my prayers when I went to bed. But I repented of
- that and got up in the middle of the night and said them."
-
- "I'll tell you," said Diana, "we'll get Mother to ask Marilla.
- She'll be more likely to let you go then; and if she does we'll
- have the time of our lives, Anne. I've never been to an
- Exhibition, and it's so aggravating to hear the other girls
- talking about their trips. Jane and Ruby have been twice, and
- they're going this year again."
-
- "I'm not going to think about it at all until I know whether I
- can go or not," said Anne resolutely. "If I did and then was
- disappointed, it would be more than I could bear. But in case I
- do go I'm very glad my new coat will be ready by that time.
- Marilla didn't think I needed a new coat. She said my old one
- would do very well for another winter and that I ought to be
- satisfied with having a new dress. The dress is very pretty,
- Diana--navy blue and made so fashionably. Marilla always makes
- my dresses fashionably now, because she says she doesn't intend
- to have Matthew going to Mrs. Lynde to make them. I'm so glad.
- It is ever so much easier to be good if your clothes are
- fashionable. At least, it is easier for me. I suppose it
- doesn't make such a difference to naturally good people. But
- Matthew said I must have a new coat, so Marilla bought a lovely
- piece of blue broadcloth, and it's being made by a real
- dressmaker over at Carmody. It's to be done Saturday night, and
- I'm trying not to imagine myself walking up the church aisle on
- Sunday in my new suit and cap, because I'm afraid it isn't right
- to imagine such things. But it just slips into my mind in spite
- of me. My cap is so pretty. Matthew bought it for me the day we
- were over at Carmody. It is one of those little blue velvet ones
- that are all the rage, with gold cord and tassels. Your new hat
- is elegant, Diana, and so becoming. When I saw you come into
- church last Sunday my heart swelled with pride to think you were
- my dearest friend. Do you suppose it's wrong for us to think so
- much about our clothes? Marilla says it is very sinful. But it
- is such an interesting subject, isn't it?"
-
- Marilla agreed to let Anne go to town, and it was arranged that
- Mr. Barry should take the girls in on the following Tuesday. As
- Charlottetown was thirty miles away and Mr. Barry wished to go
- and return the same day, it was necessary to make a very early
- start. But Anne counted it all joy, and was up before sunrise on
- Tuesday morning. A glance from her window assured her that the
- day would be fine, for the eastern sky behind the firs of the
- Haunted Wood was all silvery and cloudless. Through the gap in
- the trees a light was shining in the western gable of Orchard
- Slope, a token that Diana was also up.
-
- Anne was dressed by the time Matthew had the fire on and had the
- breakfast ready when Marilla came down, but for her own part was
- much too excited to eat. After breakfast the jaunty new cap and
- jacket were donned, and Anne hastened over the brook and up
- through the firs to Orchard Slope. Mr. Barry and Diana were
- waiting for her, and they were soon on the road.
-
- It was a long drive, but Anne and Diana enjoyed every minute of it.
- It was delightful to rattle along over the moist roads in the early
- red sunlight that was creeping across the shorn harvest fields.
- The air was fresh and crisp, and little smoke-blue mists
- curled through the valleys and floated off from the hills.
- Sometimes the road went through woods where maples were beginning
- to hang out scarlet banners; sometimes it crossed rivers on
- bridges that made Anne's flesh cringe with the old,
- half-delightful fear; sometimes it wound along a harbor shore and
- passed by a little cluster of weather-gray fishing huts; again it
- mounted to hills whence a far sweep of curving upland or
- misty-blue sky could be seen; but wherever it went there was much
- of interest to discuss. It was almost noon when they reached
- town and found their way to "Beechwood." It was quite a fine old
- mansion, set back from the street in a seclusion of green elms
- and branching beeches. Miss Barry met them at the door with a
- twinkle in her sharp black eyes.
-
- "So you've come to see me at last, you Anne-girl," she said.
- "Mercy, child, how you have grown! You're taller than I am, I
- declare. And you're ever so much better looking than you used to
- be, too. But I dare say you know that without being told."
-
- "Indeed I didn't," said Anne radiantly. "I know I'm not so
- freckled as I used to be, so I've much to be thankful for, but
- I really hadn't dared to hope there was any other improvement.
- I'm so glad you think there is, Miss Barry." Miss Barry's house
- was furnished with "great magnificence," as Anne told Marilla
- afterward. The two little country girls were rather abashed by
- the splendor of the parlor where Miss Barry left them when she
- went to see about dinner.
-
- "Isn't it just like a palace?" whispered Diana. "I never was in
- Aunt Josephine's house before, and I'd no idea it was so grand.
- I just wish Julia Bell could see this--she puts on such airs
- about her mother's parlor."
-
- "Velvet carpet," sighed Anne luxuriously, "and silk curtains!
- I've dreamed of such things, Diana. But do you know I don't
- believe I feel very comfortable with them after all. There are
- so many things in this room and all so splendid that there is no
- scope for imagination. That is one consolation when you are
- poor--there are so many more things you can imagine about."
-
- Their sojourn in town was something that Anne and Diana dated
- from for years. From first to last it was crowded with delights.
-
- On Wednesday Miss Barry took them to the Exhibition grounds and
- kept them there all day.
-
- "It was splendid," Anne related to Marilla later on. "I never
- imagined anything so interesting. I don't really know which
- department was the most interesting. I think I liked the horses
- and the flowers and the fancywork best. Josie Pye took first
- prize for knitted lace. I was real glad she did. And I was glad
- that I felt glad, for it shows I'm improving, don't you think,
- Marilla, when I can rejoice in Josie's success? Mr. Harmon
- Andrews took second prize for Gravenstein apples and Mr. Bell
- took first prize for a pig. Diana said she thought it was
- ridiculous for a Sunday-school superintendent to take a prize in
- pigs, but I don't see why. Do you? She said she would always
- think of it after this when he was praying so solemnly. Clara
- Louise MacPherson took a prize for painting, and Mrs. Lynde got
- first prize for homemade butter and cheese. So Avonlea was
- pretty well represented, wasn't it? Mrs. Lynde was there that
- day, and I never knew how much I really liked her until I saw her
- familiar face among all those strangers. There were thousands of
- people there, Marilla. It made me feel dreadfully insignificant.
- And Miss Barry took us up to the grandstand to see the horse
- races. Mrs. Lynde wouldn't go; she said horse racing was an
- abomination and, she being a church member, thought it her
- bounden duty to set a good example by staying away. But there
- were so many there I don't believe Mrs. Lynde's absence would
- ever be noticed. I don't think, though, that I ought to go very
- often to horse races, because they ARE awfully fascinating.
- Diana got so excited that she offered to bet me ten cents that
- the red horse would win. I didn't believe he would, but I
- refused to bet, because I wanted to tell Mrs. Allan all about
- everything, and I felt sure it wouldn't do to tell her that.
- It's always wrong to do anything you can't tell the minister's
- wife. It's as good as an extra conscience to have a minister's
- wife for your friend. And I was very glad I didn't bet, because
- the red horse DID win, and I would have lost ten cents. So you
- see that virtue was its own reward. We saw a man go up in a
- balloon. I'd love to go up in a balloon, Marilla; it would be
- simply thrilling; and we saw a man selling fortunes. You paid
- him ten cents and a little bird picked out your fortune for you.
- Miss Barry gave Diana and me ten cents each to have our fortunes
- told. Mine was that I would marry a dark-complected man who was
- very wealthy, and I would go across water to live. I looked
- carefully at all the dark men I saw after that, but I didn't care
- much for any of them, and anyhow I suppose it's too early to be
- looking out for him yet. Oh, it was a never-to-be-forgotten day,
- Marilla. I was so tired I couldn't sleep at night. Miss Barry
- put us in the spare room, according to promise. It was an
- elegant room, Marilla, but somehow sleeping in a spare room isn't
- what I used to think it was. That's the worst of growing up, and
- I'm beginning to realize it. The things you wanted so much when you
- were a child don't seem half so wonderful to you when you get them."
-
- Thursday the girls had a drive in the park, and in the evening
- Miss Barry took them to a concert in the Academy of Music, where
- a noted prima donna was to sing. To Anne the evening was a
- glittering vision of delight.
-
- "Oh, Marilla, it was beyond description. I was so excited I
- couldn't even talk, so you may know what it was like. I just sat
- in enraptured silence. Madame Selitsky was perfectly beautiful,
- and wore white satin and diamonds. But when she began to sing I
- never thought about anything else. Oh, I can't tell you how I
- felt. But it seemed to me that it could never be hard to be good
- any more. I felt like I do when I look up to the stars. Tears
- came into my eyes, but, oh, they were such happy tears. I was so
- sorry when it was all over, and I told Miss Barry I didn't see
- how I was ever to return to common life again. She said she
- thought if we went over to the restaurant across the street and
- had an ice cream it might help me. That sounded so prosaic; but
- to my surprise I found it true. The ice cream was delicious,
- Marilla, and it was so lovely and dissipated to be sitting there
- eating it at eleven o'clock at night. Diana said she believed
- she was born for city life. Miss Barry asked me what my opinion
- was, but I said I would have to think it over very seriously
- before I could tell her what I really thought. So I thought it
- over after I went to bed. That is the to think things out. And I
- came to the conclusion, Marilla, that I wasn't born for city life
- and that I was glad of it. It's nice to be eating ice cream at
- brilliant restaurants at eleven o'clock at night once in a while;
- but as a regular thing I'd rather be in the east gable at eleven,
- sound asleep, but kind of knowing even in my sleep that the stars
- were shining outside and that the wind was blowing in the firs
- across the brook. I told Miss Barry so at breakfast the next
- morning and she laughed. Miss Barry generally laughed at
- anything I said, even when I said the most solemn things.
- I don't think I liked it, Marilla, because I wasn't trying to be
- funny. But she is a most hospitable lady and treated us royally."
-
- Friday brought going-home time, and Mr. Barry drove in for the girls.
-
- "Well, I hope you've enjoyed yourselves," said Miss Barry, as she
- bade them good-bye.
-
- "Indeed we have," said Diana.
-
- "And you, Anne-girl?"
-
- "I've enjoyed every minute of the time," said Anne, throwing her
- arms impulsively about the old woman's neck and kissing her
- wrinkled cheek. Diana would never have dared to do such a thing
- and felt rather aghast at Anne's freedom. But Miss Barry was
- pleased, and she stood on her veranda and watched the buggy out
- of sight. Then she went back into her big house with a sigh. It
- seemed very lonely, lacking those fresh young lives. Miss Barry
- was a rather selfish old lady, if the truth must be told, and had
- never cared much for anybody but herself. She valued people only
- as they were of service to her or amused her. Anne had amused
- her, and consequently stood high in the old lady's good graces.
- But Miss Barry found herself thinking less about Anne's quaint
- speeches than of her fresh enthusiasms, her transparent emotions,
- her little winning ways, and the sweetness of her eyes and lips.
-
- "I thought Marilla Cuthbert was an old fool when I heard she'd
- adopted a girl out of an orphan asylum," she said to herself,
- "but I guess she didn't make much of a mistake after all. If I'd
- a child like Anne in the house all the time I'd be a better and
- happier woman."
-
- Anne and Diana found the drive home as pleasant as the
- drive in--pleasanter, indeed, since there was the delightful
- consciousness of home waiting at the end of it. It was sunset
- when they passed through White Sands and turned into the shore road.
- Beyond, the Avonlea hills came out darkly against the saffron sky.
- Behind them the moon was rising out of the sea that grew all radiant
- and transfigured in her light. Every little cove along the curving
- road was a marvel of dancing ripples. The waves broke with a soft
- swish on the rocks below them, and the tang of the sea was in the
- strong, fresh air.
-
- "Oh, but it's good to be alive and to be going home," breathed Anne.
-
- When she crossed the log bridge over the brook the kitchen light of
- Green Gables winked her a friendly welcome back, and through the
- open door shone the hearth fire, sending out its warm red glow
- athwart the chilly autumn night. Anne ran blithely up the hill
- and into the kitchen, where a hot supper was waiting on the table.
-
- "So you've got back?" said Marilla, folding up her knitting.
-
- "Yes, and oh, it's so good to be back," said Anne joyously. "I
- could kiss everything, even to the clock. Marilla, a broiled
- chicken! You don't mean to say you cooked that for me!"
-
- "Yes, I did," said Marilla. "I thought you'd be hungry after
- such a drive and need something real appetizing. Hurry and take
- off your things, and we'll have supper as soon as Matthew comes in.
- I'm glad you've got back, I must say. It's been fearful lonesome
- here without you, and I never put in four longer days."
-
- After supper Anne sat before the fire between Matthew and
- Marilla, and gave them a full account of her visit.
-
- "I've had a splendid time," she concluded happily, "and I feel
- that it marks an epoch in my life. But the best of it all was
- the coming home."
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXX
-
- The Queens Class Is Organized
-
-
- Marilla laid her knitting on her lap and leaned back in her chair.
- Her eyes were tired, and she thought vaguely that she must see
- about having her glasses changed the next time she went to town,
- for her eyes had grown tired very often of late.
-
- It was nearly dark, for the full November twilight had fallen
- around Green Gables, and the only light in the kitchen came from
- the dancing red flames in the stove.
-
- Anne was curled up Turk-fashion on the hearthrug, gazing into
- that joyous glow where the sunshine of a hundred summers was
- being distilled from the maple cordwood. She had been reading,
- but her book had slipped to the floor, and now she was dreaming,
- with a smile on her parted lips. Glittering castles in Spain
- were shaping themselves out of the mists and rainbows of her
- lively fancy; adventures wonderful and enthralling were happening
- to her in cloudland--adventures that always turned out triumphantly
- and never involved her in scrapes like those of actual life.
-
- Marilla looked at her with a tenderness that would never have
- been suffered to reveal itself in any clearer light than that
- soft mingling of fireshine and shadow. The lesson of a love that
- should display itself easily in spoken word and open look was one
- Marilla could never learn. But she had learned to love this
- slim, gray-eyed girl with an affection all the deeper and
- stronger from its very undemonstrativeness. Her love made her
- afraid of being unduly indulgent, indeed. She had an uneasy
- feeling that it was rather sinful to set one's heart so intensely
- on any human creature as she had set hers on Anne, and perhaps she
- performed a sort of unconscious penance for this by being stricter
- and more critical than if the girl had been less dear to her.
- Certainly Anne herself had no idea how Marilla loved her.
- She sometimes thought wistfully that Marilla was very hard
- to please and distinctly lacking in sympathy and understanding.
- But she always checked the thought reproachfully, remembering what
- she owed to Marilla.
-
- "Anne," said Marilla abruptly, "Miss Stacy was here this
- afternoon when you were out with Diana."
-
- Anne came back from her other world with a start and a sigh.
-
- "Was she? Oh, I'm so sorry I wasn't in. Why didn't you call me,
- Marilla? Diana and I were only over in the Haunted Wood. It's
- lovely in the woods now. All the little wood things--the ferns
- and the satin leaves and the crackerberries--have gone to sleep,
- just as if somebody had tucked them away until spring under a
- blanket of leaves. I think it was a little gray fairy with a
- rainbow scarf that came tiptoeing along the last moonlight night
- and did it. Diana wouldn't say much about that, though. Diana
- has never forgotten the scolding her mother gave her about
- imagining ghosts into the Haunted Wood. It had a very bad effect
- on Diana's imagination. It blighted it. Mrs. Lynde says Myrtle
- Bell is a blighted being. I asked Ruby Gillis why Myrtle was
- blighted, and Ruby said she guessed it was because her young man
- had gone back on her. Ruby Gillis thinks of nothing but young men,
- and the older she gets the worse she is. Young men are all very
- well in their place, but it doesn't do to drag them into
- everything, does it? Diana and I are thinking seriously of
- promising each other that we will never marry but be nice old
- maids and live together forever. Diana hasn't quite made up her
- mind though, because she thinks perhaps it would be nobler to
- marry some wild, dashing, wicked young man and reform him. Diana
- and I talk a great deal about serious subjects now, you know. We
- feel that we are so much older than we used to be that it isn't
- becoming to talk of childish matters. It's such a solemn thing
- to be almost fourteen, Marilla. Miss Stacy took all us girls who
- are in our teens down to the brook last Wednesday, and talked to
- us about it. She said we couldn't be too careful what habits we
- formed and what ideals we acquired in our teens, because by the
- time we were twenty our characters would be developed and the
- foundation laid for our whole future life. And she said if the
- foundation was shaky we could never build anything really worth
- while on it. Diana and I talked the matter over coming home from
- school. We felt extremely solemn, Marilla. And we decided that
- we would try to be very careful indeed and form respectable
- habits and learn all we could and be as sensible as possible, so
- that by the time we were twenty our characters would be properly
- developed. It's perfectly appalling to think of being twenty,
- Marilla. It sounds so fearfully old and grown up. But why was
- Miss Stacy here this afternoon?"
-
- "That is what I want to tell you, Anne, if you'll ever give me a
- chance to get a word in edgewise. She was talking about you."
-
- "About me?" Anne looked rather scared. Then she flushed and exclaimed:
-
- "Oh, I know what she was saying. I meant to tell you, Marilla,
- honestly I did, but I forgot. Miss Stacy caught me reading Ben
- Hur in school yesterday afternoon when I should have been studying
- my Canadian history. Jane Andrews lent it to me. I was reading
- it at dinner hour, and I had just got to the chariot race when
- school went in. I was simply wild to know how it turned out--
- although I felt sure Ben Hur must win, because it wouldn't be
- poetical justice if he didn't--so I spread the history open on
- my desk lid and then tucked Ben Hur between the desk and my knee.
- I just looked as if I were studying Canadian history, you know,
- while all the while I was reveling in Ben Hur. I was so
- interested in it that I never noticed Miss Stacy coming down the
- aisle until all at once I just looked up and there she was
- looking down at me, so reproachful-like. I can't tell you how
- ashamed I felt, Marilla, especially when I heard Josie Pye
- giggling. Miss Stacy took Ben Hur away, but she never said a
- word then. She kept me in at recess and talked to me. She said
- I had done very wrong in two respects. First, I was wasting the
- time I ought to have put on my studies; and secondly, I was
- deceiving my teacher in trying to make it appear I was reading a
- history when it was a storybook instead. I had never realized
- until that moment, Marilla, that what I was doing was deceitful.
- I was shocked. I cried bitterly, and asked Miss Stacy to forgive
- me and I'd never do such a thing again; and I offered to do
- penance by never so much as looking at Ben Hur for a whole week,
- not even to see how the chariot race turned out. But Miss Stacy
- said she wouldn't require that, and she forgave me freely. So I
- think it wasn't very kind of her to come up here to you about it
- after all."
-
- "Miss Stacy never mentioned such a thing to me, Anne, and its
- only your guilty conscience that's the matter with you. You have
- no business to be taking storybooks to school. You read too many
- novels anyhow. When I was a girl I wasn't so much as allowed to
- look at a novel."
-
- "Oh, how can you call Ben Hur a novel when it's really such a
- religious book?" protested Anne. "Of course it's a little too
- exciting to be proper reading for Sunday, and I only read it on
- weekdays. And I never read ANY book now unless either Miss Stacy
- or Mrs. Allan thinks it is a proper book for a girl thirteen and
- three-quarters to read. Miss Stacy made me promise that. She
- found me reading a book one day called, The Lurid Mystery of the
- Haunted Hall. It was one Ruby Gillis had lent me, and, oh,
- Marilla, it was so fascinating and creepy. It just curdled the
- blood in my veins. But Miss Stacy said it was a very silly,
- unwholesome book, and she asked me not to read any more of it or
- any like it. I didn't mind promising not to read any more like
- it, but it was AGONIZING to give back that book without knowing
- how it turned out. But my love for Miss Stacy stood the test and
- I did. It's really wonderful, Marilla, what you can do when
- you're truly anxious to please a certain person."
-
- "Well, I guess I'll light the lamp and get to work," said
- Marilla. "I see plainly that you don't want to hear what Miss
- Stacy had to say. You're more interested in the sound of your
- own tongue than in anything else."
-
- "Oh, indeed, Marilla, I do want to hear it," cried Anne contritely.
- "I won't say another word--not one. I know I talk too much, but I
- am really trying to overcome it, and although I say far too much,
- yet if you only knew how many things I want to say and don't,
- you'd give me some credit for it. Please tell me, Marilla."
-
- "Well, Miss Stacy wants to organize a class among her advanced
- students who mean to study for the entrance examination into
- Queen's. She intends to give them extra lessons for an hour
- after school. And she came to ask Matthew and me if we would
- like to have you join it. What do you think about it yourself,
- Anne? Would you like to go to Queen's and pass for a teacher?"
-
- "Oh, Marilla!" Anne straightened to her knees and clasped her
- hands. "It's been the dream of my life--that is, for the last
- six months, ever since Ruby and Jane began to talk of studying
- for the Entrance. But I didn't say anything about it, because I
- supposed it would be perfectly useless. I'd love to be a teacher.
- But won't it be dreadfully expensive? Mr. Andrews says it cost
- him one hundred and fifty dollars to put Prissy through, and
- Prissy wasn't a dunce in geometry."
-
- "I guess you needn't worry about that part of it. When Matthew
- and I took you to bring up we resolved we would do the best we
- could for you and give you a good education. I believe in a girl
- being fitted to earn her own living whether she ever has to or not.
- You'll always have a home at Green Gables as long as Matthew and
- I are here, but nobody knows what is going to happen in this
- uncertain world, and it's just as well to be prepared.
- So you can join the Queen's class if you like, Anne."
-
- "Oh, Marilla, thank you." Anne flung her arms about Marilla's
- waist and looked up earnestly into her face. "I'm extremely
- grateful to you and Matthew. And I'll study as hard as I can and
- do my very best to be a credit to you. I warn you not to expect
- much in geometry, but I think I can hold my own in anything else
- if I work hard."
-
- "I dare say you'll get along well enough. Miss Stacy says you
- are bright and diligent." Not for worlds would Marilla have told
- Anne just what Miss Stacy had said about her; that would have
- been to pamper vanity. "You needn't rush to any extreme of
- killing yourself over your books. There is no hurry. You won't
- be ready to try the Entrance for a year and a half yet. But it's
- well to begin in time and be thoroughly grounded, Miss Stacy says."
-
- "I shall take more interest than ever in my studies now," said
- Anne blissfully, "because I have a purpose in life. Mr. Allan
- says everybody should have a purpose in life and pursue it
- faithfully. Only he says we must first make sure that it is a
- worthy purpose. I would call it a worthy purpose to want to be a
- teacher like Miss Stacy, wouldn't you, Marilla? I think it's a
- very noble profession."
-
- The Queen's class was organized in due time. Gilbert Blythe,
- Anne Shirley, Ruby Gillis, Jane Andrews, Josie Pye, Charlie
- Sloane, and Moody Spurgeon MacPherson joined it. Diana Barry did
- not, as her parents did not intend to send her to Queen's. This
- seemed nothing short of a calamity to Anne. Never, since the
- night on which Minnie May had had the croup, had she and Diana
- been separated in anything. On the evening when the Queen's
- class first remained in school for the extra lessons and Anne saw
- Diana go slowly out with the others, to walk home alone through
- the Birch Path and Violet Vale, it was all the former could do to
- keep her seat and refrain from rushing impulsively after her chum.
- A lump came into her throat, and she hastily retired behind the
- pages of her uplifted Latin grammar to hide the tears in her eyes.
- Not for worlds would Anne have had Gilbert Blythe or Josie Pye
- see those tears.
-
- "But, oh, Marilla, I really felt that I had tasted the bitterness
- of death, as Mr. Allan said in his sermon last Sunday, when I
- saw Diana go out alone," she said mournfully that night. "I
- thought how splendid it would have been if Diana had only been
- going to study for the Entrance, too. But we can't have things
- perfect in this imperfect world, as Mrs. Lynde says. Mrs. Lynde
- isn't exactly a comforting person sometimes, but there's no
- doubt she says a great many very true things. And I think the
- Queen's class is going to be extremely interesting. Jane and
- Ruby are just going to study to be teachers. That is the height
- of their ambition. Ruby says she will only teach for two years
- after she gets through, and then she intends to be married. Jane
- says she will devote her whole life to teaching, and never, never
- marry, because you are paid a salary for teaching, but a husband
- won't pay you anything, and growls if you ask for a share in the
- egg and butter money. I expect Jane speaks from mournful
- experience, for Mrs. Lynde says that her father is a perfect old
- crank, and meaner than second skimmings. Josie Pye says she is
- just going to college for education's sake, because she won't
- have to earn her own living; she says of course it is different
- with orphans who are living on charity--THEY have to hustle.
- Moody Spurgeon is going to be a minister. Mrs. Lynde says he
- couldn't be anything else with a name like that to live up to.
- I hope it isn't wicked of me, Marilla, but really the thought of
- Moody Spurgeon being a minister makes me laugh. He's such a
- funny-looking boy with that big fat face, and his little blue
- eyes, and his ears sticking out like flaps. But perhaps he will
- be more intellectual looking when he grows up. Charlie Sloane
- says he's going to go into politics and be a member of
- Parliament, but Mrs. Lynde says he'll never succeed at that,
- because the Sloanes are all honest people, and it's only rascals
- that get on in politics nowadays."
-
- "What is Gilbert Blythe going to be?" queried Marilla, seeing
- that Anne was opening her Caesar.
-
- "I don't happen to know what Gilbert Blythe's ambition in life is--
- if he has any," said Anne scornfully.
-
- There was open rivalry between Gilbert and Anne now. Previously
- the rivalry had been rather onesided, but there was no longer any
- doubt that Gilbert was as determined to be first in class as Anne was.
- He was a foeman worthy of her steel. The other members of the class
- tacitly acknowledged their superiority, and never dreamed of trying
- to compete with them.
-
- Since the day by the pond when she had refused to listen to his
- plea for forgiveness, Gilbert, save for the aforesaid determined
- rivalry, had evinced no recognition whatever of the existence of
- Anne Shirley. He talked and jested with the other girls, exchanged
- books and puzzles with them, discussed lessons and plans, sometimes
- walked home with one or the other of them from prayer meeting or
- Debating Club. But Anne Shirley he simply ignored, and Anne found
- out that it is not pleasant to be ignored. It was in vain that
- she told herself with a toss of her head that she did not care.
- Deep down in her wayward, feminine little heart she knew that
- she did care, and that if she had that chance of the Lake of
- Shining Waters again she would answer very differently.
- All at once, as it seemed, and to her secret dismay, she
- found that the old resentment she had cherished against him
- was gone--gone just when she most needed its sustaining power.
- It was in vain that she recalled every incident and emotion of
- that memorable occasion and tried to feel the old satisfying anger.
- That day by the pond had witnessed its last spasmodic flicker.
- Anne realized that she had forgiven and forgotten without knowing it.
- But it was too late.
-
- And at least neither Gilbert nor anybody else, not even Diana,
- should ever suspect how sorry she was and how much she wished she
- hadn't been so proud and horrid! She determined to "shroud her
- feelings in deepest oblivion," and it may be stated here and now
- that she did it, so successfully that Gilbert, who possibly was
- not quite so indifferent as he seemed, could not console himself
- with any belief that Anne felt his retaliatory scorn. The only
- poor comfort he had was that she snubbed Charlie Sloane,
- unmercifully, continually, and undeservedly.
-
- Otherwise the winter passed away in a round of pleasant duties
- and studies. For Anne the days slipped by like golden beads on
- the necklace of the year. She was happy, eager, interested;
- there were lessons to be learned and honor to be won; delightful
- books to read; new pieces to be practiced for the Sunday-school
- choir; pleasant Saturday afternoons at the manse with Mrs. Allan;
- and then, almost before Anne realized it, spring had come again
- to Green Gables and all the world was abloom once more.
-
- Studies palled just a wee bit then; the Queen's class, left
- behind in school while the others scattered to green lanes and
- leafy wood cuts and meadow byways, looked wistfully out of the
- windows and discovered that Latin verbs and French exercises had
- somehow lost the tang and zest they had possessed in the crisp
- winter months. Even Anne and Gilbert lagged and grew indifferent.
- Teacher and taught were alike glad when the term was ended and the
- glad vacation days stretched rosily before them.
-
- "But you've done good work this past year," Miss Stacy told them
- on the last evening, "and you deserve a good, jolly vacation.
- Have the best time you can in the out-of-door world and lay in a
- good stock of health and vitality and ambition to carry you
- through next year. It will be the tug of war, you know--the last
- year before the Entrance."
-
- "Are you going to be back next year, Miss Stacy?" asked Josie Pye.
-
- Josie Pye never scrupled to ask questions; in this instance the
- rest of the class felt grateful to her; none of them would have
- dared to ask it of Miss Stacy, but all wanted to, for there had
- been alarming rumors running at large through the school for some
- time that Miss Stacy was not coming back the next year--that she
- had been offered a position in the grade school of her own home
- district and meant to accept. The Queen's class listened in
- breathless suspense for her answer.
-
- "Yes, I think I will," said Miss Stacy. "I thought of taking
- another school, but I have decided to come back to Avonlea. To
- tell the truth, I've grown so interested in my pupils here that I
- found I couldn't leave them. So I'll stay and see you through."
-
- "Hurrah!" said Moody Spurgeon. Moody Spurgeon had never been so
- carried away by his feelings before, and he blushed uncomfortably
- every time he thought about it for a week.
-
- "Oh, I'm so glad," said Anne, with shining eyes. "Dear Stacy, it would
- be perfectly dreadful if you didn't come back. I don't believe I could
- have the heart to go on with my studies at all if another teacher came here."
-
- When Anne got home that night she stacked all her textbooks away
- in an old trunk in the attic, locked it, and threw the key into
- the blanket box.
-
- "I'm not even going to look at a schoolbook in vacation," she
- told Marilla. "I've studied as hard all the term as I possibly
- could and I've pored over that geometry until I know every
- proposition in the first book off by heart, even when the letters
- ARE changed. I just feel tired of everything sensible and I'm
- going to let my imagination run riot for the summer. Oh, you
- needn't be alarmed, Marilla. I'll only let it run riot within
- reasonable limits. But I want to have a real good jolly time
- this summer, for maybe it's the last summer I'll be a little
- girl. Mrs. Lynde says that if I keep stretching out next year
- as I've done this I'll have to put on longer skirts. She says
- I'm all running to legs and eyes. And when I put on longer skirts
- I shall feel that I have to live up to them and be very dignified.
- It won't even do to believe in fairies then, I'm afraid; so I'm
- going to believe in them with all my whole heart this summer.
- I think we're going to have a very gay vacation. Ruby Gillis
- is going to have a birthday party soon and there's the Sunday
- school picnic and the missionary concert next month.
- And Mrs. Barry says that some evening he'll take Diana and me
- over to the White Sands Hotel and have dinner there. They have
- dinner there in the evening, you know. Jane Andrews was over
- once last summer and she says it was a dazzling sight to see the
- electric lights and the flowers and all the lady guests in such
- beautiful dresses. Jane says it was her first glimpse into high
- life and she'll never forget it to her dying day."
-
- Mrs. Lynde came up the next afternoon to find out why Marilla had
- not been at the Aid meeting on Thursday. When Marilla was not at
- Aid meeting people knew there was something wrong at Green Gables.
-
- "Matthew had a bad spell with his heart Thursday," Marilla
- explained, "and I didn't feel like leaving him. Oh, yes, he's
- all right again now, but he takes them spells oftener than he
- used to and I'm anxious about him. The doctor says he must be
- careful to avoid excitement. That's easy enough, for Matthew
- doesn't go about looking for excitement by any means and never did,
- but he's not to do any very heavy work either and you might as well
- tell Matthew not to breathe as not to work. Come and lay off your
- things, Rachel. You'll stay to tea?"
-
- "Well, seeing you're so pressing, perhaps I might as well, stay"
- said Mrs. Rachel, who had not the slightest intention of doing
- anything else.
-
- Mrs. Rachel and Marilla sat comfortably in the parlor while Anne
- got the tea and made hot biscuits that were light and white
- enough to defy even Mrs. Rachel's criticism.
-
- "I must say Anne has turned out a real smart girl," admitted
- Mrs. Rachel, as Marilla accompanied her to the end of the lane
- at sunset. "She must be a great help to you."
-
- "She is," said Marilla, "and she's real steady and reliable now.
- I used to be afraid she'd never get over her featherbrained ways,
- but she has and I wouldn't be afraid to trust her in anything now."
-
- "I never would have thought she'd have turned out so well that
- first day I was here three years ago," said Mrs. Rachel.
- "Lawful heart, shall I ever forget that tantrum of hers!
- When I went home that night I says to Thomas, says I, `Mark my words,
- Thomas, Marilla Cuthbert'll live to rue the step she's took.' But
- I was mistaken and I'm real glad of it. I ain't one of those
- kind of people, Marilla, as can never be brought to own up that
- they've made a mistake. No, that never was my way, thank goodness.
- I did make a mistake in judging Anne, but it weren't no wonder,
- for an odder, unexpecteder witch of a child there never was in
- this world, that's what. There was no ciphering her out by
- the rules that worked with other children. It's nothing
- short of wonderful how she's improved these three years, but
- especially in looks. She's a real pretty girl got to be, though I
- can't say I'm overly partial to that pale, big-eyed style myself.
- I like more snap and color, like Diana Barry has or Ruby Gillis.
- Ruby Gillis's looks are real showy. But somehow--I don't know
- how it is but when Anne and them are together, though she ain't
- half as handsome, she makes them look kind of common and overdone--
- something like them white June lilies she calls narcissus alongside
- of the big, red peonies, that's what."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXI
-
- Where the Brook and River Meet
-
-
- Anne had her "good" summer and enjoyed it wholeheartedly. She
- and Diana fairly lived outdoors, reveling in all the delights
- that Lover's Lane and the Dryad's Bubble and Willowmere and
- Victoria Island afforded. Marilla offered no objections to
- Anne's gypsyings. The Spencervale doctor who had come the night
- Minnie May had the croup met Anne at the house of a patient one
- afternoon early in vacation, looked her over sharply, screwed up
- his mouth, shook his head, and sent a message to Marilla Cuthbert
- by another person. It was:
-
- "Keep that redheaded girl of yours in the open air all summer and
- don't let her read books until she gets more spring into her step."
-
- This message frightened Marilla wholesomely. She read Anne's death
- warrant by consumption in it unless it was scrupulously obeyed.
- As a result, Anne had the golden summer of her life as far as
- freedom and frolic went. She walked, rowed, berried, and dreamed
- to her heart's content; and when September came she was bright-eyed
- and alert, with a step that would have satisfied the Spencervale
- doctor and a heart full of ambition and zest once more.
-
- "I feel just like studying with might and main," she declared as
- she brought her books down from the attic. "Oh, you good old
- friends, I'm glad to see your honest faces once more--yes, even
- you, geometry. I've had a perfectly beautiful summer, Marilla,
- and now I'm rejoicing as a strong man to run a race, as Mr. Allan
- said last Sunday. Doesn't Mr. Allan preach magnificent sermons?
- Mrs. Lynde says he is improving every day and the first thing we
- know some city church will gobble him up and then we'll be left
- and have to turn to and break in another green preacher. But I
- don't see the use of meeting trouble halfway, do you, Marilla? I
- think it would be better just to enjoy Mr. Allan while we have him.
- If I were a man I think I'd be a minister. They can have such
- an influence for good, if their theology is sound; and it
- must be thrilling to preach splendid sermons and stir your
- hearers' hearts. Why can't women be ministers, Marilla? I asked
- Mrs. Lynde that and she was shocked and said it would be a
- scandalous thing. She said there might be female ministers in
- the States and she believed there was, but thank goodness we hadn't
- got to that stage in Canada yet and she hoped we never would.
- But I don't see why. I think women would make splendid ministers.
- When there is a social to be got up or a church tea or anything
- else to raise money the women have to turn to and do the work.
- I'm sure Mrs. Lynde can pray every bit as well as Superintendent
- Bell and I've no doubt she could preach too with a little practice."
-
- "Yes, I believe she could," said Marilla dryly. "She does plenty
- of unofficial preaching as it is. Nobody has much of a chance to
- go wrong in Avonlea with Rachel to oversee them."
-
- "Marilla," said Anne in a burst of confidence, "I want to tell
- you something and ask you what you think about it. It has
- worried me terribly--on Sunday afternoons, that is, when I think
- specially about such matters. I do really want to be good; and
- when I'm with you or Mrs. Allan or Miss Stacy I want it more
- than ever and I want to do just what would please you and what
- you would approve of. But mostly when I'm with Mrs. Lynde I
- feel desperately wicked and as if I wanted to go and do the very
- thing she tells me I oughtn't to do. I feel irresistibly tempted
- to do it. Now, what do you think is the reason I feel like that?
- Do you think it's because I'm really bad and unregenerate?"
-
- Marilla looked dubious for a moment. Then she laughed.
-
- "If you are I guess I am too, Anne, for Rachel often has that
- very effect on me. I sometimes think she'd have more of an
- influence for good, as you say yourself, if she didn't keep
- nagging people to do right. There should have been a special
- commandment against nagging. But there, I shouldn't talk so.
- Rachel is a good Christian woman and she means well. There isn't
- a kinder soul in Avonlea and she never shirks her share of work."
-
- "I'm very glad you feel the same," said Anne decidedly. "It's so
- encouraging. I shan't worry so much over that after this. But I
- dare say there'll be other things to worry me. They keep coming
- up new all the time--things to perplex you, you know. You settle
- one question and there's another right after. There are so many
- things to be thought over and decided when you're beginning to
- grow up. It keeps me busy all the time thinking them over and
- deciding what is right. It's a serious thing to grow up, isn't
- it, Marilla? But when I have such good friends as you and
- Matthew and Mrs. Allan and Miss Stacy I ought to grow up
- successfully, and I'm sure it will be my own fault if I don't.
- I feel it's a great responsibility because I have only the one
- chance. If I don't grow up right I can't go back and begin over
- again. I've grown two inches this summer, Marilla. Mr. Gillis
- measured me at Ruby's party. I'm so glad you made my new dresses
- longer. That dark-green one is so pretty and it was sweet of you
- to put on the flounce. Of course I know it wasn't really
- necessary, but flounces are so stylish this fall and Josie Pye
- has flounces on all her dresses. I know I'll be able to study
- better because of mine. I shall have such a comfortable feeling
- deep down in my mind about that flounce."
-
- "It's worth something to have that," admitted Marilla.
-
- Miss Stacy came back to Avonlea school and found all her pupils
- eager for work once more. Especially did the Queen's class gird
- up their loins for the fray, for at the end of the coming year,
- dimly shadowing their pathway already, loomed up that fateful
- thing known as "the Entrance," at the thought of which one and
- all felt their hearts sink into their very shoes. Suppose they
- did not pass! That thought was doomed to haunt Anne through the
- waking hours of that winter, Sunday afternoons inclusive, to the
- almost entire exclusion of moral and theological problems. When
- Anne had bad dreams she found herself staring miserably at pass
- lists of the Entrance exams, where Gilbert Blythe's name was
- blazoned at the top and in which hers did not appear at all.
-
- But it was a jolly, busy, happy swift-flying winter. Schoolwork
- was as interesting, class rivalry as absorbing, as of yore. New
- worlds of thought, feeling, and ambition, fresh, fascinating
- fields of unexplored knowledge seemed to be opening out before
- Anne's eager eyes.
-
-
- "Hills peeped o'er hill and Alps on Alps arose."
-
-
- Much of all this was due to Miss Stacy's tactful, careful,
- broadminded guidance. She led her class to think and explore and
- discover for themselves and encouraged straying from the old
- beaten paths to a degree that quite shocked Mrs. Lynde and the
- school trustees, who viewed all innovations on established
- methods rather dubiously.
-
- Apart from her studies Anne expanded socially, for Marilla,
- mindful of the Spencervale doctor's dictum, no longer vetoed
- occasional outings. The Debating Club flourished and gave
- several concerts; there were one or two parties almost verging on
- grown-up affairs; there were sleigh drives and skating frolics galore.
-
- Betweentimes Anne grew, shooting up so rapidly that Marilla was
- astonished one day, when they were standing side by side, to find
- the girl was taller than herself.
-
- "Why, Anne, how you've grown!" she said, almost unbelievingly. A
- sigh followed on the words. Marilla felt a queer regret over
- Anne's inches. The child she had learned to love had vanished
- somehow and here was this tall, serious-eyed girl of fifteen,
- with the thoughtful brows and the proudly poised little head, in
- her place. Marilla loved the girl as much as she had loved the
- child, but she was conscious of a queer sorrowful sense of loss.
- And that night, when Anne had gone to prayer meeting with Diana,
- Marilla sat alone in the wintry twilight and indulged in the
- weakness of a cry. Matthew, coming in with a lantern, caught her
- at it and gazed at her in such consternation that Marilla had to
- laugh through her tears.
-
- "I was thinking about Anne," she explained. "She's got to be
- such a big girl--and she'll probably be away from us next winter.
- I'll miss her terrible."
-
- "She'll be able to come home often," comforted Matthew, to whom
- Anne was as yet and always would be the little, eager girl he had
- brought home from Bright River on that June evening four years before.
- "The branch railroad will be built to Carmody by that time."
-
- "It won't be the same thing as having her here all the time,"
- sighed Marilla gloomily, determined to enjoy her luxury of grief
- uncomforted. "But there--men can't understand these things!"
-
- There were other changes in Anne no less real than the physical change.
- For one thing, she became much quieter. Perhaps she thought all the
- more and dreamed as much as ever, but she certainly talked less.
- Marilla noticed and commented on this also.
-
- "You don't chatter half as much as you used to, Anne, nor use
- half as many big words. What has come over you?"
-
- Anne colored and laughed a little, as she dropped her book and looked
- dreamily out of the window, where big fat red buds were bursting out
- on the creeper in response to the lure of the spring sunshine.
-
- "I don't know--I don't want to talk as much," she said, denting her
- chin thoughtfully with her forefinger. "It's nicer to think dear,
- pretty thoughts and keep them in one's heart, like treasures.
- I don't like to have them laughed at or wondered over.
- And somehow I don't want to use big words any more.
- It's almost a pity, isn't it, now that I'm really growing
- big enough to say them if I did want to. It's fun to be
- almost grown up in some ways, but it's not the kind of fun
- I expected, Marilla. There's so much to learn and do and think
- that there isn't time for big words. Besides, Miss Stacy says
- the short ones are much stronger and better. She makes us write
- all our essays as simply as possible. It was hard at first.
- I was so used to crowding in all the fine big words I could
- think of--and I thought of any number of them. But I've got
- used to it now and I see it's so much better."
-
- "What has become of your story club? I haven't heard you speak
- of it for a long time."
-
- "The story club isn't in existence any longer. We hadn't time
- for it--and anyhow I think we had got tired of it. It was silly
- to be writing about love and murder and elopements and mysteries.
- Miss Stacy sometimes has us write a story for training in
- composition, but she won't let us write anything but what might
- happen in Avonlea in our own lives, and she criticizes it very
- sharply and makes us criticize our own too. I never thought my
- compositions had so many faults until I began to look for them
- myself. I felt so ashamed I wanted to give up altogether, but
- Miss Stacy said I could learn to write well if I only trained
- myself to be my own severest critic. And so I am trying to."
-
- "You've only two more months before the Entrance," said Marilla.
- "Do you think you'll be able to get through?"
-
- Anne shivered.
-
- "I don't know. Sometimes I think I'll be all right--and then I
- get horribly afraid. We've studied hard and Miss Stacy has
- drilled us thoroughly, but we mayn't get through for all that.
- We've each got a stumbling block. Mine is geometry of course,
- and Jane's is Latin, and Ruby and Charlie's is algebra, and
- Josie's is arithmetic. Moody Spurgeon says he feels it in his
- bones that he is going to fail in English history. Miss Stacy is
- going to give us examinations in June just as hard as we'll have at
- the Entrance and mark us just as strictly, so we'll have some idea.
- I wish it was all over, Marilla. It haunts me. Sometimes I wake up
- in the night and wonder what I'll do if I don't pass."
-
- "Why, go to school next year and try again," said Marilla unconcernedly.
-
- "Oh, I don't believe I'd have the heart for it. It would be such
- a disgrace to fail, especially if Gil--if the others passed. And
- I get so nervous in an examination that I'm likely to make a mess
- of it. I wish I had nerves like Jane Andrews. Nothing rattles her."
-
- Anne sighed and, dragging her eyes from the witcheries of the
- spring world, the beckoning day of breeze and blue, and the green
- things upspringing in the garden, buried herself resolutely in
- her book. There would be other springs, but if she did not
- succeed in passing the Entrance, Anne felt convinced that she
- would never recover sufficiently to enjoy them.
-
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXII
-
- The Pass List Is Out
-
-
- With the end of June came the close of the term and the close of
- Miss Stacy's rule in Avonlea school. Anne and Diana walked home that
- evening feeling very sober indeed. Red eyes and damp handkerchiefs
- bore convincing testimony to the fact that Miss Stacy's farewell words
- must have been quite as touching as Mr. Phillips's had been under
- similar circumstances three years before. Diana looked back at the
- schoolhouse from the foot of the spruce hill and sighed deeply.
-
- "It does seem as if it was the end of everything, doesn't it?"
- she said dismally.
-
- "You oughtn't to feel half as badly as I do," said Anne, hunting
- vainly for a dry spot on her handkerchief. "You'll be back again
- next winter, but I suppose I've left the dear old school forever--
- if I have good luck, that is."
-
- "It won't be a bit the same. Miss Stacy won't be there, nor you
- nor Jane nor Ruby probably. I shall have to sit all alone, for I
- couldn't bear to have another deskmate after you. Oh, we have had
- jolly times, haven't we, Anne? It's dreadful to think they're all over."
-
- Two big tears rolled down by Diana's nose.
-
- "If you would stop crying I could," said Anne imploringly. "Just
- as soon as I put away my hanky I see you brimming up and that
- starts me off again. As Mrs. Lynde says, `If you can't be cheerful,
- be as cheerful as you can.' After all, I dare say I'll be back
- next year. This is one of the times I KNOW I'm not going to pass.
- They're getting alarmingly frequent."
-
- "Why, you came out splendidly in the exams Miss Stacy gave."
-
- "Yes, but those exams didn't make me nervous. When I think of
- the real thing you can't imagine what a horrid cold fluttery
- feeling comes round my heart. And then my number is thirteen and
- Josie Pye says it's so unlucky. I am NOT superstitious and I know
- it can make no difference. But still I wish it wasn't thirteen."
-
- "I do wish I was going in with you," said Diana. "Wouldn't we
- have a perfectly elegant time? But I suppose you'll have to cram
- in the evenings."
-
- "No; Miss Stacy has made us promise not to open a book at all.
- She says it would only tire and confuse us and we are to go out
- walking and not think about the exams at all and go to bed early.
- It's good advice, but I expect it will be hard to follow; good
- advice is apt to be, I think. Prissy Andrews told me that she
- sat up half the night every night of her Entrance week and
- crammed for dear life; and I had determined to sit up AT LEAST as
- long as she did. It was so kind of your Aunt Josephine to ask me
- to stay at Beechwood while I'm in town."
-
- "You'll write to me while you're in, won't you?"
-
- "I'll write Tuesday night and tell you how the first day goes,"
- promised Anne.
-
- "I'll be haunting the post office Wednesday," vowed Diana.
-
- Anne went to town the following Monday and on Wednesday Diana
- haunted the post office, as agreed, and got her letter.
-
-
- "Dearest Diana" [wrote Anne],
-
- "Here it is Tuesday night and I'm writing this in the library at
- Beechwood. Last night I was horribly lonesome all alone in my
- room and wished so much you were with me. I couldn't "cram"
- because I'd promised Miss Stacy not to, but it was as hard to
- keep from opening my history as it used to be to keep from
- reading a story before my lessons were learned.
-
- "This morning Miss Stacy came for me and we went to the Academy,
- calling for Jane and Ruby and Josie on our way. Ruby asked me to
- feel her hands and they were as cold as ice. Josie said I looked
- as if I hadn't slept a wink and she didn't believe I was strong
- enough to stand the grind of the teacher's course even if I did get
- through. There are times and seasons even yet when I don't feel
- that I've made any great headway in learning to like Josie Pye!
-
- "When we reached the Academy there were scores of students there
- from all over the Island. The first person we saw was Moody
- Spurgeon sitting on the steps and muttering away to himself.
- Jane asked him what on earth he was doing and he said he was
- repeating the multiplication table over and over to steady his
- nerves and for pity's sake not to interrupt him, because if he
- stopped for a moment he got frightened and forgot everything he
- ever knew, but the multiplication table kept all his facts firmly
- in their proper place!
-
- "When we were assigned to our rooms Miss Stacy had to leave us.
- Jane and I sat together and Jane was so composed that I envied her.
- No need of the multiplication table for good, steady,
- sensible Jane! I wondered if I looked as I felt and
- if they could hear my heart thumping clear across the room.
- Then a man came in and began distributing the English
- examination sheets. My hands grew cold then and my head
- fairly whirled around as I picked it up. Just one awful
- moment--Diana, I felt exactly as I did four years ago when
- I asked Marilla if I might stay at Green Gables--and then
- everything cleared up in my mind and my heart began beating
- again--I forgot to say that it had stopped altogether!--for
- I knew I could do something with THAT paper anyhow.
-
- "At noon we went home for dinner and then back again for history
- in the afternoon. The history was a pretty hard paper and I got
- dreadfully mixed up in the dates. Still, I think I did fairly
- well today. But oh, Diana, tomorrow the geometry exam comes off
- and when I think of it it takes every bit of determination I
- possess to keep from opening my Euclid. If I thought the
- multiplication table would help me any I would recite it
- from now till tomorrow morning.
-
- "I went down to see the other girls this evening. On my way I met
- Moody Spurgeon wandering distractedly around. He said he knew he
- had failed in history and he was born to be a disappointment to
- his parents and he was going home on the morning train; and it
- would be easier to be a carpenter than a minister, anyhow. I
- cheered him up and persuaded him to stay to the end because it
- would be unfair to Miss Stacy if he didn't. Sometimes I have
- wished I was born a boy, but when I see Moody Spurgeon I'm always
- glad I'm a girl and not his sister.
-
- "Ruby was in hysterics when I reached their boardinghouse; she had
- just discovered a fearful mistake she had made in her English
- paper. When she recovered we went uptown and had an ice cream.
- How we wished you had been with us.
-
- "Oh, Diana, if only the geometry examination were over!
- But there, as Mrs. Lynde would say, the sun will go on
- rising and setting whether I fail in geometry or not.
- That is true but not especially comforting. I think I'd
- rather it didn't go on if I failed!
-
- Yours devotedly,
- Anne"
-
-
- The geometry examination and all the others were over in due time
- and Anne arrived home on Friday evening, rather tired but with an
- air of chastened triumph about her. Diana was over at Green Gables
- when she arrived and they met as if they had been parted for years.
-
- "You old darling, it's perfectly splendid to see you back again.
- It seems like an age since you went to town and oh, Anne, how did
- you get along?"
-
- "Pretty well, I think, in everything but the geometry. I don't
- know whether I passed in it or not and I have a creepy, crawly
- presentiment that I didn't. Oh, how good it is to be back! Green
- Gables is the dearest, loveliest spot in the world."
-
- "How did the others do?"
-
- "The girls say they know they didn't pass, but I think they did
- pretty well. Josie says the geometry was so easy a child of ten
- could do it! Moody Spurgeon still thinks he failed in history
- and Charlie says he failed in algebra. But we don't really know
- anything about it and won't until the pass list is out. That won't
- be for a fortnight. Fancy living a fortnight in such suspense!
- I wish I could go to sleep and never wake up until it is over."
-
- Diana knew it would be useless to ask how Gilbert Blythe had fared,
- so she merely said:
-
- "Oh, you'll pass all right. Don't worry."
-
- "I'd rather not pass at all than not come out pretty well up on
- the list," flashed Anne, by which she meant--and Diana knew she
- meant--that success would be incomplete and bitter if she did not
- come out ahead of Gilbert Blythe.
-
- With this end in view Anne had strained every nerve during the
- examinations. So had Gilbert. They had met and passed each
- other on the street a dozen times without any sign of recognition
- and every time Anne had held her head a little higher and wished
- a little more earnestly that she had made friends with Gilbert
- when he asked her, and vowed a little more determinedly to
- surpass him in the examination. She knew that all Avonlea junior
- was wondering which would come out first; she even knew that
- Jimmy Glover and Ned Wright had a bet on the question and that
- Josie Pye had said there was no doubt in the world that Gilbert
- would be first; and she felt that her humiliation would be
- unbearable if she failed.
-
- But she had another and nobler motive for wishing to do well.
- She wanted to "pass high" for the sake of Matthew and Marilla--
- especially Matthew. Matthew had declared to her his conviction
- that she "would beat the whole Island." That, Anne felt,
- was something it would be foolish to hope for even in the
- wildest dreams. But she did hope fervently that she would be
- among the first ten at least, so that she might see Matthew's
- kindly brown eyes gleam with pride in her achievement. That, she
- felt, would be a sweet reward indeed for all her hard work and
- patient grubbing among unimaginative equations and conjugations.
-
- At the end of the fortnight Anne took to "haunting" the post
- office also, in the distracted company of Jane, Ruby, and Josie,
- opening the Charlottetown dailies with shaking hands and cold,
- sinkaway feelings as bad as any experienced during the Entrance
- week. Charlie and Gilbert were not above doing this too, but
- Moody Spurgeon stayed resolutely away.
-
- "I haven't got the grit to go there and look at a paper in cold
- blood," he told Anne. "I'm just going to wait until somebody
- comes and tells me suddenly whether I've passed or not."
-
- When three weeks had gone by without the pass list appearing Anne
- began to feel that she really couldn't stand the strain much longer.
- Her appetite failed and her interest in Avonlea doings languished.
- Mrs. Lynde wanted to know what else you could expect with a Tory
- superintendent of education at the head of affairs, and Matthew,
- noting Anne's paleness and indifference and the lagging steps that
- bore her home from the post office every afternoon, began seriously
- to wonder if he hadn't better vote Grit at the next election.
-
- But one evening the news came. Anne was sitting at her open window,
- for the time forgetful of the woes of examinations and the cares
- of the world, as she drank in the beauty of the summer dusk,
- sweet-scented with flower breaths from the garden below and sibilant
- and rustling from the stir of poplars. The eastern sky above the
- firs was flushed faintly pink from the reflection of the west,
- and Anne was wondering dreamily if the spirit of color looked
- like that, when she saw Diana come flying down through the firs,
- over the log bridge, and up the slope, with a fluttering newspaper
- in her hand.
-
- Anne sprang to her feet, knowing at once what that paper
- contained. The pass list was out! Her head whirled and her heart
- beat until it hurt her. She could not move a step. It seemed an
- hour to her before Diana came rushing along the hall and burst
- into the room without even knocking, so great was her excitement.
-
- "Anne, you've passed," she cried, "passed the VERY FIRST--you and
- Gilbert both--you're ties--but your name is first. Oh, I'm so proud!"
-
- Diana flung the paper on the table and herself on Anne's bed,
- utterly breathless and incapable of further speech. Anne lighted
- the lamp, oversetting the match safe and using up half a dozen
- matches before her shaking hands could accomplish the task.
- Then she snatched up the paper. Yes, she had passed--there was
- her name at the very top of a list of two hundred! That moment
- was worth living for.
-
- "You did just splendidly, Anne," puffed Diana, recovering
- sufficiently to sit up and speak, for Anne, starry eyed and rapt,
- had not uttered a word. "Father brought the paper home from
- Bright River not ten minutes ago--it came out on the afternoon
- train, you know, and won't be here till tomorrow by mail--and
- when I saw the pass list I just rushed over like a wild thing.
- You've all passed, every one of you, Moody Spurgeon and all,
- although he's conditioned in history. Jane and Ruby did pretty
- well--they're halfway up--and so did Charlie. Josie just scraped
- through with three marks to spare, but you'll see she'll put on
- as many airs as if she'd led. Won't Miss Stacy be delighted?
- Oh, Anne, what does it feel like to see your name at the head of
- a pass list like that? If it were me I know I'd go crazy with joy.
- I am pretty near crazy as it is, but you're as calm and cool as a
- spring evening."
-
- "I'm just dazzled inside," said Anne. "I want to say a hundred
- things, and I can't find words to say them in. I never dreamed
- of this--yes, I did too, just once! I let myself think ONCE,
- `What if I should come out first?' quakingly, you know, for it
- seemed so vain and presumptuous to think I could lead the Island.
- Excuse me a minute, Diana. I must run right out to the field to
- tell Matthew. Then we'll go up the road and tell the good news
- to the others."
-
- They hurried to the hayfield below the barn where Matthew was
- coiling hay, and, as luck would have it, Mrs. Lynde was talking
- to Marilla at the lane fence.
-
- "Oh, Matthew," exclaimed Anne, "I've passed and I'm first--or one
- of the first! I'm not vain, but I'm thankful."
-
- "Well now, I always said it," said Matthew, gazing at the pass
- list delightedly. "I knew you could beat them all easy."
-
- "You've done pretty well, I must say, Anne," said Marilla,
- trying to hide her extreme pride in Anne from Mrs. Rachel's
- critical eye. But that good soul said heartily:
-
- "I just guess she has done well, and far be it from me to be
- backward in saying it. You're a credit to your friends, Anne,
- that's what, and we're all proud of you."
-
- That night Anne, who had wound up the delightful evening with a
- serious little talk with Mrs. Allan at the manse, knelt sweetly
- by her open window in a great sheen of moonshine and murmured a
- prayer of gratitude and aspiration that came straight from her
- heart. There was in it thankfulness for the past and reverent
- petition for the future; and when she slept on her white pillow
- her dreams were as fair and bright and beautiful as maidenhood
- might desire.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIII
-
- The Hotel Concert
-
-
- Put on your white organdy, by all means, Anne," advised Diana decidedly.
-
- They were together in the east gable chamber; outside it was
- only twilight--a lovely yellowish-green twilight with a clear-blue
- cloudless sky. A big round moon, slowly deepening from her
- pallid luster into burnished silver, hung over the Haunted Wood;
- the air was full of sweet summer sounds--sleepy birds twittering,
- freakish breezes, faraway voices and laughter. But in Anne's room
- the blind was drawn and the lamp lighted, for an important toilet
- was being made.
-
- The east gable was a very different place from what it had been
- on that night four years before, when Anne had felt its bareness
- penetrate to the marrow of her spirit with its inhospitable chill.
- Changes had crept in, Marilla conniving at them resignedly, until
- it was as sweet and dainty a nest as a young girl could desire.
-
- The velvet carpet with the pink roses and the pink silk curtains
- of Anne's early visions had certainly never materialized; but her
- dreams had kept pace with her growth, and it is not probable she
- lamented them. The floor was covered with a pretty matting, and
- the curtains that softened the high window and fluttered in the
- vagrant breezes were of pale-green art muslin. The walls, hung
- not with gold and silver brocade tapestry, but with a dainty
- apple-blossom paper, were adorned with a few good pictures given
- Anne by Mrs. Allan. Miss Stacy's photograph occupied the place
- of honor, and Anne made a sentimental point of keeping fresh
- flowers on the bracket under it. Tonight a spike of white lilies
- faintly perfumed the room like the dream of a fragrance. There
- was no "mahogany furniture," but there was a white-painted
- bookcase filled with books, a cushioned wicker rocker, a toilet
- table befrilled with white muslin, a quaint, gilt-framed mirror
- with chubby pink Cupids and purple grapes painted over its arched
- top, that used to hang in the spare room, and a low white bed.
-
- Anne was dressing for a concert at the White Sands Hotel.
- The guests had got it up in aid of the Charlottetown hospital,
- and had hunted out all the available amateur talent in the
- surrounding districts to help it along. Bertha Sampson and
- Pearl Clay of the White Sands Baptist choir had been asked to
- sing a duet; Milton Clark of Newbridge was to give a violin solo;
- Winnie Adella Blair of Carmody was to sing a Scotch ballad; and Laura
- Spencer of Spencervale and Anne Shirley of Avonlea were to recite.
-
- As Anne would have said at one time, it was "an epoch in her life,"
- and she was deliciously athrill with the excitement of it.
- Matthew was in the seventh heaven of gratified pride over the
- honor conferred on his Anne and Marilla was not far behind,
- although she would have died rather than admit it, and said she
- didn't think it was very proper for a lot of young folks to be
- gadding over to the hotel without any responsible person with them.
-
- Anne and Diana were to drive over with Jane Andrews and her
- brother Billy in their double-seated buggy; and several other
- Avonlea girls and boys were going too. There was a party of
- visitors expected out from town, and after the concert a supper
- was to be given to the performers.
-
- "Do you really think the organdy will be best?" queried Anne anxiously.
- "I don't think it's as pretty as my blue-flowered muslin--and it certainly
- isn't so fashionable."
-
- "But it suits you ever so much better," said Diana. "It's so soft
- and frilly and clinging. The muslin is stiff, and makes you look too
- dressed up. But the organdy seems as if it grew on you."
-
- Anne sighed and yielded. Diana was beginning to have a
- reputation for notable taste in dressing, and her advice on such
- subjects was much sought after. She was looking very pretty
- herself on this particular night in a dress of the lovely
- wild-rose pink, from which Anne was forever debarred; but she was
- not to take any part in the concert, so her appearance was of
- minor importance. All her pains were bestowed upon Anne, who,
- she vowed, must, for the credit of Avonlea, be dressed and combed
- and adorned to the Queen's taste.
-
- "Pull out that frill a little more--so; here, let me tie your
- sash; now for your slippers. I'm going to braid your hair in two
- thick braids, and tie them halfway up with big white bows--no,
- don't pull out a single curl over your forehead--just have the
- soft part. There is no way you do your hair suits you so well,
- Anne, and Mrs. Allan says you look like a Madonna when you part
- it so. I shall fasten this little white house rose just behind
- your ear. There was just one on my bush, and I saved it for you."
-
- "Shall I put my pearl beads on?" asked Anne. "Matthew brought me a
- string from town last week, and I know he'd like to see them on me."
-
- Diana pursed up her lips, put her black head on one side
- critically, and finally pronounced in favor of the beads, which
- were thereupon tied around Anne's slim milk-white throat.
-
- "There's something so stylish about you, Anne," said Diana,
- with unenvious admiration. "You hold your head with such an air.
- I suppose it's your figure. I am just a dumpling. I've always
- been afraid of it, and now I know it is so. Well, I suppose I
- shall just have to resign myself to it."
-
- "But you have such dimples," said Anne, smiling affectionately
- into the pretty, vivacious face so near her own. "Lovely dimples,
- like little dents in cream. I have given up all hope of dimples.
- My dimple-dream will never come true; but so many of my dreams
- have that I mustn't complain. Am I all ready now?"
-
- "All ready," assured Diana, as Marilla appeared in the doorway,
- a gaunt figure with grayer hair than of yore and no fewer angles,
- but with a much softer face. "Come right in and look at our
- elocutionist, Marilla. Doesn't she look lovely?"
-
- Marilla emitted a sound between a sniff and a grunt.
-
- "She looks neat and proper. I like that way of fixing her hair.
- But I expect she'll ruin that dress driving over there in the dust
- and dew with it, and it looks most too thin for these damp nights.
- Organdy's the most unserviceable stuff in the world anyhow, and I
- told Matthew so when he got it. But there is no use in saying
- anything to Matthew nowadays. Time was when he would take my advice,
- but now he just buys things for Anne regardless, and the clerks at
- Carmody know they can palm anything off on him. Just let them tell
- him a thing is pretty and fashionable, and Matthew plunks his money
- down for it. Mind you keep your skirt clear of the wheel, Anne, and
- put your warm jacket on."
-
- Then Marilla stalked downstairs, thinking proudly how sweet Anne
- looked, with that
-
-
- "One moonbeam from the forehead to the crown"
-
-
- and regretting that she could not go to the concert herself to
- hear her girl recite.
-
- "I wonder if it IS too damp for my dress," said Anne anxiously.
-
- "Not a bit of it," said Diana, pulling up the window blind.
- "It's a perfect night, and there won't be any dew. Look at
- the moonlight."
-
- "I'm so glad my window looks east into the sunrising," said Anne,
- going over to Diana. "It's so splendid to see the morning coming
- up over those long hills and glowing through those sharp fir tops.
- It's new every morning, and I feel as if I washed my very soul in
- that bath of earliest sunshine. Oh, Diana, I love this little
- room so dearly. I don't know how I'll get along without it when
- I go to town next month."
-
- "Don't speak of your going away tonight," begged Diana. "I don't
- want to think of it, it makes me so miserable, and I do want to
- have a good time this evening. What are you going to recite, Anne?
- And are you nervous?"
-
- "Not a bit. I've recited so often in public I don't mind at all
- now. I've decided to give `The Maiden's Vow.' It's so pathetic.
- Laura Spencer is going to give a comic recitation, but I'd rather
- make people cry than laugh."
-
- "What will you recite if they encore you?"
-
- "They won't dream of encoring me," scoffed Anne, who was not
- without her own secret hopes that they would, and already
- visioned herself telling Matthew all about it at the next
- morning's breakfast table. "There are Billy and Jane now--
- I hear the wheels. Come on."
-
- Billy Andrews insisted that Anne should ride on the front seat
- with him, so she unwillingly climbed up. She would have much
- preferred to sit back with the girls, where she could have
- laughed and chattered to her heart's content. There was not much
- of either laughter or chatter in Billy. He was a big, fat,
- stolid youth of twenty, with a round, expressionless face, and a
- painful lack of conversational gifts. But he admired Anne
- immensely, and was puffed up with pride over the prospect of
- driving to White Sands with that slim, upright figure beside him.
-
- Anne, by dint of talking over her shoulder to the girls and
- occasionally passing a sop of civility to Billy--who grinned and
- chuckled and never could think of any reply until it was too
- late--contrived to enjoy the drive in spite of all. It was a
- night for enjoyment. The road was full of buggies, all bound for
- the hotel, and laughter, silver clear, echoed and reechoed along it.
- When they reached the hotel it was a blaze of light from top
- to bottom. They were met by the ladies of the concert committee,
- one of whom took Anne off to the performers' dressing room which
- was filled with the members of a Charlottetown Symphony Club,
- among whom Anne felt suddenly shy and frightened and countrified.
- Her dress, which, in the east gable, had seemed so dainty and
- pretty, now seemed simple and plain--too simple and plain, she
- thought, among all the silks and laces that glistened and rustled
- around her. What were her pearl beads compared to the diamonds
- of the big, handsome lady near her? And how poor her one wee white
- rose must look beside all the hothouse flowers the others wore!
- Anne laid her hat and jacket away, and shrank miserably into a corner.
- She wished herself back in the white room at Green Gables.
-
- It was still worse on the platform of the big concert hall of the
- hotel, where she presently found herself. The electric lights
- dazzled her eyes, the perfume and hum bewildered her. She wished
- she were sitting down in the audience with Diana and Jane, who
- seemed to be having a splendid time away at the back. She was
- wedged in between a stout lady in pink silk and a tall,
- scornful-looking girl in a white-lace dress. The stout lady
- occasionally turned her head squarely around and surveyed Anne
- through her eyeglasses until Anne, acutely sensitive of being so
- scrutinized, felt that she must scream aloud; and the white-lace
- girl kept talking audibly to her next neighbor about the "country
- bumpkins" and "rustic belles" in the audience, languidly anticipating
- "such fun" from the displays of local talent on the program.
- Anne believed that she would hate that white-lace girl to the end of life.
-
- Unfortunately for Anne, a professional elocutionist was staying
- at the hotel and had consented to recite. She was a lithe,
- dark-eyed woman in a wonderful gown of shimmering gray stuff
- like woven moonbeams, with gems on her neck and in her dark hair.
- She had a marvelously flexible voice and wonderful power of
- expression; the audience went wild over her selection. Anne,
- forgetting all about herself and her troubles for the time,
- listened with rapt and shining eyes; but when the recitation
- ended she suddenly put her hands over her face. She could never
- get up and recite after that--never. Had she ever thought she
- could recite? Oh, if she were only back at Green Gables!
-
- At this unpropitious moment her name was called. Somehow
- Anne--who did not notice the rather guilty little start of
- surprise the white-lace girl gave, and would not have understood
- the subtle compliment implied therein if she had--got on her
- feet, and moved dizzily out to the front. She was so pale that
- Diana and Jane, down in the audience, clasped each other's hands
- in nervous sympathy.
-
- Anne was the victim of an overwhelming attack of stage fright.
- Often as she had recited in public, she had never before faced
- such an audience as this, and the sight of it paralyzed her
- energies completely. Everything was so strange, so brilliant,
- so bewildering--the rows of ladies in evening dress, the critical
- faces, the whole atmosphere of wealth and culture about her.
- Very different this from the plain benches at the Debating Club,
- filled with the homely, sympathetic faces of friends and neighbors.
- These people, she thought, would be merciless critics. Perhaps,
- like the white-lace girl, they anticipated amusement from her "rustic"
- efforts. She felt hopelessly, helplessly ashamed and miserable.
- Her knees trembled, her heart fluttered, a horrible faintness
- came over her; not a word could she utter, and the next moment
- she would have fled from the platform despite the humiliation which,
- she felt, must ever after be her portion if she did so.
-
- But suddenly, as her dilated, frightened eyes gazed out over the
- audience, she saw Gilbert Blythe away at the back of the room,
- bending forward with a smile on his face--a smile which seemed to
- Anne at once triumphant and taunting. In reality it was nothing
- of the kind. Gilbert was merely smiling with appreciation of the
- whole affair in general and of the effect produced by Anne's
- slender white form and spiritual face against a background of
- palms in particular. Josie Pye, whom he had driven over, sat
- beside him, and her face certainly was both triumphant and
- taunting. But Anne did not see Josie, and would not have cared
- if she had. She drew a long breath and flung her head up
- proudly, courage and determination tingling over her like an
- electric shock. She WOULD NOT fail before Gilbert Blythe--he
- should never be able to laugh at her, never, never! Her fright
- and nervousness vanished; and she began her recitation, her clear,
- sweet voice reaching to the farthest corner of the room without a
- tremor or a break. Self-possession was fully restored to her,
- and in the reaction from that horrible moment of powerlessness
- she recited as she had never done before. When she finished
- there were bursts of honest applause. Anne, stepping back to
- her seat, blushing with shyness and delight, found her hand
- vigorously clasped and shaken by the stout lady in pink silk.
-
- "My dear, you did splendidly," she puffed. "I've been crying
- like a baby, actually I have. There, they're encoring you--
- they're bound to have you back!"
-
- "Oh, I can't go," said Anne confusedly. "But yet--I must, or
- Matthew will be disappointed. He said they would encore me."
-
- "Then don't disappoint Matthew," said the pink lady, laughing.
-
- Smiling, blushing, limpid eyed, Anne tripped back and gave a quaint,
- funny little selection that captivated her audience still further.
- The rest of the evening was quite a little triumph for her.
-
- When the concert was over, the stout, pink lady--who was the wife
- of an American millionaire--took her under her wing, and
- introduced her to everybody; and everybody was very nice to her.
- The professional elocutionist, Mrs. Evans, came and chatted with
- her, telling her that she had a charming voice and "interpreted"
- her selections beautifully. Even the white-lace girl paid her a
- languid little compliment. They had supper in the big,
- beautifully decorated dining room; Diana and Jane were invited to
- partake of this, also, since they had come with Anne, but Billy
- was nowhere to be found, having decamped in mortal fear of some
- such invitation. He was in waiting for them, with the team,
- however, when it was all over, and the three girls came merrily
- out into the calm, white moonshine radiance. Anne breathed deeply,
- and looked into the clear sky beyond the dark boughs of the firs.
-
- Oh, it was good to be out again in the purity and silence of the night!
- How great and still and wonderful everything was, with the murmur of
- the sea sounding through it and the darkling cliffs beyond like grim
- giants guarding enchanted coasts.
-
- "Hasn't it been a perfectly splendid time?" sighed Jane, as they
- drove away. "I just wish I was a rich American and could spend
- my summer at a hotel and wear jewels and low-necked dresses and
- have ice cream and chicken salad every blessed day. I'm sure it
- would be ever so much more fun than teaching school. Anne, your
- recitation was simply great, although I thought at first you were
- never going to begin. I think it was better than Mrs. Evans's."
-
- "Oh, no, don't say things like that, Jane," said Anne quickly,
- "because it sounds silly. It couldn't be better than Mrs. Evans's,
- you know, for she is a professional, and I'm only a schoolgirl,
- with a little knack of reciting. I'm quite satisfied if the
- people just liked mine pretty well."
-
- "I've a compliment for you, Anne," said Diana. "At least I think
- it must be a compliment because of the tone he said it in. Part
- of it was anyhow. There was an American sitting behind Jane and
- me--such a romantic-looking man, with coal-black hair and eyes.
- Josie Pye says he is a distinguished artist, and that her mother's
- cousin in Boston is married to a man that used to go to school
- with him. Well, we heard him say--didn't we, Jane?--`Who is that
- girl on the platform with the splendid Titian hair? She has a
- face I should like to paint.' There now, Anne. But what does
- Titian hair mean?"
-
- "Being interpreted it means plain red, I guess," laughed Anne.
- "Titian was a very famous artist who liked to paint red-haired women."
-
- "DID you see all the diamonds those ladies wore?" sighed Jane.
- "They were simply dazzling. Wouldn't you just love to be rich, girls?"
-
- "We ARE rich," said Anne staunchly. "Why, we have sixteen years to
- our credit, and we're happy as queens, and we've all got imaginations,
- more or less. Look at that sea, girls--all silver and shadow and
- vision of things not seen. We couldn't enjoy its loveliness
- any more if we had millions of dollars and ropes of diamonds.
- You wouldn't change into any of those women if you could.
- Would you want to be that white-lace girl and wear a sour
- look all your life, as if you'd been born turning up your nose at
- the world? Or the pink lady, kind and nice as she is, so stout
- and short that you'd really no figure at all? Or even Mrs. Evans,
- with that sad, sad look in her eyes? She must have been dreadfully
- unhappy sometime to have such a look. You KNOW you wouldn't,
- Jane Andrews!"
-
- "I DON'T know--exactly," said Jane unconvinced. "I think
- diamonds would comfort a person for a good deal."
-
- "Well, I don't want to be anyone but myself, even if I
- go uncomforted by diamonds all my life," declared Anne.
- "I'm quite content to be Anne of Green Gables, with my
- string of pearl beads. I know Matthew gave me as much
- love with them as ever went with Madame the Pink Lady's jewels."
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIV
-
- A Queen's Girl
-
-
- The next three weeks were busy ones at Green Gables, for
- Anne was getting ready to go to Queen's, and there was
- much sewing to be done, and many things to be talked
- over and arranged. Anne's outfit was ample and pretty, for
- Matthew saw to that, and Marilla for once made no objections
- whatever to anything he purchased or suggested. More--
- one evening she went up to the east gable with her arms full
- of a delicate pale green material.
-
- "Anne, here's something for a nice light dress for you.
- I don't suppose you really need it; you've plenty of
- pretty waists; but I thought maybe you'd like something
- real dressy to wear if you were asked out anywhere of an
- evening in town, to a party or anything like that. I hear
- that Jane and Ruby and Josie have got `evening dresses,' as
- they call them, and I don't mean you shall be behind them.
- I got Mrs. Allan to help me pick it in town last week,
- and we'll get Emily Gillis to make it for you. Emily
- has got taste, and her fits aren't to be equaled."
-
- "Oh, Marilla, it's just lovely," said Anne. "Thank you so
- much. I don't believe you ought to be so kind to me--it's
- making it harder every day for me to go away."
-
- The green dress was made up with as many tucks and frills
- and shirrings as Emily's taste permitted. Anne put it
- on one evening for Matthew's and Marilla's benefit,
- and recited "The Maiden's Vow" for them in the kitchen.
- As Marilla watched the bright, animated face and graceful
- motions her thoughts went back to the evening Anne had
- arrived at Green Gables, and memory recalled a vivid
- picture of the odd, frightened child in her preposterous
- yellowish-brown wincey dress, the heartbreak looking out
- of her tearful eyes. Something in the memory brought
- tears to Marilla's own eyes.
-
- "I declare, my recitation has made you cry, Marilla,"
- said Anne gaily stooping over Marilla's chair to drop a
- butterfly kiss on that lady's cheek. "Now, I call that a
- positive triumph."
-
- "No, I wasn't crying over your piece," said Marilla, who
- would have scorned to be betrayed into such weakness by
- any poetry stuff. "I just couldn't help thinking of the
- little girl you used to be, Anne. And I was wishing you could
- have stayed a little girl, even with all your queer ways.
- You've grown up now and you're going away; and you look
- so tall and stylish and so--so--different altogether
- in that dress--as if you didn't belong in Avonlea at all--
- and I just got lonesome thinking it all over."
-
- "Marilla!" Anne sat down on Marilla's gingham lap, took
- Marilla's lined face between her hands, and looked gravely
- and tenderly into Marilla's eyes. "I'm not a bit changed--
- not really. I'm only just pruned down and branched out.
- The real ME--back here--is just the same. It won't make a
- bit of difference where I go or how much I change outwardly;
- at heart I shall always be your little Anne, who will love
- you and Matthew and dear Green Gables more and better every
- day of her life."
-
- Anne laid her fresh young cheek against Marilla's faded
- one, and reached out a hand to pat Matthew's shoulder.
- Marilla would have given much just then to have possessed
- Anne's power of putting her feelings into words; but nature
- and habit had willed it otherwise, and she could only put her
- arms close about her girl and hold her tenderly to her heart,
- wishing that she need never let her go.
-
- Matthew, with a suspicious moisture in his eyes, got up
- and went out-of-doors. Under the stars of the blue summer
- night he walked agitatedly across the yard to the gate
- under the poplars.
-
- "Well now, I guess she ain't been much spoiled," he
- muttered, proudly. "I guess my putting in my oar occasional
- never did much harm after all. She's smart and pretty,
- and loving, too, which is better than all the rest.
- She's been a blessing to us, and there never was a
- luckier mistake than what Mrs. Spencer made--if it WAS luck.
- I don't believe it was any such thing. It was Providence,
- because the Almighty saw we needed her, I reckon."
-
- The day finally came when Anne must go to town. She
- and Matthew drove in one fine September morning, after a
- tearful parting with Diana and an untearful practical one--
- on Marilla's side at least--with Marilla. But when Anne
- had gone Diana dried her tears and went to a beach
- picnic at White Sands with some of her Carmody cousins,
- where she contrived to enjoy herself tolerably well; while
- Marilla plunged fiercely into unnecessary work and kept at
- it all day long with the bitterest kind of heartache--the
- ache that burns and gnaws and cannot wash itself away in
- ready tears. But that night, when Marilla went to bed,
- acutely and miserably conscious that the little gable room
- at the end of the hall was untenanted by any vivid young
- life and unstirred by any soft breathing, she buried her
- face in her pillow, and wept for her girl in a passion of
- sobs that appalled her when she grew calm enough to reflect
- how very wicked it must be to take on so about a sinful
- fellow creature.
-
- Anne and the rest of the Avonlea scholars reached town
- just in time to hurry off to the Academy. That first day
- passed pleasantly enough in a whirl of excitement, meeting
- all the new students, learning to know the professors by
- sight and being assorted and organized into classes.
- Anne intended taking up the Second Year work being advised
- to do so by Miss Stacy; Gilbert Blythe elected to do the same.
- This meant getting a First Class teacher's license in
- one year instead of two, if they were successful; but it also
- meant much more and harder work. Jane, Ruby, Josie,
- Charlie, and Moody Spurgeon, not being troubled with
- the stirrings of ambition, were content to take up the
- Second Class work. Anne was conscious of a pang of
- loneliness when she found herself in a room with fifty
- other students, not one of whom she knew, except the
- tall, brown-haired boy across the room; and knowing him
- in the fashion she did, did not help her much, as she
- reflected pessimistically. Yet she was undeniably glad that
- they were in the same class; the old rivalry could still be
- carried on, and Anne would hardly have known what to do
- if it had been lacking.
-
- "I wouldn't feel comfortable without it," she thought.
- "Gilbert looks awfully determined. I suppose he's making
- up his mind, here and now, to win the medal. What a
- splendid chin he has! I never noticed it before. I do wish
- Jane and Ruby had gone in for First Class, too. I suppose I
- won't feel so much like a cat in a strange garret when I get
- acquainted, though. I wonder which of the girls here are
- going to be my friends. It's really an interesting speculation.
- Of course I promised Diana that no Queen's girl, no matter
- how much I liked her, should ever be as dear to me as she is;
- but I've lots of second-best affections to bestow. I like
- the look of that girl with the brown eyes and the crimson
- waist. She looks vivid and red-rosy; there's that pale, fair
- one gazing out of the window. She has lovely hair, and looks
- as if she knew a thing or two about dreams. I'd like to know
- them both--know them well--well enough to walk with my arm
- about their waists, and call them nicknames. But just now I
- don't know them and they don't know me, and probably don't
- want to know me particularly. Oh, it's lonesome!"
-
- It was lonesomer still when Anne found herself alone in
- her hall bedroom that night at twilight. She was not to
- board with the other girls, who all had relatives in town to
- take pity on them. Miss Josephine Barry would have liked
- to board her, but Beechwood was so far from the Academy
- that it was out of the question; so miss Barry hunted up a
- boarding-house, assuring Matthew and Marilla that it was
- the very place for Anne.
-
- "The lady who keeps it is a reduced gentlewoman,"
- explained Miss Barry. "Her husband was a British officer,
- and she is very careful what sort of boarders she takes.
- Anne will not meet with any objectionable persons under
- her roof. The table is good, and the house is near the
- Academy, in a quiet neighborhood."
-
- All this might be quite true, and indeed, proved to be so,
- but it did not materially help Anne in the first agony
- of homesickness that seized upon her. She looked dismally
- about her narrow little room, with its dull-papered,
- pictureless walls, its small iron bedstead and empty book-
- case; and a horrible choke came into her throat as she
- thought of her own white room at Green Gables, where
- she would have the pleasant consciousness of a great green
- still outdoors, of sweet peas growing in the garden, and
- moonlight falling on the orchard, of the brook below the
- slope and the spruce boughs tossing in the night wind
- beyond it, of a vast starry sky, and the light from Diana's
- window shining out through the gap in the trees. Here
- there was nothing of this; Anne knew that outside of her
- window was a hard street, with a network of telephone
- wires shutting out the sky, the tramp of alien feet, and a
- thousand lights gleaming on stranger faces. She knew that
- she was going to cry, and fought against it.
-
- "I WON'T cry. It's silly--and weak--there's the third
- tear splashing down by my nose. There are more coming!
- I must think of something funny to stop them. But there's
- nothing funny except what is connected with Avonlea, and
- that only makes things worse--four--five--I'm going home
- next Friday, but that seems a hundred years away. Oh,
- Matthew is nearly home by now--and Marilla is at the
- gate, looking down the lane for him--six--seven--eight--
- oh, there's no use in counting them! They're coming in a
- flood presently. I can't cheer up--I don't WANT to cheer
- up. It's nicer to be miserable!"
-
- The flood of tears would have come, no doubt, had not
- Josie Pye appeared at that moment. In the joy of seeing
- a familiar face Anne forgot that there had never been much
- love lost between her and Josie. As a part of Avonlea life
- even a Pye was welcome.
-
- "I'm so glad you came up." Anne said sincerely.
-
- "You've been crying," remarked Josie, with aggravating pity.
- "I suppose you're homesick--some people have so little
- self-control in that respect. I've no intention of being
- homesick, I can tell you. Town's too jolly after that poky
- old Avonlea. I wonder how I ever existed there so long.
- You shouldn't cry, Anne; it isn't becoming, for your
- nose and eyes get red, and then you see ALL red. I'd a
- perfectly scrumptious time in the Academy today. Our French
- professor is simply a duck. His moustache would give you
- kerwollowps of the heart. Have you anything eatable around,
- Anne? I'm literally starving. Ah, I guessed likely Marilla'd
- load you up with cake. That's why I called round. Otherwise
- I'd have gone to the park to hear the band play with Frank
- Stockley. He boards same place as I do, and he's a sport.
- He noticed you in class today, and asked me who the red-headed
- girl was. I told him you were an orphan that the Cuthberts
- had adopted, and nobody knew very much about what you'd been
- before that."
-
- Anne was wondering if, after all, solitude and tears were
- not more satisfactory than Josie Pye's companionship when
- Jane and Ruby appeared, each with an inch of Queen's
- color ribbon--purple and scarlet--pinned proudly to her
- coat. As Josie was not "speaking" to Jane just then she had
- to subside into comparative harmlessness.
-
- "Well," said Jane with a sigh, "I feel as if I'd lived many
- moons since the morning. I ought to be home studying my
- Virgil--that horrid old professor gave us twenty lines to
- start in on tomorrow. But I simply couldn't settle down to
- study tonight. Anne, methinks I see the traces of tears. If
- you've been crying DO own up. It will restore my self-respect,
- for I was shedding tears freely before Ruby came along. I
- don't mind being a goose so much if somebody else is goosey,
- too. Cake? You'll give me a teeny piece, won't you? Thank
- you. It has the real Avonlea flavor."
-
- Ruby, perceiving the Queen's calendar lying on the table,
- wanted to know if Anne meant to try for the gold medal.
-
- Anne blushed and admitted she was thinking of it.
-
- "Oh, that reminds me," said Josie, "Queen's is to get one
- of the Avery scholarships after all. The word came today.
- Frank Stockley told me--his uncle is one of the board of
- governors, you know. It will be announced in the
- Academy tomorrow."
-
- An Avery scholarship! Anne felt her heart beat more
- quickly, and the horizons of her ambition shifted and
- broadened as if by magic. Before Josie had told the news
- Anne's highest pinnacle of aspiration had been a teacher's
- provincial license, First Class, at the end of the year, and
- perhaps the medal! But now in one moment Anne saw herself
- winning the Avery scholarship, taking an Arts course at
- Redmond College, and graduating in a gown and mortar board,
- before the echo of Josie's words had died away. For the
- Avery scholarship was in English, and Anne felt that here
- her foot was on native heath.???
-
- A wealthy manufacturer of New Brunswick had died and left
- part of his fortune to endow a large number of scholarships
- to be distributed among the various high schools and academies
- of the Maritime Provinces, according to their respective
- standings. There had been much doubt whether one would be
- allotted to Queen's, but the matter was settled at last, and
- at the end of the year the graduate who made the highest mark
- in English and English Literature would win the scholarship--
- two hundred and fifty dollars a year for four years at Redmond
- College. No wonder that Anne went to bed that night with
- tingling cheeks!
-
- "I'll win that scholarship if hard work can do it," she
- resolved. "Wouldn't Matthew be proud if I got to be a B.A.?
- Oh, it's delightful to have ambitions. I'm so glad I have
- such a lot. And there never seems to be any end to them--
- that's the best of it. Just as soon as you attain to one
- ambition you see another one glittering higher up still.
- It does make life so interesting."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXV
-
- The Winter at Queen's
-
-
- Anne's homesickness wore off, greatly helped in the wearing
- by her weekend visits home. As long as the open weather lasted
- the Avonlea students went out to Carmody on the new branch
- railway every Friday night. Diana and several other Avonlea
- young folks were generally on hand to meet them and they all
- walked over to Avonlea in a merry party. Anne thought those
- Friday evening gypsyings over the autumnal hills in the crisp
- golden air, with the homelights of Avonlea twinkling beyond,
- were the best and dearest hours in the whole week.
-
- Gilbert Blythe nearly always walked with Ruby Gillis and carried
- her satchel for her. Ruby was a very handsome young lady,
- now thinking herself quite as grown up as she really was;
- she wore her skirts as long as her mother would let her and
- did her hair up in town, though she had to take it down
- when she went home. She had large, bright-blue eyes, a
- brilliant complexion, and a plump showy figure. She laughed
- a great deal, was cheerful and good-tempered, and enjoyed the
- pleasant things of life frankly.
-
- "But I shouldn't think she was the sort of girl Gilbert would like,"
- whispered Jane to Anne. Anne did not think so either, but she would
- not have said so for the Avery scholarship. She could not help
- thinking, too, that it would be very pleasant to have such a friend
- as Gilbert to jest and chatter with and exchange ideas about books
- and studies and ambitions. Gilbert had ambitions, she knew, and
- Ruby Gillis did not seem the sort of person with whom such could
- be profitably discussed.
-
- There was no silly sentiment in Anne's ideas concerning Gilbert.
- Boys were to her, when she thought about them at all, merely
- possible good comrades. If she and Gilbert had been friends
- she would not have cared how many other friends he had
- nor with whom he walked. She had a genius for friendship;
- girl friends she had in plenty; but she had a vague consciousness
- that masculine friendship might also be a good thing to round
- out one's conceptions of companionship and furnish broader
- standpoints of judgment and comparison. Not that Anne could
- have put her feelings on the matter into just such clear definition.
- But she thought that if Gilbert had ever walked home with her
- from the train, over the crisp fields and along the ferny byways,
- they might have had many and merry and interesting conversations
- about the new world that was opening around them and their hopes
- and ambitions therein. Gilbert was a clever young fellow, with
- his own thoughts about things and a determination to get the best
- out of life and put the best into it. Ruby Gillis told Jane Andrews
- that she didn't understand half the things Gilbert Blythe said;
- he talked just like Anne Shirley did when she had a thoughtful fit
- on and for her part she didn't think it any fun to be bothering about
- books and that sort of thing when you didn't have to. Frank Stockley
- had lots more dash and go, but then he wasn't half as good-looking as
- Gilbert and she really couldn't decide which she liked best!
-
- In the Academy Anne gradually drew a little circle of friends about her,
- thoughtful, imaginative, ambitious students like herself. With the
- "rose-red" girl, Stella Maynard, and the "dream girl," Priscilla Grant,
- she soon became intimate, finding the latter pale spiritual-looking
- maiden to be full to the brim of mischief and pranks and fun,
- while the vivid, black-eyed Stella had a heartful of wistful
- dreams and fancies, as aerial and rainbow-like as Anne's own.
-
- After the Christmas holidays the Avonlea students gave
- up going home on Fridays and settled down to hard work.
- By this time all the Queen's scholars had gravitated into
- their own places in the ranks and the various classes had
- assumed distinct and settled shadings of individuality.
- Certain facts had become generally accepted. It was admitted
- that the medal contestants had practically narrowed down to
- three--Gilbert Blythe, Anne Shirley, and Lewis Wilson; the
- Avery scholarship was more doubtful, any one of a certain six
- being a possible winner. The bronze medal for mathematics
- was considered as good as won by a fat, funny little up-country
- boy with a bumpy forehead and a patched coat.
-
- Ruby Gillis was the handsomest girl of the year at the Academy;
- in the Second Year classes Stella Maynard carried off the palm
- for beauty, with small but critical minority in favor of Anne Shirley.
- Ethel Marr was admitted by all competent judges to have the most
- stylish modes of hair-dressing, and Jane Andrews--plain, plodding,
- conscientious Jane--carried off the honors in the domestic science course.
- Even Josie Pye attained a certain preeminence as the sharpest-
- tongued young lady in attendance at Queen's. So it may be
- fairly stated that Miss Stacy's old pupil's held their own in
- the wider arena of the academical course.
-
- Anne worked hard and steadily. Her rivalry with Gilbert
- was as intense as it had ever been in Avonlea school,
- although it was not known in the class at large, but somehow
- the bitterness had gone out of it. Anne no longer wished
- to win for the sake of defeating Gilbert; rather, for the
- proud consciousness of a well-won victory over a worthy foeman.
- It would be worth while to win, but she no longer thought life
- would be insupportable if she did not.
-
- In spite of lessons the students found opportunities for
- pleasant times. Anne spent many of her spare hours at
- Beechwood and generally ate her Sunday dinners there and
- went to church with Miss Barry. The latter was, as she
- admitted, growing old, but her black eyes were not dim nor
- the vigor of her tongue in the least abated. But she never
- sharpened the latter on Anne, who continued to be a prime
- favorite with the critical old lady.
-
- "That Anne-girl improves all the time," she said. "I get
- tired of other girls--there is such a provoking and eternal
- sameness about them. Anne has as many shades as a rainbow
- and every shade is the prettiest while it lasts. I don't
- know that she is as amusing as she was when she was a child,
- but she makes me love her and I like people who make me love them.
- It saves me so much trouble in making myself love them."
-
- Then, almost before anybody realized it, spring had come;
- out in Avonlea the Mayflowers were peeping pinkly out
- on the sere barrens where snow-wreaths lingered; and
- the "mist of green" was on the woods and in the valleys.
- But in Charlottetown harassed Queen's students thought
- and talked only of examinations.
-
- "It doesn't seem possible that the term is nearly over,"
- said Anne. "Why, last fall it seemed so long to look
- forward to--a whole winter of studies and classes. And here
- we are, with the exams looming up next week. Girls,
- sometimes I feel as if those exams meant everything, but
- when I look at the big buds swelling on those chestnut trees
- and the misty blue air at the end of the streets they don't
- seem half so important."
-
- Jane and Ruby and Josie, who had dropped in, did not
- take this view of it. To them the coming examinations
- were constantly very important indeed--far more important
- than chestnut buds or Maytime hazes. It was all very well
- for Anne, who was sure of passing at least, to have her
- moments of belittling them, but when your whole future
- depended on them--as the girls truly thought theirs did--
- you could not regard them philosophically.
-
- "I've lost seven pounds in the last two weeks," sighed
- Jane. "It's no use to say don't worry. I WILL worry.
- Worrying helps you some--it seems as if you were doing
- something when you're worrying. It would be dreadful if I
- failed to get my license after going to Queen's all winter
- and spending so much money."
-
- "_I_ don't care," said Josie Pye. "If I don't pass this year
- I'm coming back next. My father can afford to send me.
- Anne, Frank Stockley says that Professor Tremaine said
- Gilbert Blythe was sure to get the medal and that Emily Clay
- would likely win the Avery scholarship."
-
- "That may make me feel badly tomorrow, Josie," laughed
- Anne, "but just now I honestly feel that as long as I know
- the violets are coming out all purple down in the hollow
- below Green Gables and that little ferns are poking their
- heads up in Lovers' Lane, it's not a great deal of difference
- whether I win the Avery or not. I've done my best and I
- begin to understand what is meant by the `joy of the strife.'
- Next to trying and winning, the best thing is trying and failing.
- Girls, don't talk about exams! Look at that arch of pale green
- sky over those houses and picture to yourself what it must look
- like over the purply-dark beech-woods back of Avonlea."
-
- "What are you going to wear for commencement, Jane?"
- asked Ruby practically.
-
- Jane and Josie both answered at once and the chatter
- drifted into a side eddy of fashions. But Anne, with her
- elbows on the window sill, her soft cheek laid against her
- clasped hands, and her eyes filled with visions, looked out
- unheedingly across city roof and spire to that glorious dome
- of sunset sky and wove her dreams of a possible future from
- the golden tissue of youth's own optimism. All the Beyond
- was hers with its possibilities lurking rosily in the
- oncoming years--each year a rose of promise to be woven into
- an immortal chaplet.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVI
-
- The Glory and the Dream
-
-
- On the morning when the final results of all the examina-
- tions were to be posted on the bulletin board at Queen's,
- Anne and Jane walked down the street together. Jane was
- smiling and happy; examinations were over and she was
- comfortably sure she had made a pass at least; further
- considerations troubled Jane not at all; she had no soaring
- ambitions and consequently was not affected with the
- unrest attendant thereon. For we pay a price for everything
- we get or take in this world; and although ambitions are
- well worth having, they are not to be cheaply won, but
- exact their dues of work and self-denial, anxiety and
- discouragement. Anne was pale and quiet; in ten more minutes
- she would know who had won the medal and who the Avery.
- Beyond those ten minutes there did not seem, just then,
- to be anything worth being called Time.
-
- "Of course you'll win one of them anyhow," said Jane,
- who couldn't understand how the faculty could be so
- unfair as to order it otherwise.
-
- "I have not hope of the Avery," said Anne. "Everybody
- says Emily Clay will win it. And I'm not going to march
- up to that bulletin board and look at it before everybody.
- I haven't the moral courage. I'm going straight to the girls'
- dressing room. You must read the announcements and then
- come and tell me, Jane. And I implore you in the name
- of our old friendship to do it as quickly as possible.
- If I have failed just say so, without trying to break it
- gently; and whatever you do DON'T sympathize with me.
- Promise me this, Jane."
-
- Jane promised solemnly; but, as it happened, there was no
- necessity for such a promise. When they went up the entrance
- steps of Queen's they found the hall full of boys who were
- carrying Gilbert Blythe around on their shoulders and yelling
- at the tops of their voices, "Hurrah for Blythe, Medalist!"
-
- For a moment Anne felt one sickening pang of defeat and
- disappointment. So she had failed and Gilbert had won!
- Well, Matthew would be sorry--he had been so sure she
- would win.
-
- And then!
-
- Somebody called out:
-
- "Three cheers for Miss Shirley, winner of the Avery!"
-
- "Oh, Anne," gasped Jane, as they fled to the girls' dressing room
- amid hearty cheers. "Oh, Anne I'm so proud! Isn't it splendid?"
-
- And then the girls were around them and Anne was the
- center of a laughing, congratulating group. Her shoulders
- were thumped and her hands shaken vigorously. She was
- pushed and pulled and hugged and among it all she managed
- to whisper to Jane:
-
- "Oh, won't Matthew and Marilla be pleased! I must write the
- news home right away."
-
- Commencement was the next important happening. The exercises
- were held in the big assembly hall of the Academy. Addresses
- were given, essays read, songs sung, the public award of diplomas,
- prizes and medals made.
-
- Matthew and Marilla were there, with eyes and ears for only
- one student on the platform--a tall girl in pale green,
- with faintly flushed cheeks and starry eyes, who read the
- best essay and was pointed out and whispered about as the
- Avery winner.
-
- "Reckon you're glad we kept her, Marilla?" whispered Matthew,
- speaking for the first time since he had entered the hall,
- when Anne had finished her essay.
-
- "It's not the first time I've been glad," retorted Marilla.
- "You do like to rub things in, Matthew Cuthbert."
-
- Miss Barry, who was sitting behind them, leaned forward
- and poked Marilla in the back with her parasol.
-
- "Aren't you proud of that Anne-girl? I am," she said.
-
- Anne went home to Avonlea with Matthew and Marilla
- that evening. She had not been home since April and she
- felt that she could not wait another day. The apple blossoms
- were out and the world was fresh and young. Diana was at
- Green Gables to meet her. In her own white room, where
- Marilla had set a flowering house rose on the window sill,
- Anne looked about her and drew a long breath of happiness.
-
- "Oh, Diana, it's so good to be back again. It's so good to
- see those pointed firs coming out against the pink sky--
- and that white orchard and the old Snow Queen. Isn't the
- breath of the mint delicious? And that tea rose--why, it's
- a song and a hope and a prayer all in one. And it's GOOD to
- see you again, Diana!"
-
- "I thought you like that Stella Maynard better than me,"
- said Diana reproachfully. "Josie Pye told me you did.
- Josie said you were INFATUATED with her."
-
- Anne laughed and pelted Diana with the faded "June lilies"
- of her bouquet.
-
- "Stella Maynard is the dearest girl in the world except
- one and you are that one, Diana," she said. "I love you
- more than ever--and I've so many things to tell you. But
- just now I feel as if it were joy enough to sit here and
- look at you. I'm tired, I think--tired of being studious
- and ambitious. I mean to spend at least two hours tomorrow
- lying out in the orchard grass, thinking of absolutely nothing."
-
- "You've done splendidly, Anne. I suppose you won't be teaching
- now that you've won the Avery?"
-
- "No. I'm going to Redmond in September. Doesn't it
- seem wonderful? I'll have a brand new stock of ambition
- laid in by that time after three glorious, golden months of
- vacation. Jane and Ruby are going to teach. Isn't it splendid
- to think we all got through even to Moody Spurgeon and Josie Pye?"
-
- "The Newbridge trustees have offered Jane their school already,"
- said Diana. "Gilbert Blythe is going to teach, too. He has to.
- His father can't afford to send him to college next year, after all,
- so he means to earn his own way through. I expect he'll get the
- school here if Miss Ames decides to leave."
-
- Anne felt a queer little sensation of dismayed surprise.
- She had not known this; she had expected that Gilbert
- would be going to Redmond also. What would she do without
- their inspiring rivalry? Would not work, even at a
- coeducational college with a real degree in prospect, be
- rather flat without her friend the enemy?
-
- The next morning at breakfast it suddenly struck Anne
- that Matthew was not looking well. Surely he was much
- grayer than he had been a year before.
-
- "Marilla," she said hesitatingly when he had gone out,
- "is Matthew quite well?"
-
- "No, he isn't," said Marilla in a troubled tone. "He's
- had some real bad spells with his heart this spring and he
- won't spare himself a mite. I've been real worried about
- him, but he's some better this while back and we've got a
- good hired man, so I'm hoping he'll kind of rest and pick up.
- Maybe he will now you're home. You always cheer him up."
-
- Anne leaned across the table and took Marilla's face in
- her hands.
-
- "You are not looking as well yourself as I'd like to see
- you, Marilla. You look tired. I'm afraid you've been
- working too hard. You must take a rest, now that I'm home.
- I'm just going to take this one day off to visit all the dear
- old spots and hunt up my old dreams, and then it will be
- your turn to be lazy while I do the work."
-
- Marilla smiled affectionately at her girl.
-
- "It's not the work--it's my head. I've got a pain so often
- now--behind my eyes. Doctor Spencer's been fussing with
- glasses, but they don't do me any good. There is a distin-
- guished oculist coming to the Island the last of June and
- the doctor says I must see him. I guess I'll have to.
- I can't read or sew with any comfort now. Well, Anne, you've
- done real well at Queen's I must say. To take First Class
- License in one year and win the Avery scholarship--well,
- well, Mrs. Lynde says pride goes before a fall and she
- doesn't believe in the higher education of women at all;
- she says it unfits them for woman's true sphere. I don't
- believe a word of it. speaking of Rachel reminds me--did
- you hear anything about the Abbey Bank lately, Anne?"
-
- "I heard it was shaky," answered Anne. "Why?"
-
- "That is what Rachel said. She was up here one day last
- week and said there was some talk about it. Matthew felt
- real worried. All we have saved is in that bank--every
- penny. I wanted Matthew to put it in the Savings Bank in
- the first place, but old Mr. Abbey was a great friend of
- father's and he'd always banked with him. Matthew said any
- bank with him at the head of it was good enough for anybody."
-
- "I think he has only been its nominal head for many
- years," said Anne. "He is a very old man; his nephews
- are really at the head of the institution."
-
- "Well, when Rachel told us that, I wanted Matthew to draw
- our money right out and he said he'd think of it. But
- Mr. Russell told him yesterday that the bank was all right."
-
- Anne had her good day in the companionship of the outdoor world.
- She never forgot that day; it was so bright and golden and fair,
- so free from shadow and so lavish of blossom. Anne spent some
- of its rich hours in the orchard; she went to the Dryad's Bubble
- and Willowmere and Violet Vale; she called at the manse and had
- a satisfying talk with Mrs. Allan; and finally in the evening
- she went with Matthew for the cows, through Lovers' Lane to the
- back pasture. The woods were all gloried through with sunset
- and the warm splendor of it streamed down through the hill gaps
- in the west. Matthew walked slowly with bent head; Anne, tall
- and erect, suited her springing step to his.
-
- "You've been working too hard today, Matthew," she said
- reproachfully. "Why won't you take things easier?"
-
- "Well now, I can't seem to," said Matthew, as he opened
- the yard gate to let the cows through. "It's only that I'm
- getting old, Anne, and keep forgetting it. Well, well, I've
- always worked pretty hard and I'd rather drop in harness."
-
- "If I had been the boy you sent for," said Anne wistfully,
- "I'd be able to help you so much now and spare you in a
- hundred ways. I could find it in my heart to wish I had
- been, just for that."
-
- "Well now, I'd rather have you than a dozen boys, Anne,"
- said Matthew patting her hand. "Just mind you that--
- rather than a dozen boys. Well now, I guess it wasn't
- a boy that took the Avery scholarship, was it? It was
- a girl--my girl--my girl that I'm proud of."
-
- He smiled his shy smile at her as he went into the yard.
- Anne took the memory of it with her when she went to her
- room that night and sat for a long while at her open window,
- thinking of the past and dreaming of the future.
- Outside the Snow Queen was mistily white in the moonshine;
- the frogs were singing in the marsh beyond Orchard Slope.
- Anne always remembered the silvery, peaceful beauty and
- fragrant calm of that night. It was the last night before
- sorrow touched her life; and no life is ever quite the same
- again when once that cold, sanctifying touch has been laid upon it.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVII
-
- The Reaper Whose Name Is Death
-
-
- "Matthew--Matthew--what is the matter? Matthew, are you sick?"
-
- It was Marilla who spoke, alarm in every jerky word. Anne
- came through the hall, her hands full of white narcissus,--it
- was long before Anne could love the sight or odor of white
- narcissus again,--in time to hear her and to see Matthew
- standing in the porch doorway, a folded paper in his hand,
- and his face strangely drawn and gray. Anne dropped her flowers
- and sprang across the kitchen to him at the same moment as
- Marilla. They were both too late; before they could reach him
- Matthew had fallen across the threshold.
-
- "He's fainted," gasped Marilla. "Anne, run for Martin--
- quick, quick! He's at the barn."
-
- Martin, the hired man, who had just driven home from
- the post office, started at once for the doctor, calling at
- Orchard Slope on his way to send Mr. and Mrs. Barry over.
- Mrs. Lynde, who was there on an errand, came too. They
- found Anne and Marilla distractedly trying to restore
- Matthew to consciousness.
-
- Mrs. Lynde pushed them gently aside, tried his pulse,
- and then laid her ear over his heart. She looked at their
- anxious faces sorrowfully and the tears came into her eyes.
-
- "Oh, Marilla," she said gravely. "I don't think--we can do
- anything for him."
-
- "Mrs. Lynde, you don't think--you can't think Matthew is-- is--"
- Anne could not say the dreadful word; she turned sick and pallid.
-
- "Child, yes, I'm afraid of it. Look at his face. When you've
- seen that look as often as I have you'll know what it means."
-
- Anne looked at the still face and there beheld the seal of
- the Great Presence.
-
- When the doctor came he said that death had been instantaneous
- and probably painless, caused in all likelihood by some sudden shock.
- The secret of the shock was discovered to be in the paper Matthew
- had held and which Martin had brought from the office that morning.
- It contained an account of the failure of the Abbey Bank.
-
- The news spread quickly through Avonlea, and all day
- friends and neighbors thronged Green Gables and came
- and went on errands of kindness for the dead and living.
- For the first time shy, quiet Matthew Cuthbert was a
- person of central importance; the white majesty of death
- had fallen on him and set him apart as one crowned.
-
- When the calm night came softly down over Green Gables
- the old house was hushed and tranquil. In the parlor lay
- Matthew Cuthbert in his coffin, his long gray hair framing
- his placid face on which there was a little kindly smile
- as if he but slept, dreaming pleasant dreams. There were
- flowers about him--sweet old-fashioned flowers which his mother
- had planted in the homestead garden in her bridal days and
- for which Matthew had always had a secret, wordless love.
- Anne had gathered them and brought them to him, her anguished,
- tearless eyes burning in her white face. It was the last thing
- she could do for him.
-
- The Barrys and Mrs. Lynde stayed with them that night.
- Diana, going to the east gable, where Anne was standing
- at her window, said gently:
-
- "Anne dear, would you like to have me sleep with you tonight?"
-
- "Thank you, Diana." Anne looked earnestly into her friend's face.
- "I think you won't misunderstand me when I say I want to be alone.
- I'm not afraid. I haven't been alone one minute since it happened--
- and I want to be. I want to be quite silent and quiet and try to
- realize it. I can't realize it. Half the time it seems to me that
- Matthew can't be dead; and the other half it seems as if he must
- have been dead for a long time and I've had this horrible
- dull ache ever since."
-
- Diana did not quite understand. Marilla's impassioned grief,
- breaking all the bounds of natural reserve and lifelong habit
- in its stormy rush, she could comprehend better than Anne's
- tearless agony. But she went away kindly, leaving Anne alone
- to keep her first vigil with sorrow.
-
- Anne hoped that the tears would come in solitude. It seemed
- to her a terrible thing that she could not shed a tear for
- Matthew, whom she had loved so much and who had been
- so kind to her, Matthew who had walked with her last
- evening at sunset and was now lying in the dim room
- below with that awful peace on his brow. But no tears
- came at first, even when she knelt by her window in the
- darkness and prayed, looking up to the stars beyond the
- hills--no tears, only the same horrible dull ache of
- misery that kept on aching until she fell asleep,
- worn out with the day's pain and excitement.
-
- In the night she awakened, with the stillness and the
- darkness about her, and the recollection of the day came
- over her like a wave of sorrow. She could see Matthew's
- face smiling at her as he had smiled when they parted at
- the gate that last evening--she could hear his voice saying,
- "My girl--my girl that I'm proud of." Then the tears came
- and Anne wept her heart out. Marilla heard her and crept
- in to comfort her.
-
- "There--there--don't cry so, dearie. It can't bring him back.
- It--it--isn't right to cry so. I knew that today, but I
- couldn't help it then. He'd always been such a good,
- kind brother to me--but God knows best."
-
- "Oh, just let me cry, Marilla," sobbed Anne. "The tears
- don't hurt me like that ache did. Stay here for a little
- while with me and keep your arm round me--so. I couldn't
- have Diana stay, she's good and kind and sweet--but it's
- not her sorrow--she's outside of it and she couldn't come
- close enough to my heart to help me. It's our sorrow--
- yours and mine. Oh, Marilla, what will we do without him?"
-
- "We've got each other, Anne. I don't know what I'd do
- if you weren't here--if you'd never come. Oh, Anne, I
- know I've been kind of strict and harsh with you maybe--
- but you mustn't think I didn't love you as well as Matthew
- did, for all that. I want to tell you now when I can. It's
- never been easy for me to say things out of my heart, but
- at times like this it's easier. I love you as dear as if
- you were my own flesh and blood and you've been my joy and
- comfort ever since you came to Green Gables."
-
- Two days afterwards they carried Matthew Cuthbert
- over his homestead threshold and away from the fields he
- had tilled and the orchards he had loved and the trees he
- had planted; and then Avonlea settled back to its usual
- placidity and even at Green Gables affairs slipped into
- their old groove and work was done and duties fulfilled
- with regularity as before, although always with the aching
- sense of "loss in all familiar things." Anne, new to grief,
- thought it almost sad that it could be so--that they COULD
- go on in the old way without Matthew. She felt something
- like shame and remorse when she discovered that the
- sunrises behind the firs and the pale pink buds opening in
- the garden gave her the old inrush of gladness when she
- saw them--that Diana's visits were pleasant to her and
- that Diana's merry words and ways moved her to laughter
- and smiles--that, in brief, the beautiful world of blossom
- and love and friendship had lost none of its power to
- please her fancy and thrill her heart, that life still
- called to her with many insistent voices.
-
- "It seems like disloyalty to Matthew, somehow, to find
- pleasure in these things now that he has gone," she said
- wistfully to Mrs. Allan one evening when they were together
- in the manse garden. "I miss him so much--all the time--
- and yet, Mrs. Allan, the world and life seem very beautiful
- and interesting to me for all. Today Diana said something
- funny and I found myself laughing. I thought when it
- happened I could never laugh again. And it somehow seems
- as if I oughtn't to."
-
- "When Matthew was here he liked to hear you laugh
- and he liked to know that you found pleasure in the
- pleasant things around you," said Mrs. Allan gently.
- "He is just away now; and he likes to know it just the same.
- I am sure we should not shut our hearts against the healing
- influences that nature offers us. But I can understand
- your feeling. I think we all experience the same thing.
- We resent the thought that anything can please us when someone
- we love is no longer here to share the pleasure with us,
- and we almost feel as if we were unfaithful to our sorrow
- when we find our interest in life returning to us."
-
- "I was down to the graveyard to plant a rosebush on
- Matthew's grave this afternoon," said Anne dreamily.
- "I took a slip of the little white Scotch rosebush his
- mother brought out from Scotland long ago; Matthew always
- liked those roses the best--they were so small and sweet on
- their thorny stems. It made me feel glad that I could plant
- it by his grave--as if I were doing something that must please
- him in taking it there to be near him. I hope he has roses
- like them in heaven. Perhaps the souls of all those little
- white roses that he has loved so many summers were all there
- to meet him. I must go home now. Marilla is all alone and
- she gets lonely at twilight."
-
- "She will be lonelier still, I fear, when you go away again
- to college," said Mrs. Allan.
-
- Anne did not reply; she said good night and went slowly
- back to green Gables. Marilla was sitting on the front
- door-steps and Anne sat down beside her. The door was
- open behind them, held back by a big pink conch shell
- with hints of sea sunsets in its smooth inner convolutions.
-
- Anne gathered some sprays of pale-yellow honeysuckle and put
- them in her hair. She liked the delicious hint of fragrance,
- as some aerial benediction, above her every time she moved.
-
- "Doctor Spencer was here while you were away," Marilla said.
- "He says that the specialist will be in town tomorrow
- and he insists that I must go in and have my eyes examined.
- I suppose I'd better go and have it over. I'll be more
- than thankful if the man can give me the right kind of
- glasses to suit my eyes. You won't mind staying here alone
- while I'm away, will you? Martin will have to drive me in
- and there's ironing and baking to do."
-
- "I shall be all right. Diana will come over for company
- for me. I shall attend to the ironing and baking beautifully--
- you needn't fear that I'll starch the handkerchiefs or flavor
- the cake with liniment."
-
- Marilla laughed.
-
- "What a girl you were for making mistakes in them days, Anne.
- You were always getting into scrapes. I did use to think you
- were possessed. Do you mind the time you dyed your hair?"
-
- "Yes, indeed. I shall never forget it," smiled Anne,
- touching the heavy braid of hair that was wound about her
- shapely head. "I laugh a little now sometimes when I
- think what a worry my hair used to be to me--but I don't
- laugh MUCH, because it was a very real trouble then.
- I did suffer terribly over my hair and my freckles.
- My freckles are really gone; and people are nice enough
- to tell me my hair is auburn now--all but Josie Pye.
- She informed me yesterday that she really thought it
- was redder than ever, or at least my black dress made
- it look redder, and she asked me if people who had red
- hair ever got used to having it. Marilla, I've almost
- decided to give up trying to like Josie Pye. I've made
- what I would once have called a heroic effort to like her,
- but Josie Pye won't BE liked."
-
- "Josie is a Pye," said Marilla sharply, "so she can't help
- being disagreeable. I suppose people of that kind serve
- some useful purpose in society, but I must say I don't
- know what it is any more than I know the use of thistles.
- Is Josie going to teach?"
-
- "No, she is going back to Queen's next year. So are
- Moody Spurgeon and Charlie Sloane. Jane and Ruby are
- going to teach and they have both got schools--Jane at
- Newbridge and Ruby at some place up west."
-
- "Gilbert Blythe is going to teach too, isn't he?"
-
- "Yes"--briefly.
-
- "What a nice-looking fellow he is," said Marilla absently.
- "I saw him in church last Sunday and he seemed so tall and manly.
- He looks a lot like his father did at the same age. John Blythe
- was a nice boy. We used to be real good friends, he and I.
- People called him my beau."
-
- Anne looked up with swift interest.
-
- "Oh, Marilla--and what happened?--why didn't you--"
-
- "We had a quarrel. I wouldn't forgive him when he asked me to.
- I meant to, after awhile--but I was sulky and angry and I wanted
- to punish him first. He never came back--the Blythes were all
- mighty independent. But I always felt--rather sorry. I've always
- kind of wished I'd forgiven him when I had the chance."
-
- "So you've had a bit of romance in your life, too," said Anne softly.
-
- "Yes, I suppose you might call it that. You wouldn't think so
- to look at me, would you? But you never can tell about people
- from their outsides. Everybody has forgot about me and John.
- I'd forgotten myself. But it all came back to me when I saw
- Gilbert last Sunday."
-
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVIII
-
- The Bend in the road
-
-
- Marilla went to town the next day and returned in the
- evening. Anne had gone over to Orchard Slope with Diana
- and came back to find Marilla in the kitchen, sitting
- by the table with her head leaning on her hand. Something
- in her dejected attitude struck a chill to Anne's heart.
- She had never seen Marilla sit limply inert like that.
-
- "Are you very tired, Marilla?"
-
- "Yes--no--I don't know," said Marilla wearily, looking
- up. "I suppose I am tired but I haven't thought about it.
- It's not that."
-
- "Did you see the oculist? What did he say?" asked Anne
- anxiously.
-
- "Yes, I saw him. He examined my eyes. He says that if
- I give up all reading and sewing entirely and any kind of
- work that strains the eyes, and if I'm careful not to cry,
- and if I wear the glasses he's given me he thinks my eyes
- may not get any worse and my headaches will be cured. But
- if I don't he says I'll certainly be stone-blind in six
- months. Blind! Anne, just think of it!"
-
- For a minute Anne, after her first quick exclamation of
- dismay, was silent. It seemed to her that she could NOT
- speak. Then she said bravely, but with a catch in her voice:
-
- "Marilla, DON'T think of it. You know he has given you hope.
- If you are careful you won't lose your sight altogether;
- and if his glasses cure your headaches it will be a great thing."
-
- "I don't call it much hope," said Marilla bitterly. "What
- am I to live for if I can't read or sew or do anything like
- that? I might as well be blind--or dead. And as for crying,
- I can't help that when I get lonesome. But there, it's no
- good talking about it. If you'll get me a cup of tea I'll be
- thankful. I'm about done out. Don't say anything about this
- to any one for a spell yet, anyway. I can't bear that folks
- should come here to question and sympathize and talk about it."
-
- When Marilla had eaten her lunch Anne persuaded her to go
- to bed. Then Anne went herself to the east gable and sat
- down by her window in the darkness alone with her tears
- and her heaviness of heart. How sadly things had changed
- since she had sat there the night after coming home! Then
- she had been full of hope and joy and the future had looked
- rosy with promise. Anne felt as if she had lived years
- since then, but before she went to bed there was a smile on
- her lips and peace in her heart. She had looked her duty
- courageously in the face and found it a friend--as duty ever
- is when we meet it frankly.
-
- One afternoon a few days later Marilla came slowly in
- from the front yard where she had been talking to a caller--
- a man whom Anne knew by sight as Sadler from Carmody.
- Anne wondered what he could have been saying to bring that
- look to Marilla's face.
-
- "What did Mr. Sadler want, Marilla?"
-
- Marilla sat down by the window and looked at Anne.
- There were tears in her eyes in defiance of the oculist's
- prohibition and her voice broke as she said:
-
- "He heard that I was going to sell Green Gables and
- he wants to buy it."
-
- "Buy it! Buy Green Gables?" Anne wondered if she had heard aright.
- "Oh, Marilla, you don't mean to sell Green Gables!"
-
- "Anne, I don't know what else is to be done. I've thought
- it all over. If my eyes were strong I could stay here
- and make out to look after things and manage, with a good
- hired man. But as it is I can't. I may lose my sight
- altogether; and anyway I'll not be fit to run things.
- Oh, I never thought I'd live to see the day when I'd have
- to sell my home. But things would only go behind worse and
- worse all the time, till nobody would want to buy it.
- Every cent of our money went in that bank; and there's
- some notes Matthew gave last fall to pay. Mrs. Lynde
- advises me to sell the farm and board somewhere--with
- her I suppose. It won't bring much--it's small and the
- buildings are old. But it'll be enough for me to live on
- I reckon. I'm thankful you're provided for with that
- scholarship, Anne. I'm sorry you won't have a home to
- come to in your vacations, that's all, but I suppose you'll
- manage somehow."
-
- Marilla broke down and wept bitterly.
-
- "You mustn't sell Green Gables," said Anne resolutely.
-
- "Oh, Anne, I wish I didn't have to. But you can see for yourself.
- I can't stay here alone. I'd go crazy with trouble and loneliness.
- And my sight would go--I know it would."
-
- "You won't have to stay here alone, Marilla. I'll be with you.
- I'm not going to Redmond."
-
- "Not going to Redmond!" Marilla lifted her worn face
- from her hands and looked at Anne. "Why, what do you mean?"
-
- "Just what I say. I'm not going to take the scholarship.
- I decided so the night after you came home from town. You
- surely don't think I could leave you alone in your trouble,
- Marilla, after all you've done for me. I've been thinking
- and planning. Let me tell you my plans. Mr. Barry wants
- to rent the farm for next year. So you won't have any
- bother over that. And I'm going to teach. I've applied
- for the school here--but I don't expect to get it for I
- understand the trustees have promised it to Gilbert Blythe.
- But I can have the Carmody school--Mr. Blair told me so last
- night at the store. Of course that won't be quite as nice
- or convenient as if I had the Avonlea school. But I can board
- home and drive myself over to Carmody and back, in the
- warm weather at least. And even in winter I can come home
- Fridays. We'll keep a horse for that. Oh, I have it all
- planned out, Marilla. And I'll read to you and keep you
- cheered up. You sha'n't be dull or lonesome. And we'll be
- real cozy and happy here together, you and I."
-
- Marilla had listened like a woman in a dream.
-
- "Oh, Anne, I could get on real well if you were here, I know.
- But I can't let you sacrifice yourself so for me. It would be terrible."
-
- "Nonsense!" Anne laughed merrily. "There is no sacrifice.
- Nothing could be worse than giving up Green Gables--nothing
- could hurt me more. We must keep the dear old place.
- My mind is quite made up, Marilla. I'm NOT going
- to Redmond; and I AM going to stay here and teach.
- Don't you worry about me a bit."
-
- "But your ambitions--and--"
-
- "I'm just as ambitious as ever. Only, I've changed the
- object of my ambitions. I'm going to be a good teacher--
- and I'm going to save your eyesight. Besides, I mean to study
- at home here and take a little college course all by myself.
- Oh, I've dozens of plans, Marilla. I've been thinking them
- out for a week. I shall give life here my best, and I believe
- it will give its best to me in return. When I left Queen's
- my future seemed to stretch out before me like a straight road.
- I thought I could see along it for many a milestone. Now there
- is a bend in it. I don't know what lies around the bend,
- but I'm going to believe that the best does. It has a
- fascination of its own, that bend, Marilla. I wonder how
- the road beyond it goes--what there is of green glory and soft,
- checkered light and shadows--what new landscapes--what new
- beauties--what curves and hills and valleys further on."
-
- "I don't feel as if I ought to let you give it up," said Marilla,
- referring to the scholarship.
-
- "But you can't prevent me. I'm sixteen and a half, `obstinate
- as a mule,' as Mrs. Lynde once told me," laughed Anne.
- "Oh, Marilla, don't you go pitying me. I don't like
- to be pitied, and there is no need for it. I'm heart glad
- over the very thought of staying at dear Green Gables.
- Nobody could love it as you and I do--so we must keep it."
-
- "You blessed girl!" said Marilla, yielding. "I feel as if
- you'd given me new life. I guess I ought to stick out and
- make you go to college--but I know I can't, so I ain't
- going to try. I'll make it up to you though, Anne."
-
- When it became noised abroad in Avonlea that Anne
- Shirley had given up the idea of going to college and
- intended to stay home and teach there was a good deal of
- discussion over it. Most of the good folks, not knowing
- about Marilla's eyes, thought she was foolish. Mrs. Allan
- did not. She told Anne so in approving words that brought
- tears of pleasure to the girl's eyes. Neither did good
- Mrs. Lynde. She came up one evening and found Anne and Marilla
- sitting at the front door in the warm, scented summer dusk.
- They liked to sit there when the twilight came down and the
- white moths flew about in the garden and the odor of mint
- filled the dewy air.
-
- Mrs. Rachel deposited her substantial person upon the
- stone bench by the door, behind which grew a row of tall
- pink and yellow hollyhocks, with a long breath of mingled
- weariness and relief.
-
- "I declare I'm getting glad to sit down. I've been on my feet
- all day, and two hundred pounds is a good bit for two feet to
- carry round. It's a great blessing not to be fat, Marilla.
- I hope you appreciate it. Well, Anne, I hear you've given up
- your notion of going to college. I was real glad to hear it.
- You've got as much education now as a woman can be comfortable
- with. I don't believe in girls going to college with the men and
- cramming their heads full of Latin and Greek and all that nonsense."
-
- "But I'm going to study Latin and Greek just the same,
- Mrs. Lynde," said Anne laughing. "I'm going to take my
- Arts course right here at Green Gables, and study everything
- that I would at college."
-
- Mrs. Lynde lifted her hands in holy horror.
-
- "Anne Shirley, you'll kill yourself."
-
- "Not a bit of it. I shall thrive on it. Oh, I'm not going
- to overdo things. As `Josiah Allen's wife,' says, I shall
- be `mejum'. But I'll have lots of spare time in the long
- winter evenings, and I've no vocation for fancy work.
- I'm going to teach over at Carmody, you know."
-
- "I don't know it. I guess you're going to teach right here
- in Avonlea. The trustees have decided to give you the school."
-
- "Mrs. Lynde!" cried Anne, springing to her feet in her surprise.
- "Why, I thought they had promised it to Gilbert Blythe!"
-
- "So they did. But as soon as Gilbert heard that you had
- applied for it he went to them--they had a business meeting
- at the school last night, you know--and told them that he
- withdrew his application, and suggested that they accept yours.
- He said he was going to teach at White Sands. Of course he
- knew how much you wanted to stay with Marilla, and I must say
- I think it was real kind and thoughtful in him, that's what.
- Real self-sacrificing, too, for he'll have his board to pay
- at White Sands, and everybody knows he's got to earn his own
- way through college. So the trustees decided to take you.
- I was tickled to death when Thomas came home and told me."
-
- "I don't feel that I ought to take it," murmured Anne.
- "I mean--I don't think I ought to let Gilbert make such
- a sacrifice for--for me."
-
- "I guess you can't prevent him now. He's signed papers with
- the White Sands trustees. So it wouldn't do him any good now
- if you were to refuse. Of course you'll take the school.
- You'll get along all right, now that there are no Pyes going.
- Josie was the last of them, and a good thing she was, that's what.
- There's been some Pye or other going to Avonlea school for the
- last twenty years, and I guess their mission in life was to
- keep school teachers reminded that earth isn't their home.
- Bless my heart! What does all that winking and blinking
- at the Barry gable mean?"
-
- "Diana is signaling for me to go over," laughed Anne.
- "You know we keep up the old custom. Excuse me while I
- run over and see what she wants."
-
- Anne ran down the clover slope like a deer, and disappeared
- in the firry shadows of the Haunted Wood. Mrs. Lynde looked
- after her indulgently.
-
- "There's a good deal of the child about her yet in some ways."
-
- "There's a good deal more of the woman about her in others,"
- retorted Marilla, with a momentary return of her old crispness.
-
- But crispness was no longer Marilla's distinguishing
- characteristic. As Mrs. Lynde told her Thomas that night.
-
- "Marilla Cuthbert has got MELLOW. That's what."
-
- Anne went to the little Avonlea graveyard the next
- evening to put fresh flowers on Matthew's grave and water
- the Scotch rosebush. She lingered there until dusk, liking
- the peace and calm of the little place, with its poplars
- whose rustle was like low, friendly speech, and its
- whispering grasses growing at will among the graves.
- When she finally left it and walked down the long hill that
- sloped to the Lake of Shining Waters it was past sunset and
- all Avonlea lay before her in a dreamlike afterlight--
- "a haunt of ancient peace." There was a freshness in the air
- as of a wind that had blown over honey-sweet fields of clover.
- Home lights twinkled out here and there among the homestead
- trees. Beyond lay the sea, misty and purple, with its
- haunting, unceasing murmur. The west was a glory of soft
- mingled hues, and the pond reflected them all in still
- softer shadings. The beauty of it all thrilled Anne's heart,
- and she gratefully opened the gates of her soul to it.
-
- "Dear old world," she murmured, "you are very lovely,
- and I am glad to be alive in you."
-
- Halfway down the hill a tall lad came whistling out of a
- gate before the Blythe homestead. It was Gilbert, and the
- whistle died on his lips as he recognized Anne. He lifted
- his cap courteously, but he would have passed on in
- silence, if Anne had not stopped and held out her hand.
-
- "Gilbert," she said, with scarlet cheeks, "I want to
- thank you for giving up the school for me. It was very
- good of you--and I want you to know that I appreciate it."
-
- Gilbert took the offered hand eagerly.
-
- "It wasn't particularly good of me at all, Anne. I was
- pleased to be able to do you some small service. Are we
- going to be friends after this? Have you really forgiven
- me my old fault?"
-
- Anne laughed and tried unsuccessfully to withdraw her hand.
-
- "I forgave you that day by the pond landing, although
- I didn't know it. What a stubborn little goose I was.
- I've been--I may as well make a complete confession--I've
- been sorry ever since."
-
- "We are going to be the best of friends," said Gilbert,
- jubilantly. "We were born to be good friends, Anne.
- You've thwarted destiny enough. I know we can help each
- other in many ways. You are going to keep up your studies,
- aren't you? So am I. Come, I'm going to walk home with you."
-
- Marilla looked curiously at Anne when the latter entered
- the kitchen.
-
- "Who was that came up the lane with you, Anne?"
-
- "Gilbert Blythe," answered Anne, vexed to find herself
- blushing. "I met him on Barry's hill."
-
- "I didn't think you and Gilbert Blythe were such good
- friends that you'd stand for half an hour at the gate
- talking to him," said Marilla with a dry smile.
-
- "We haven't been--we've been good enemies. But we
- have decided that it will be much more sensible to be
- good friends in the future. Were we really there half an
- hour? It seemed just a few minutes. But, you see, we have
- five years' lost conversations to catch up with, Marilla."
-
- Anne sat long at her window that night companioned by
- a glad content. The wind purred softly in the cherry
- boughs, and the mint breaths came up to her. The stars
- twinkled over the pointed firs in the hollow and Diana's
- light gleamed through the old gap.
-
- Anne's horizons had closed in since the night she had
- sat there after coming home from Queen's; but if the path
- set before her feet was to be narrow she knew that flowers
- of quiet happiness would bloom along it. The joy of
- sincere work and worthy aspiration and congenial friendship
- were to be hers; nothing could rob her of her birthright
- of fancy or her ideal world of dreams. And there was always
- the bend in the road!
-
- "`God's in his heaven, all's right with the world,'"
- whispered Anne softly.
-
- ***
-
- End of the Project Gutenberg Edition of Anne of Green Gables
- by Lucy Maud Montgomery
-
-